OOOg-O^Zt^e biujo^iibo 'Aa|8>|jeg 20-9 lAIOS A313>^a3a viNdOdnvo =io AiisdBAiNn 9aa on nhoj cnn7 A 1 )^A\§ MOiaa aadiAivis sv ana ■90l7e-St79 BujiiBO Aq pe/wauaj eq Ablu s>)Oog ■QVep enp am o\ joud sAep p apeuj aq Ablu saBjeyoaa pue s|BMauay SAva z aaidv aamvoau 3a avi/\i s>iooa mv 9 9 p e z asn 8UJ0H I aoia3d NV01 s>iOBisu!B|AI86l. iN3iAiiavd3a Noiivnnodio =01 Ndni3d DAMl 1 I'i 1«" i THE LIFE i AND 1 STRANGE SURPRISING ADVENTURES OP ROBINSON CRUSOE Of York, Mariner. AS RELATED BY HIMSELF. \ BY DANIEL DEFOE. •f — With upwards of One Hundred Illustrations. LONDON: CASSELL, PETTER, AND GALPIN, LA BELLE SALVAGE YARD, LUDGATE HILL, E.G. i 1 o INTRODUCTION. lik^r^^^5^-^s E FOE publisliecl " Robinson CrusoG " in 1719, under tho following quaint title : '• The Life and Strange Surpris- ing Ad^•entures of Robinson Crusoe, of York, jNIariner : who lived eight-and-twenty years all alone in an unin- of the great River Oroonoque ; having been cast on shore by shipwreck, wherein all the men perished but himself ^T^K '^"^^^^ ^^^ account how he Avas at last strangely delivered by Pirates. f j Written by himself." '■\ Like "Paradise Lost," this romance, destined to so immediate and )• lasting a popularity, is said to have been offered to " the whole circle of the trade " before any publisher could be found willing to incur the risk of producing it. William Taylor, of the Ship, in Paternoster Row, finally agreed to purchase it, for, it is believed, a very moderate sum of money. He is said to have realised £1,000 profit. Its success was so great that four editions were printed in as many months. It appeared, In the first instance, Avlth the foUowin.g preface :— If ever tko storj? of any private raau's adventures iii the world were wortli making public, and Were acceptable when published, tlie Editor cf tbis account tbinks tbi.3 will be so. The wonders of this man's life exceed all that (be thinks) is to bo found extant ; the life of one man being scarce capable of a greater variety. The Btory is told with modesty, with seriousness, and with a religious application of events to the uses to which wise men always apj^ly them; viz., to the instruction of others, by this example, and to justify and honour the wisdom of Providence in all the variety of circumstances, let them happen how they will. The Editor believes the thing to be a just history of fact; neither is there any appearance of fiction in it : and however thinks, because all such things are disputed, that the improvement of it, as well to the diversion as to the instruction of the reader, will be the £ame ; and as such, he thinks, without farther compliment to tho world, he does them a great service in the publication. There is no truth in the story, so often repeated, that " Robinson Crusoe " was the first tale published in a serial form. Tliat it did appear in a journal called ix 118 INTRODUCTION*. '• TliL' Oiii^iMal Lundoii I'ost, or Ileatlicotc's Intelligence," is a fact beyond dispute. Wo liavo, however, carefully compared the tale as it there appears with, the original edition. It is luanifcstly a pirated cojn'. Just so much of the work is printed as contains the story, -with all the reflections omitted. Besides, the datJ .of publication is subsequent, by a few months, to the time when we know th." coniplete work appeared. Th'} great success of the first jnrt iivlucL-d De Foe to write a second, whieli Wa; published in August, 1710; Part I. having appeared in the jn'evious April. A ma]) of the world accompanied it, to give a greater ai>pearancc of truth to th-^ talc, on whicli the travels of Crusoe were indicated, and its i)r()pcr jdace assigned to the island. In the following jircfacc to it the author laslios with deserved severity the conduct of those who liad i^ublished i)irated and abridged editions of his work: — Tho Biiccc^ tlio former part of this ^vork has mot with in tho world has yet beon no other than is acknowlodgoil to bo duo to tho surprisiiij,' variety of tlio subject, and to tho ngreoablo manner of tho perfoi-mancc. All tho endeavours of envious pooplo to roproacli it with being a romance, to s?arch it for errors in gcographj-, inconsistency in the relation, and contradictions in tho fact, have proved abortive, and as impotent as malicious. Tho just apidication of every incidout, tho religious and \isoful inferences drawn from every part, are so many testimonies to tho good design of making it public, and must legitimate all tho part that may bo called invention or parablo in the story. Tho second part, if tho Editor's opinion may pass, is (contrary to tho usago of second part«) every way as entertaining as tho first; contains as strange and surprising incidents, and as great a variety of them ; nor is tho application loss serious or suitable ; and doubtless will, to tho Hobnr as Avell as ingenious reader, bo 0V'?ry way as pmHtablo and diverting ; and this makes tho abridging this work as scandulous a? it is knavish and ridiculous ; seeing, to shorten tho book, that they inxy at^'^m to reduce tin value, they strip it of nil those re- flections, as well religious as moral, which arc not only tho greatest beauties of tho work, but aro calculated for tho infinite advantage of tho reader. lly this, they leave tho work naked of its brightest ornamonts ; and yot they would (ut tho Bamo timo they prgtcnd that the Author has .supplied tho story out of his in- vention) take from it tho iinproviMiiiMit, which alone recommends that invention to wise and good men. Tho injury tlieso men do to tlio proprietors ot works is a practice all liouost nien ubhor; and they beliovo they may challenge them to show tho difTorenco between that and robbing on tho liighway or breaking open a house. If they can't show any difr-riMico in tho crim--, thoy will find it hard to show why there should be any dilFenMico in tlu' piniishm«'nt. A few words on the .«;ouri'e whence the autliDr cst it.self lags behind, And the swift-.wing'd arrows of light. When I think of my own native land, In a moment I scorn to bo there ; r>ut, alas ! recollection at hand Soon hiinies mo back to despair. But the sea fowl is gone to her nest, Tho beast is laid down in his lair ; nOvcn hero is a season of rest, And I to my cabin repair. There's mercy in every place, And mercy, encouraging thought ! Gives even affliction a grace. And reconciles man to his lot. ;^^^. "^ k^^ >-^ ym ^TJknElVS >^- 1X4 WAS born in the year 1632, in the city of York, of a good family, though not of that country, my father being a foreigner, of Bremen, who settled first at Hull : he got a good estate by merchandise, and lea\dng off his trade, lived afterwards at York ; from whence he had married my mother, whose relations were named Robin- son, a very good family in that country, and from whom I was called Robinson Ivreutz- naer ; but, by the usual corruption of Avords in England, we are now called, nay, we call ourselves, and write our name, Crusoe and so my companions always called me. I w^t CRUSOE AT HOME WITH HIS FATHER. I liu.l two <'l»lt*r brotlieiN, one of wlioni was HeuttMiant-coloiu'l to :in English res^iineut of f.H.t ill Khiinlei-s, foriiu'rly coinmantlt'il l>y tlu^ famous (!olon<>l Lockhart, niul was killtnl at till' liattit' near Dnnkirk ai;ainst the Spaniarils, Wluit became of my second brother I never knew, any more than my father or mother iliil know what was become of me. IJeing tlie third son of the family, and not bred to any trade, my head began to be tilled very early Avith rambling thoughts : my father, -who was very ancient, had given me a competent shanj of learning, as far as housc-eilucation and a conntry free-schiM.l generally goes, and designed me for the law; bnt I would be satisfied with nothing but going to sea; and my incliuatiim to this ler daily bread, nor hanus.sed with perplexed circumstances, which rob tlit> .soul of peace, an«l the body of rest ; nor eiu-a<,'elay the young man, nor to precipitate myself into miseries which Nature, and the station of life I was born in, seemed to have provided against ', that I was tinder no necessity of seeking my bread ; that he would do well for me, and endeavour to enter me fairly into the station of life which he had just been recommending to me ; and that if I Avas not very easy and happy in the world, it must be my mere fate or fault that must hinder it ; and that he should have nothing to answer for, having thus discharged his duty in warning me against measures which he knew would be to my hurt ; in a word, that as he would do very kind things for me, if I would stay and settle at home as he directed, so he would not have so much hand in my misfortunes as to give me any encouragement to go away ; and to close all, he told me I had my elder brother for an example, to whom he had used the same earnest persuasions to keep him from going into the Low Country wars, but could net pi-evail, his young desires prompting him to run into the army, where he was killed ; and though he said he would not cease to pray for me, yet he would venture to say to me, that if I did take this foolish step, God would not bless me, and I should have leisure hereafter to reflect upon having neglected his counsel, when there might be none to assist in my recovery. I observed in this last part of his discourse, which was truly prophetic, though I suppose my father did not know it to be so himself; I say, I observed the tears run down his face very plentifully, especially when he spoke of my brother who was killed ; and that when he spoke of my having leisure to repent, and none to assist me, he was so moved that he broke off the discourse, and told me his heart was so full he could say no more to me. I was sincerely affected with this discourse, as indeed who could be otherwise ? and I resolved not to think. of going abroad any more, but to settle at home according to my father's desire. But, alas ! a few days Avore it all off ; and, in short, to prevent any of my ffvther's further importunities, in a few weeks after I resolved to Tun quite away from him. However, I did not act quite so hastily neither as the fii'st heat of my resolution prompted, but I took my mother at a time when I thought her a little more pleasant than ordinary, and told her that my thoughts were so entirely bent upon seeing the world, that I should never settle to anything with resolution enough to go through with it, and my father had better give me his consent than force me to go without it; that I was now eighteen years old, which was too late to go apprentice to a trade, or clerk to an attorney ; that I was sure, if I did, I should never serve out my time, but I should certainly run away from my master before my time was out, and go to sea ; and if she would speak to my father to let me go one voyage abroad, if I came home again, and did not like it, I would go no more, and I would ])romise, by a double diligence, to recover the time that I had lost. This put my mother into a great passion ; she told me she knew it would be to ii" purpose to speak to my father upon any such subject ; that he knew too well what was my interest to give his consent to anything so much for my hurt ; and that she wondered how I could think of any such thing after the discourse I had had with my father, and such kind and tender expressions as she knew my fother had used to me ; and that, in short, if I would ruin myself, there was no help for me ; but I might ^X'^^ _i:^i=-2^&<^j;^ "^T^ ^^^^ ^^' CASSELL'S ROBINSON CRUSOE. depend I should never have their consent to it ; that for her part, she would not liavo ;o much hand in my destniction ; and I should never have it to ^c happy if he would stay at home ; hut if he goes abroad, he will be the most miserable wretch that ever was born ; I can give no consent to it." It was not till almost a year after this that I broke loose, though, in the mean time, I continued obstinately deaf to all proposals of settling to busine.'^s, and frequently expostulated with my father and mother alx)ut their being so positively determined against wliat they knew my inclinations jjrompted me to. But being one day at Hull, whither I went casually, and without any purpose of making an t-lopement at that time ; but I .say, being there, and one of my companions being going by sea to London in his father's ship, and prompting me to go with them, with the common allurement of a seafaring man, that it .should cost me nothing for my pas.«age, I consulted neither father nor mother any more, nor so much ns sent them word of it ; but leaving them to hear of it as they might, without asking fiod's ble.>leasant in so little a time after. And now, lest my goo.l resolutions should continue, my companion who had enticed me away comes to me. "Well, r.ob," says he, clapping mo upon the shoulder, '-how do you do after it ? 1 w.irr.iut you were frighted, wer'n't you, la.st night, when it blew but a cajiful of wind ? " "A capful d'you call it ?" .sjiid I ; '"'twas a temble storm." "A stonn, you fool, you !" replies he; "do you call that a storm? why, it was nothing at all ; give us but a good ship and sea-room, and we think nothing of such a sipiall of wiiul a.s that ; but you're but a fresh-water .sjiilor, liob. Come, let us make a bowl iif ])unch, and we'll forget all that; d'ye see what charming wojither 'tis now ?" To make short this sad part of my story, we went the way of all sailors ; the punch was made, and I was made half-drunk with it ; and in that one night's wickednes.s I di-owned all )ny rei»entance, all my reflections upon my past conduct, all my resolutions for the future. In a word, as the sea was returned to its smoothness of surface and settled calmness by the abatement of that storm, so tlie hurry of my thoughts being over, my fears and ajjprehensions of being swallowed up by the sea being forgotten, and the current of my former desires returned, I entirely forgot the vows and promises that 1 made in my distress. I fouiul, indeed, some intervals of reflection ; aiul the serious thoughts did, as it were, endeavour to return again sometimes ; but I shook them off, and roused myself from them as it were from a distemper, and apj)lying myself to drink- ing and company, soon mastered the return of those lits, for so I called them ; and I had, in five or six days, got as complete a victory over my conscience as any young fellow that resolved not to be troubled with it could desire. But I was to have another trial for it still ; and Providence, as in such ca-ses generally it does, resolved to leave me entirely without excuse ; for if I would not tiike this f(u* a deliverance, the next was to be such a one as the wor.st and most hardened wretch among us would confess both the danger and the mercy. The sixtli day of our being at sea wo came into Yarmouth U )ads ; the wind liaviug been eontriuy, and the weather calm, we had made but little way since the storm. Here we were obliged to come to an anchor, and here we lay, the wind continuing contrary, viz., at south-west, for seven or eight days, during which time a great nnmy shii)sfrom Newcastle came into the same Ro\ds, as the conunnu harliour where the ships might wait for a wind for the River. We had not, however, rid here so long, \mi we should h,ivt> tided it u]» the river, but that the wind l»lew too fresh, and, after we had lain four or five days, blew v« ly hard. However, the l\o;ids being reckoned as good as an harbour, the anchorage gooil. and o\ir ground-taeklo very strong, «)ur men were unconcernetl, and ni>t in the least ap|.reheiisive of danger, but spent the tinie in rest and mirth, after the manner of tlu' s to the ]»uini», and tlinistinj^ mo aside witli his foot, U^t me lie, thinking,' I had been dead ; and it was a great while before I canje to myself. We worked on ; but the water inereasing in the hold, it was apparent that the .ship would founder ; and though the storm begaa to abate a little, yet as it was not pas.sible hlie coidd swim till we might run into any port, so the master continue*! firing guns for help ; and n light ship, who had rid it out just ahead of u.«», ventured a boat out to help us. It wa.s with the utmost hazard the bout came near us ; but it was impossible for us to get on board, or for the boat t(j lio near the ship'.s .side, till at la.st the men rowing very heartily, and venturing their lives to .save ours, our men cast them a rope over the stem with a buoy to it, and then veered it out a great length, which they, after much labour and hazard, took hohl of, and we hauled them close under our .stern, and got all into their boat. It was to no purpo.se for them or us, after we were in the boat, to tliink of reaching to their own shiji ; so all agreed to let her drive, and only to jiull her ill towards .shore as much as we could; and our master promi.sed them, that if the boat was staved iipou .shore, lie would make it good to their master : so jiartly rowing, and jtartly driving, our boat went away to the northward, sloping towards the .shore almost as far as Winterton Ness. We were not much more than a quarter of an hour out of oiu* .ship till we .ssiw her sink, and then I understood for the first time what was meant l)y a sliip foundering in the sea. I must acknowledge T had hardly eyes to look uj) when the seamen told me she was .sinking; for from the moment that they rather put me into the boat, than that I might be .'^aid to go in, my heart wa.s, as it were, dead within me, partly with fright, partly with horror of mind, and the thoughts of what was yet before me. While we were in this condition, the men yet hibouring at the oar to bring the boat near the .shore, we could .see (when, our boat mounting the wave.", wc were able to see the .shore) a great many peoi)lc running along the strand, to a.ssi.st \is when we should come near ; but we made but slow way towards the shore ; nor wrre we able to rraeh the shore till, being i)ast the lighthouse at Winterton, the .shore falls off to the westward, towards ( "ronu-r, and .so the hind broke off a little the violence of the wind. Here we got in, and, though not without much iliiliculty, got all safe on shore, and walked afterwards on foot to Yarmouth, ■where, as unfortunate men, we were usi-d with great Inunanity, as wi-11 l)y the magistrates of the town, win) assigned us got^l quarters, iis by pailieular merchants and owners of .ship.s, ami had money given us^sutlicient to carry tis either to London or back to Hull, as we thought tit. J lad I now had the smst.' to have gone bark to Hull, and have gone lunne, I had been ha]>py, and my father, an emblem tif our blcs-sL^l Saviour's par.dde, had even killed the fatted calf for me ; for hearing the .ship I went away in wivs cast away in ynrmouth Koads, it was a great while befouc he had any itssuranees that I was not drowned. But my ill fatr jmisIh'iI nii> on now with an obstiuai-y that nothing could resist ; aiid though 1 luul .s«'veral times loud calls from my reu.son, and my more composed judgmen', to go home, y«'t I had no pow«'r to do it. 1 know not what t«) call this, nor will I urge that it is a secret oNcrnding decree that hurries us o)i to be the iu.>truments of our own destruction, mssed tho.so conceits .so forcibly upon nu-, as to make me deaf to all good advice, and to the entreaties aud ovt-n the commands of my father : 1 say, the same influence, whatever it was, presented the most unfortunate of all enterprises tt> my view ; and I lo ROBINSON CRUSOE. ^ff& mnm Aveut on board a vessel bound to the coast of Africa ; or, as our bailors vulgarly c it, a voyage to Guinea.* It was my great misfortune that in all these adventures I did not ship myself as sailor ; when, though I might indeed have worked a little harder than ordinary, j-et the same time I should have learnt the duty and office of a foremast man, and in tiin might have qualified myself for a mate or lieutenant, if not for a master. Bui as it was always my fate to choose for the worst, so I did here; for having money in my pocket, and good clothes upon my back, I would always go on board in the habit of a gentleman ; and so I neither had any business in the ship nor learnt to do any. It was my lot first of all to fall into pretty good company in London, which does not ahvays happen to such loose and misguided young fellows as I then was ; the devil generally not omitting to lay some snai'e for them very early ; but it Avas not so with me. I first got acquainted -with the master of a ship who had been on the coast of Guinea ; and who, having had very good success there, was resolved to go again ; this captain taking a fancy to my conversation, which was not at all disagreeable at that time, hearing me say I had a mind to see the world, told me if I would go the voyage Avith him, I should be at no expense ; I should be his messmate and his companion ; and if I could cairy anything with me, I should have all the advantage of it that the trade would admit ; and perhaps I might meet with some encouragement. I embi-aced the offer ; and entering into a strict friendship with this captain, who was an honest, plain-dealing man, I went the voyage with him, and caoried a small adventure with me, which, by the disinterested honesty of my friend the captaui, I increased vei-y considerably ; for I carried about £40 in such toys and trh^es as the captain directed me to buy. This £40 I had mustered together by the assistance of some of my relations whom I corresponded with, and who, I believe, got my father, or at least my mother, to contribute so much as that to my fu-st adventure. This was the only voyage which I majS say was successful in all my adventures, and wliich I owe to the integrity and honesty of my friend the captain ; imder whom also I got a competent knowledge of the mathematics and the rules of navigation, learned how to keep an account -of the ship's course, take an observation, and, in short, to under- stand some things that wei-e needful to be understood by a sailor ; for, as he took delight to instruct me, I took delight to learn ; and, in a word, this voyage made Ine both a sailor and a merchant ; for I brought home five pounds nine ounces of gold-dust for my adventure, which yielded me in London, at my i*eturn, almost £300 ; and this filled me with those aspiring thoughts which haA^e since so completed my ruin. Yet even in this A-oyage I had my misfortunes too ; particularly, that I Avas con- tinually sick, being throAvn into a A-iolent calenture by the excessiA'e heat of the climate; our principal trading being upon the coast, from the latitude of fifteen degrees north, eA^en to the line itself. I AA^as now set up for a Guinea trader ; and my friend, to my great misfortune, dying soon after his arrival, I res,olved to go the same voyage again, and I embarked in the same vessel with one Avho AA'as his mate in the former voyage, and had now got the command of the ship. This was the unhappiest voyage that ever man made ; for though I did not carry quite £100 of my ncAv-gained Avealth, so that I had £200 left Avhich I had lodged Avith my friend's AvidoAv, Avho Avas very just to me, yet I fell into * Guinea.— A distr ict of that part of the West Coast of Africa where the land runs nearly due cast and <\ west. The six countries into which it is divided are known to sailors under the names of Sierra Leone, Grain Coast, Ivory Coast, Gold Coast, Slave Coast, and Benin. II If/J ■M m terrible iiii;;fortiities in this voyage ; iiiul the rir.st wius this, viz., our .ship nuiking hi r cour.s«> towftrtls tlio Canary l.-slantls, or rather between tho.se lalamls and the African shore, \va.s surpri.sed in the grey of the morning by a Moorish rover of S;dleo, who ga\ i> chase to u.s with all the sail she could make. We crowded also as ranch canvas a^s our yard.s M-ould spread, or our masts carry, to have got cleju' ; but finding the j)irate gained upon us, and would certainly come up with us in a few hours, we prepared to tight ; our .ship having twelve gun.s, and the rogue eighteen. About three in the afternoon he came up with u.H, and bringing to, by mistake, just athwart our quarter, instead of athwart our .sti'rn,iuslie intended, we l>rought eight of our guns to l)ear on that side, and poured in a broadside upon hini, whi«h made him .sheer off again, after returning our tire, and pour- ing in also his small .shot, from near two hundreij nu'U which he had on board. However, wehaduota nnm touched, all our men keeping close. He prepared to attack us again, and we to defend ourselves ; but laying us on board the next time upon our other (juartwr, ho entered sixty men upon our decks, who immediately fell to cutting and hacking the .sails and rigging. We plied them with small shot, half-pikes, powder- chest-s and such like, and cleared our deck of them twice. However, to cut short this melancholy part of our story, our .sliip being disabled, and three of our men killcmo longer than usual without fitting out his ship, which, as I heard, was for want of money, ho u»eroor, one of his kinsmen, and the youth the Morosco, as they called him, to catch a dish of fish for him. It liappened one time, that going a-fishing with him in a calm morning, a fog rose no thick, that though wo were not half a league from tho shore, we lost sight of it ; and rowing we knew not whither f»r which way, we laboured all day, and all the next night ; and when the morning came, we found we had pidled out to sea iustesul of pulling in for tho shore ; and that we were at least two leagues from the land. However, we got well in again, though with a great deal of labour, and some danger; for the wind !x*gan to bh»w pretty fre«h in the morning ; but particularly we were all very hungry. Hut «»ur patron, warned by this disaster, resolved to take more care of himself for lh« future ; and having lying by liim the long-boat of our English ship which he bad taken, he i*Holve)ottles « f tM h liquor UM he thought fit to drink ; and ])articidarly his bread, rice, and coftee. \\'»« went freijuvntly out with this b<»ut n-fishing ; and as I was most dexteit)U3 to cntoh fish for hin», he never went without nie. It happened that he had ap- p<>int««l to go out in this Uuit, either for pleasure or for fish, with two or three Moors of some ilistinction in that place, and for whom ho had provided oxti-aordi- nurily, and liad therefore sent on Ixwird tho Ixwit over-night a larger store of pro. visions tluin usuid ; and hii'l ortlered jno to get ready threo fusils* with powder and shot, which were on lioard his ship, for that they designed some sport of fowling as well ns fishing. I "got all things ready as ho had directed ; and waited the next morning with the b»iat, wnxhod clean, h«r nncientt ancl jiendatits out, and everything to jicconuno- dute his Kuc.^ts ; when by-and-by my patron camo on board alone, and told mo his guests had put off going, froni some business that fell out, and ordered mo, with the man ami lw>y, us usual, to go out with the Ixmt aufl catch them some fidi. for f'Htil, a Fmiih wonl, mmuiiiii; a li^'ht muskot or firelock. + AH.,fHl. the ol.l «,.r,l ■l„r;.-„.l f.. l.„ Kr«.nch fnsri.r:-. ' 14 the man who > CRUSOE MAKES HIS ESCAPE. that his friends were to sup at his house ; he commaudad me too, that as soon as I had got some fish, I should bring it home to his house : all which I prepared to do. This moment, my former notions of deliverance darted into my thoughts, for now 1 I'ouud I was likely to have a litL 3 ship at my command; and my master being gone, I prepared to furnish myself, u t for fishing business, but for a voyage ; though I knew not, neither did I so much t.3 consider, whither I would steer ; for anywhere to get out of that place was my desire. My first contriv^ance was to make a pretence to speak to this Moor, to get some- thing for our subsistence on board ; for I told him we mu.st not presume to eat of our patron's bread. He said, that was true ; so he brought a large basket of rusk or biscuit of their kind, and three jars with fresh Avater, into the boat. I knew where my patron's case of bottles stood, which it was evident, by the make, were taken out of some English prize, and I conveyed them into the boat while the Moor was on shore, as if they had been there before for our master. I conveyed also a great lump of bees- wax into the boat, which weighed about half an hundredweight, with a parcel of twine or thread, a hatchet, a saw, and a hammer, all of which were of great use to us after- wards, especially the wax to make candles. Another trick I tried upon him, which he innocently came into also : his name was Ismael, which they call Muley, or Moely 3 so I called to him : — " Moely," said I, " our patron's guns are all on board the boat ; can you not get a little powder and shot 1 It may be we may kill some alcamies (a fowl like our curlews) for ourselves, for I know he keeps the gunner's stores in the ship." " Yes," says he, " I'll bring some :" accordingly, he brought a great leather pouch, which held about a pound and a half of powder, or rather more ; and another with sliot, that had five or six i)ounds, with some bullets, and put all into the boat. At the same time, I had found some powder of my master's in the great cabin, with which I filled one of the large bottles in the case, which was almost emjity, pouring what was in it into another ; and thus furnished with everything needful, we sailed out of the port to fish. The castle, which is at the entrance pf the port, knew who we were, and took no notice of us ; and we were not above a mile out of the port before we hauled in our sail, and sat us down to fish. The wind blew from the N.N.E., which, was contraiy to my desire ; for had it blo\vn southerly, I had been sure to have made the coast of Spain, and at least reached to the bay of Cadiz ; but my resolutions were, blow which way it would, I would be gone from that horrid place where I was, and leave the rest to fate. After we had fished some time and caught nothing, for when I had fish on my hook I would not pull them up, that he might not see them, 1 said to the Moor, " This will not do ; our master will not be thus served ; we must stand farther oftV He, think- ing no harm, agreed, and, being in the head of the boat, set the sails j and, as I had the helm, I ran the boat out near a league farther, and then brought her to as if I would fish ; when, giving the boy the helm, I stepped forward to where the Moor was, and making as if I stooped for something behind him, I took him by surprise with my arm under his waist, and tossed him clear overboard into the sea. He rose im- mediately, for he swam like a cork, and called to me, begged to be taken in, telling me he would go all over the world with me. He swam so strong after the boat, that he woujd have reached me very quickly, there being but little wind ; upon which I stepped into the cabin, and fetching one of the fowling-pieces, I jiresented it at him, and told him I had done him no hurt, and if he would be quiet I would do him none : " But," said I, ''vou swim well enough to reach the shoi-e, and the sea is calm; make- tin 15 lu'st of ytfur way to shore, aiul I will «lo you ni> lianu ; l»ul it" you come near tlio lioat, I'll slio<»t yoji through the liead, for I am resolved to have my liberty." So he turned himself about, and swam for the shore, : nd I make no dou)»t but he reached it V. itii rase, for he was an excellent swimmer. 1 could have been content to have taken thi.-> Moor with me, and have drowned the I'oy, but there was no venturing to trust liim. When he was gone, I turned to tl:e boy, whom they called Xury, and said to liim, " Xury, if you will be faithful to me, I'll make you a great man ; but if you will not stroke your face to be true to me," that is, swear by Mahomet and his father's beard, " I must throw you into the sea too" The boy smiled in my faee, and spoke so innocently, that I could not mistrust him, a-i I swore to be faithful to me, and go all over the world with me. Whih' I wa.s in the view of the !Moor that was swimming, I stood out directly to sea, with the l)oat rather stretching to windward, that they might think me gone towards the Strait«'* mouth (as indeed any one tliat had been in their wits must have beeu supjwsed to do) : for who would have supposed we were sailing on to tli.- southward to the truly barbarian coast, where whole nations of negroes were sure to surround us with their canoes, and destroy us; where we could never once go on shore but we slionid be devoured by savage beasts, oi" more merciless savages of liiiiiiau kind I l!ut as soon as it grew dtisk in tlie evening, T changed my oouinc, and steered directly south and by e:ust, bending my course a little towards the east, that I might keep in with the shore : and having a fair, fresh gale of wind, and a smooth, quiet sea, I made such sjiil that I ])elieve by the next day at three o'clock in the afternoon, when I lirst made the land, I could not be less than one hundred and fifty miles south «'|' Sallee : quite beyond the Knqteror of .Morocco's dominions, or iiid<>ed of any other kin.( thereabouts, for we sjiw no peojde. ^■et such was the fright I had taken at the Mnois, and tlie dieailt'ul appi*ehensions I had of falling into tln'ir hands, that I would not st*, that the poor Ixty was ready to die with feai-, and begged of me not to go on shore till day. "Well, Xury," .said I, 'then I won't : but it maybe we nuiv see men by day, who will be as bad to tis as those lion-." " Then we give them the shoot gun," says Xin-y, laughing, '-make them run wey." Such Kngli.sh Xury spoke i>v eon\ersing ann>ng us slaxe.s. However, I was glad to see the boy so eheerftil, :ind I gave him a dram (out of our patron's ca.se of bottles) to cheer him tq». After idl, .Xury's ailvice was good, and I took it : we tlropped our little anchor, and lay still all night; I say still, for we slept m.ne ; for in two or three hours we saw v.ist great creatures (we knew not what to c.ill them), »>f many .sorts, conie dowii t.. the se.i-shore, and run into the water, wallowiu" anring some to nio. I asked him why he would go ? why 1 should not go, and ho Htav in the l>oat ? The boy answered with so much aftectiou, that made me lovr t hii »n.r. Hava he, "If wild mans come, they eat me, you go wey.' W Xur}'," said I, " we will both go, and if the wild mans come, we will kill thenif they AhaU rat neither of us." So 1 gave Xury a piece of nisk-bread to cat, and a dram out of our iMitron'H case of bottlej* which I mentioned before ; and we hauled the boat in as near the Hhoro as we thought was proper, and waded on shore, carrying nothing but our anna, and two jai-s for water. I did not euro to go out of sight of the boat, fearing the coming of Cannes with hrtVftges di)wn the river ; but the lx)y, seeing a low place about a mile up the country, r.iniblfd to it, and by-aud-by I .s;iw him come running towards me. I thought he was purs ieoor Xury came with, was to tell me he had found good water, and seen no wild mans. liut we found afterwards that we need not take such j)ains for water, for a little higher \\v the creek where wo were we found the water fresh when the tide was out, which flows but a little way up ; so we filled our jars, and fwisted on the hare wo had killeil, and prepared to go on our way, having seen no footsteps of any human creature in that jKirt of the countr}'. A.s 1 had been one voyage to this coast before, I knew very well that the islands of tUo Umaries, ami the Cape do Verd Islands also, lay not far oft' from the coast. But as J had no instruments to tiiko an olxservation to know what latitude we were in, and •litl not exactly know, or at least not remember, what latitude they were in, I knew not whore to look for them, or when to stand off to sea towards them ; otherwise I might now oaHily have found some of these islands. But my hoi)o was, that if I stood along this coast till I came to that part where the English traded, I .should find some of their vejwols u|K)t» their usual design of tiade, that would relieve and take us in. By the Iwst of my calculation, that jilace where I now was must bo that country whieh, lying bi-tween the Kinperor of l\Ioroceo's dominions and the negroes, lies waste and uninhabited, except \y wild beasts; tho negroes having abaiuhuied it, and gone farther sotith, for fear of tho Mooi-s ; and tho Mooi-s not thinking it worth inhabiting, by reason of its bari-enne.ss ; and indeed both .brsjiking it because of the prodiginus nunilMM-s of ligei-s, lions, leopards, and other furious creatures which harbour there ; so that tho Moors uso it for their hunting only, where they go like an army, two or three thousand nien at a titne : and, indeed, for near a hundred miles together upon this e.«vst, wo Haw nothing btit a waste uninhabited country by day, and heard nothing '"!( howlingH and roarings of wild beasts by night. Onoo or twice in tho day-time, I thought 1 siiw the Pico of TeneritVe, b. ing iho high top of tho mountain Tenerifle in the (.'.maries ; ajul had a great mind to venture out, in hopes of reaching thither ; Imt having tried twice, I was forced in aijain by rontnxry winds, tho sea also going too high for my little vessel ; .so I resolved pursue my first de.-sii;n, and kepp :i1.M!. i: li.r.-. ROBINSON CRUSOE I S Several times I was obliged to land for fresh water, after we had left this place ; and once in ])articular, being early in the morning, we came to an anchor under a little point of land, which was pretty high ; and the tide beginning to flow, we lay still to go farther in. Xury, whose eyes were more about him than it see*ns mine Avere, calls softly to me, and tells me that we had best go farther off the shore ; " for," says he, " look, yonder lies a dreadful monster on the side of thkt hillock, fast asleep." I looked where he pointed, and saw a dreadful monster indeed, for it was a tei'rible great lion that lay on the side of the shore, under the shade of a piece of the hill that hung as it were a little OA-er him. "Xury," says I, "you shall go on shore and kill him." Xury looked frighted, and said, " 3Ie kill ! he eat me at one mouth ; " one moiithful he meaiit. However, T said no more to the boy, but bade him be still, and took our biggest gun, which was almost musket-bore, and loaded it with a good charge of powdei", and Avith two slugs, and laid it down ; then I loaded another gun with two bullets ; and the third (for we had three pieces) I loaded^'ith five smaller bullets. I took the best aim I could Avith the first piece to have shot him in the head, but he lay so, with his leg raised a little above his nose, that the slugs hit his leg about the knee, and broke the bono. He started up, growling at first, but finding his leg broke, fell doAvn again ; and then got up upon three legs, and gaA^e the most hideous roar that ever I heard. I was a little sui-prised that I had not hit. him on the head ; however, I took up the second piece immediately, and though he began to moA'e off, fired again, and shot him iu the head, and had the pleasure to see him drop ; and making but little noise, he lay struggling for life. Then Xury took heart, and Avould have me let him go on shore. " Well, go," ,said I ; so the boy jumped into the Avater, and taking the little gun iu one hand, SAvam to shore Avith the other hand, and coming close to the creature, put the muzzle of the piece to his ear, and shot him in the head again, Avliich despatched him quite. This Avas game indeed to ws, but this Avas no food ; and I AA^as very sorry to lose three charges of powder and shot upon a creature that Avas good for nothing to us. HowcA-ei', Xury said he Avould have some of him ; so he comes on board, and asked me to give him the hatchet. " For Avhat, Xury 1 " said I. " 'Me cut off his head," said he. However, Xury could not cut off his head, but he cut off a foot, and brought it with him, and it Avas a monstrous gi-eat one. I bethought myself, however, that pei'haps the skin of him might, one Avay or other, be of some value to us ; and I resolved to take off his skin if I could. So Xury and I went to work Avith him ; but Xury was much the better Avorkman at it, for I knew very ill how to do it. Indeed, it took us tip both the whole day, but at last Ave got off the hide of him, and spreading it on the top of our cabin, the sun effectually dried it in two days' time, and it aftei'Avards served me to lie Tipou. After this stop, we made on to the soutliAvard continually for ten or tAveh-e days, living very sparingly on our proA'isions, Avhich began to abate very much, and going no oftener into the shore than Ave were obliged to for fresh water. ]\Iy design in this Avas, to make the River Gambia or Senegal ; that is to say, anywhere about the Cape de Yerd, Avhere I was in hopes to meet with some European ship ; and if I did not, I knew not Avhat course I had to take, but to seek for the islands, or perish there among the negroes. I knew that all the ships from Europe, Avhicli sailed either to the coast of Guinea or to Brazil, or to the East Indies, made this cape, or those islands ; and, in a AA'-ord, I put the whole of my fortune upon this single point, either that I must meet Avith some ship, or must perish. 19 M ROIilNSOX CRUSOE. A When I liiid pui-sued this resolutiou about ten days longer, as I have said, I began to .see that tlic land was inhabited ; and in two or three jtlaces, as -vve sailed by, we saw l.r<)].le stand upon tlie shore to look at us ; we could also i)erceive they were (juite black, !ind stark naked. I Mas once inclined to have gone on shore to them; but Xury was my better coun.sellor, and said to me, " No go, no go." However, I hauled in ne;ircr the shore that I might talk to them, and I found they ran Jiloug the shore by me a good way : I ob.servcd they had no weajjons in their hands, except one, who had a long_ slender stick, which Xmy said was a lance, and that they could throw them a great way with good aim : so I kei)t at a distance, but talked with them by signs as well as I could ; and jtarticularly made signs for something to eat : they beckoned to me to stop my boat, and they would fetch me some meat. Upon this, I lowered the top of my .s;iil, and lay by, and two of them ran up into the country, and in less than half an hour came back, and brought with them tMo itieces of drv flesh and some corn, such as is the l)rodi!ce of their country ; but we neither knew what the one or the other was : how- ever, we were willing to accept it, but how to come at it was our next dispute, for I would not venture on shore to them, and they were as much afraid of us : but they took a ."iafe way for us all, for they brought it to the shore and laid it down, and went and stood a great way off till we fetched it on board, and then came close to us again, "\Vc made signs of thanks to them, for we had nothing to make them amends ; but an oi>poi-tunity otlered that \c\y instant to oblige them wonderfully: for while we were lying on the shore, came two mighty creatures, one pursuing the other (as we took it) with great fury from the mountains towards the sea; whether it was the male piu- stiing the female, or whether they were in sj)ort or in rage, we could not tell, any more lliau we could tell whether it was usual or strange : but I believe it was the latter ; bcoaiiso, in the iirst place, those ravenous creatures seldom appear but in the night ; ami, in (he second i)lace, we found the ])eople terribly frighted, especially the women. '1 he man that had the lance or dart did not fly from them, but the rest did ; however, ;i.s the two creatures ran directly into the water, they did not offer to fall upon any of the negroe.«, but ))lungcd themselves into the sea, and swam about, as if they had come i'>r their diversion : at last one of them began to come nearer our boat than at first I expceted ; but I lay ready for him, for I had loaded my gun with all possible expe- dition, and bade Xury load both the otlier.s. As soon as he came fairly within my i< iich, I fired, and .»-liot him directly in the head : immediately he .snik down into the watir, but rose instantly, and plunged up and down, as if In- was struggling for life, and so indeed he was: he immediately made to the sIku-c ; but between the wound, which Mas his mortal hurt, and the strangling of the Mater, he died just before he reached the shore. It is inipo.ssil.lo ttt express the nstonishment of tlie.so poor creatures at the noi.-ic and IJif! of my gun ; sonie of them wrvv ready even to die for fear, and fell down a\s dead M i(li (ho very terror. ]htt mIu-u they saM- the eretiture dead, and sunk into the Mater, and flat I made signs to them to come to the .shore, they took heart and came to the .shore, and 1m '^iiu to .search for the creature. I found him by his blood staining the Avatcr : and by (Ik' Ik Ip of a rope, Mhieh 1 sluwg round him, and gavo the negroe.** to haul, tliey dragged liiui on .shcire, and found tluit it Mas n most curious leopard, sjiotted, and fine to an admirable degree; and the negroes held up (heir hands Midi admiration, to think what it wjus 1 killed him Mith. The other creature, frighted widi tl,,' (lash of lire and the noise of the gun, swam to (he shore, and ran up direedy to tlio numutains from Mheure tli. > 'If .=1 ig^ig ^g^^ gsss s g^ssg^s^ggsgsgsgg^ssssssssssgss^^ OFF CAPF DI-: VERD. at that distance know what it was. I found quickly the ncgi-oes were for eating the flesh of this creature, so I was willing to have them take it as a favour from nie ; which, when I made signs to them that they might take it, they were veiy thankful for. Immediately they fell to work with him ; and though they had no knife, yet, with a shuri)cncd piece of wood, they took oft* his skin as readily, and much more readily, than WG would have done with a knife. They oftered me some of the flesh, which I declined, making a^ if I would give it them ; but made signs for the skin, which they gave me very freely, and brought me a great deal more of their pi'ovision, which, though I did not imderstand, yet I accepted. l*laen I made signs to them for some water, and held out one of my jars to them, turning its bottom \ipward, to show that it was empty, and that I wanted to have it tilled. They called immediately to some of their fiiends, and there came two women, and brought a great vessel made of earth, and burnt, as I sujipose, in the sun ; this they set down for me, as before, and I sent Xury on shore with my jars, and filled them all three. Tiie women were as stark naked as the men. 1 was now furnished with roots and corn, such as it was, and water ; and leaving my friendly negioes, I made forward for about eleven days more, without offering to go }icar the shore, till I saw the land run out a great length into the sej\, at about the di.stance of four or five leagues before me ; and the sea being very calm, I kept a large ufling to make this point. At length, doubling the point at about two leagues from the land, I saw i)lainly land on the other side, to seaward ; then I concluded, as it was most certain indeed that this was the Cape de Verd, and those the islands called, from thence. Capo dc Verd Islands. However, they were at a great distuncc, and I could not well tell what I had best do ; for if I should be takoi with a fresh gale of wind, I might neither reach one or other. In this dilemma, as I was very pensive, I stepped into the cabin, and sat me down, Xury having the helm ; when, on a sudden, the boy cried (mt, "!Ma.ster, master, a ship with a sail !" and the foolish boy was frighted oiit of his wits, thinking it must needs be some of his master's ships sent to i)urHue us, when I knew we were gotten far enough out of their rcacli. I jumped out of the cabin, and immediately saw, not only the ship, but that it was a l'ortug\iese ship ; and, as I thought, waa bound to the coast of Guinea, for negroes. But, when I observed the course she steered, I was soon convinced they were bound some other way, aiul did not design to go any nearer the shore : upon which I stretched out to the sea as much as I could, resolving to speak with them if j)o.s.sible. With all the sail I could make, 1 found I should not be able to come in their way, but that they would bo gone by before I could make any signal to them : but after I had crowded to the utmost, and began to despair, they, it seems, sixw me by the help of their i)erspective glasses, and that it was some European boat, which they supi>osed nuist belong to some ship that was lost ; so they .shortened s;iil to let me come up. I was encouraged with this, and as I had my patron's ancient on board, I made a waft of it to them for a signal of distress, and fireil a gun, both which they saw ; for they told me they saw the smoke, though they did not hear the gun. ITjwn these signals they very kindly brought to, and lay by for me ; and in about three horn's' time I cann* up with thcin. They asked me what I was, in rortugticse, and in Spanish, and in French, but I understood none of them ; but at last a Scotch sailor, who was on board, called to me : and I answered him, aiul told him I was an Englishman, that had made my escape out of slavery from tlie ^Moors at Sal lee ; they then bade n>o come on board, and very kindly took me in, and all my g<^olau for niy plantation and settlement ; sucli a one a.s mighc l)e suitaWe to the stock which I proposed to myself to receive from England. I had a nciglibour, a P first; so that, if it come .safe, you may order the rest the same way; and if it miscarry, you may have the other half to have recourse to for your supply." This was so wholesome advice, and looked so frieniUy, that I could not b\it bo convinced it was the best course I could take ; so I accordingly prepared lettei-s to tho gentlewoman with whom I had left my money, and a procumtion to the Portuguese captain, as he desired. -4 I wrote the English captain's widow a full account of all my adventures, my slavery, escape, and how I had met with the Portuguese captain at sea, the humanity of his behaviour, and what condition I Avas now in, with all other necessary directions for my supply ; and when this honest captain came to Lisbon, he found means, by some of the English merchants there, to send over not the order only, but a full account of my story, to a merchant at London, who represented it effectually to her ; whereupon she not only delivered the money, but out of her own pocket sent the Portugal captain a very handsome present for his humanity and charity to me. The merchant in London vested this hundred pounds in English goods, such as the captain had written foi-, sent them directly to him at Lisbon, and he brought them all safe to me to the Bi'azils ; among which, without my direction (for I was too young in my business to think of them), he had taken, care to have all sorts of tools, iron work, and utensils necessary for my plantation, and Avliich wei-e of great use to me. When this cai'go arrived, I thought my fortune made ; for I was surprised with the joy of it ; and my good steward the captain, had laid out the five pounds, which my friend had sent him for a present for himself, to purchase and bring me over a servant, under bond for six years' service, and would not accept of any consideration, except a little tobacco, which I would have him accept, being of my own produce. Jl; for my goods being all English manufacture, such as clotli. vt'iHs Uize, uii.l tilings imrticularly valuaMo ami desii-ablo in the country, I founerity is oftentimes made the very means of our grcato>t ndvcrsity, «4> wa« it with me. I went on the next year with great success in my plan- tation : I raised lifly great i-olls of tobacco on my own ground, more than I hud dispo.^cd of fi>r necessariiu antong my neighboui-s ; and these fifty roUa, being each of above a hundred weight, were well cured, and laid by against the return of the fleet from Linljon. And now incre:ising in biisincs-t and wealth, my head began to be full of projects and undertakings beyond my reach ; such as are indeed often the niiu of the be«t heiula in business. Had I continued in the station I was now in, I had i-oom for all the happy things to have yet befallen me, for which my father- so earnestly recom- mendetl a quiet, retired life, and which he had so sensibly described the middle htation of life to be full of; but other things attended me, and I was still to be the wilful agent of all my own miseries ; and particularly, to increase my fault, and double the reliectii.uH uinni myself, which in my future sorrows I should have leisure to make, all thcHo miMeaX'riagea were procured by my apparent obstinate adhering to my fixdish inclination of wandering abroad, and pursuing thai inclination, in contradiction to the clearest virws c f doing myself good in a fair and plain pui-suit of tho.-e prospects and Iho- mensnrrH f.f life, which nature and Providence concun-ed to present me with, 1 Ut make my duty. \h 1 liad onco dou«' thus in breaking away from my parents, so I could not be C'-iit'iit now, but 1 nnihtgo and leave the happy view I liad of being a rich and thriving nmn in my new plantation, only to pui-suo a nish and immodemto desire of rising faster than the nature of the thing admitted; and thus I cast myself down again into tlie de«*i)rjit gulf of human misery that ever man fell into, or perhajw cmild be consistent with life, and n Htato of h»MiUh in the world. To enmo thou by just degrees to iho jiarticulars of this part of my story: — You may nuppo^ip, that having now lived almost four years in the Brazils, and beginning to thrive and proxper very woll npon my pl!int4ition, I had not only learned the Ungunge, hut liad coi;' "ee and friendship among my fellow-plantei-s, as v-!I at rtuong the i Sulvadorc, which was our port; and that, \\\ I 'o among th.ni, 1 iiud iV.ipiently given them an account of my two voyag f rf (I'uinca, the manner of trading with the negroes there, aiul how easy i u|H>u the coaxt fi>r triJloM — .^ueli iis beads, ti>y.s knives, scissors, hatchets, 1 tlie like — not only gold-du>'t, (Juinea grains elephants' teeth, «fec., but nigrttos, t' ■ i>f the Bnuils in great numbers. They I ^ yn vi'ry attentively to my diseourses on these heads, but especially to that part which n'iated to the buying negnies ; wliieh was a trade, at that time, net only not far entered into, but, an far as it wa^ had been carried on by tho Assiento, or jK-rmi-'winu of the King of Simin and rortur^al, and engrossed in the public stock ; so that few ne_;r'>. i \V( re brought, ane St. Augustino; from whence, keeping farther off at sea, wc lost sight of land, and steered as if we were bound for the isle Fernando de Noronha, holding our coui-sc N.K by N., and leav- ing those isles on the east. In this course we passed the line in about twelve days time, and were, by our liust observation, in seven degrees twenty-two minute-; northern latitude, when a violent tornado, or hurricane, took us quite out of our knowledge. It began from the south-east, came about to the north-west, and then settled into the n(jrth-ea.st ; from whence it blew in such a tenil»le manner, that fur twelve days together we could do nothing but drive, and, scudding away before it, let it carry us wherever fate ajid the fury of the winds directed ; and during these twelve days, I need not say that I expected every day to be swallowed uj) ; nor did any in the ship exj)cct to save their lives. In this distress we had, besides the terror of the storm, one of our men died of the calenture, and a man and a boy washed overboard. About the twelfth day, the weather abating a little, the master made an observation as well Jis he could, and found that he was in about eleven degrees of north latitude, but that he was twenty-two dcgi'ees of longitude difference west from Cape St. Augustino ; so that he found he was gotten upon the coast of Guiana, or the north jiart of JJrazil, beyond the viver Amazones, towards that of the river (,)roonoque, commonly called the Great lliver ; and ncnv he began to considt with me what coui-se he should take ; for the ship was leaky, and very much disiil>led, and he was for going directly b.ick to the coast of Brazil. I was jtositively against that; and looking over the charts of the .sea-coast of America with him, we concluded there was no inhabited country for us to have recourse to till we came within the circle of the Garribbee Islands, and therefore resolved to stand away for IJarbadoes ; which, by keeping oft' at sea, to avoid the in-dnift of tli^' bay or gulf of ^Mexico, wc might easily ])erform, as wc hoped, in about fifteen days sjiil ; whereas wo could not possibly make our voyage to the coast of Africa without sonic assistance both to our ship and to our.selves. AVith this design we changed our coui-se, and stcevcd away N.W. by "W., in order to reach some of our I'lnglish islands, where I hoped for relief; but our voyage was other- wise detennined ; for, being in the latitude of twelve degrees eighteen minutes, a second storm came upon us, which eanicd us away with the siinie impetuosity westward, and drove tis so out of the way of all Iminau commerce, that had all our lives been sjivcd the sea, we were rather in daiiL,'cr of being devoured by savages, than evt-r liiniiiii,' to our own country. In this distn'ss, the wind still blowing very hard, on<> of our men early one morning cried out, " Land ! " and we had no sooner run out of the eabin to look out, in hopes of seeing whereabouts in the world wo were, than the ship struck upon a santl, and in a moment^ her motion being .so stopped, the .'sea broke over her in such a n>anner, that we expected wo shoidd all have perishetl immediately ; and wc were even driven into our close (piarters, lo shelter us from the very foam and spray of the s»'a. t is not easy for any (juo who has not been in tlie like Condition to dcstril'c or conceive the consternation of men in such circunistunei's. We knew noticing where we wore, or upon what land it was Me were driven ; whether an island or the main, THE CREW TAKE TO THE BOAT. wliethcr iiiliabitcJ or not inhabited. As the rago of the wind was still great, though rather less than at first, vro could not so much as hope to have the ship hold many ,' minutes -without brciiking in pieces, unless the winds, by a kind of minicle, should turn imnu'diatfly about. In a word, we .s;it looking otic upon another, and expecting deatli every muuient, and every man acting accordingly, as ]»rcparing for another M'orld ; for there was little or nothing more for us to do in tliis; that which was our present c jmfort, and all the comfort wo had, was that, contrary to our expectation, the ship tlid not break yet, and that the master said the wind btgan to abate. Now, though we thought tliat the wind did a little abate, yet the shi]) having thus stnick upon the .sand, and sticking too fast for us to expect her getting off, we were in a dreadful condition indeed, and had nothing to do but to think of saving our lives as well as we could. Wo had a boat at our stern just before the storm, but she was first st;ived by dashing against the ship's rudder, and in the next jdace she broke away, and either sunk, or was driven off to soa ; so there was no hoj)e from her. "NVe had another boat on board, but how to get her off into the sea was a doubtful thing ; however, there was no room to debate, for we fancied the shij) would break in jiieces every minute, and some told us she was actually broken already. In this distress, the mate of our vessel lays hold of the boat, and with the help of the rest of the men, they got her flung over the ship's side ; and getting all into her, let go, and committed ourselves, being eleven in number, to God's mercy and the wild sea : for though the storm was abated considerably, yet the sea went dreadfully high upon the shore, and might be well called den ivild zee, as the Dutch call the sea in a storm. And now our case was very dismal indeed; for Ave all s.i\v plainly, that the sea went so high, that the boat could not escape, and that we should be inevitably drowned. As to making s:iil, we had none, nor, if we had, could we have done anything with it ; so we worked at the oar towards the land, though with heavy hearts, Hke men going to execution ; for we all knew that when the boat came near tlio shore, she wouUl be dashed in a thousand i)iecc3 by the breach of the sea. However, we committed our souls to (Jod in the most cai*nest manner ; and the wind driving us towarils the shore, we hastened our destruction with our own hands, j)ulling as well as we could towards land. "NV'hat the shore was whether rock or sand, whether steep or slioal, we knew not ; the only hope that could rationally givo us the least shadow of expccUvtiun, was, if we niight ha]>p(!n into S(MnL under the lee of the land, and perhaps made | smooth water. Unt tln-ni was nothing of this ui)[)eared ; but as we made nearer and neanr the shor«>, (lie land l(.(»ked more frightful than the sea. After we had rowed, or rather driven, about a l(>:igue and an half, as w*- reckoned it, a raging wave, inountain-like, eann> rolling jistern of us, aii the water. ]?y this means all her quarter wa.s free, and all that part was dry ; for you may be sure my first work was to .search, and to i .spoiled and what wa.s free. And, tiiut, I found that all the shij/s provisions were dry and untouched by the water, and being very well disposed to cat, I went to the bread-room, and filled njy poekeLs with biscuit, and ate it as I went about* other things, for I had no time to lo.so. I also found .some rum in the great cabin, of whicli 1 took a large dram, and which I had, indeed, need enough of to spirit me for what wa.s before me. Now T wanted nothing but a boat, to furuish my.self with many tliiniis which I foresaw would be very neees.siiry U> me. It wa.s in vain to sit still and wish for what was not to be had ; and this extremily roused my aj)plication. We liud several spare yards, and two or three large spar.s t)f wood, and a .spare toj>-ma«fc or two in the ship: I resolved to fall to work with the>e, and r lliuig as many of tln-m overboard as I could manage for their weight, tying every one with a rope, that they might not drive away, ^^'hen this was done, I went down tlie ship's side, and pidling them to me, I tied four of them together at both ends, as well as 1 couhl, in the form of a raft, and laying two or three short [lieces of plank upon them, eroissways, 1 found 1 could walk upon it very well, but that it was not able to liear any great weight, the pieces being too light. .So I went to work, and with tlie carpenter's .saw I cut a .spare toji-mast into three length.s, and adtled them to my raft, with a great deal of labour and pain.s. But the hope of furni.shing my.self with necessaries encouraged me to go Vjeyond what I sljould have been able to have done upon another occasion. My raft was now strong enough to l)ear any reasonable weight. My next care w;is what to l(»ad it with, and Imw to ]ire.serve what I l.iid upon it from the surf of the sea : but I was not long eon.sidering this. I first laid all the planks or boards upon it that I could get, and having considered well what I most want««l, 1 first got threo of the seamen's chests, which J haral ca.ses of liottles belonging to our .skipper, in which were some cordial waters ; and, in all, about five or six gallons of anack. These I stowed by them.selvcs, tliere being no need to j)ut them into the chest, nor any room for them While I was doing this, I found the tide began to flow, though very caluj ; and I ha i the mortification to .see my coat, .shirt, ami waistcoat, which I had left on shoi up«»n the saml, swim away. As for my breeches, which were «.nly linen, and open kneed, I swam on board in them and my stockings. However, this put me U|M)n rummaging for clothes, (.f which 1 found enough, l>ut to..k no more than I wanted for present use, for I had other things mImcIi my eye was more ui»on ; a.s, fii-st, tools to work with on shore : and it wius aft«r hmg seaiching that I f«»und out the •.irpenters chot, whieh was indeed a very u.seful prize to me, and much more valuable ip-la.ling ..|- -nid would hav«« been at that time. I got it down to my raft, 34 I M th t.> ->*-tSCv.. r*^^' ^"^^ HE PAYS A VISIT TO THE WRECK. knew ill general what ■whole as it was, .without losing time to look it contained. • My next care was for some ammunition and arms. There were two very good fowling-pieces in the great cabin, and two pistols. These I secured first, with some ]iowder-horns, a small bag of shot, and two old rusty swords. I knew there were three barrels of powder in the ship, but knew not where our gunner had stowed them ; bat with much search I found them, two of them dry and good, the third had taken water. Those two I got to my raft, with the arms. And now I thought myself pretty well freighted, and began to think how I should get to shore with them, having neither sail, oar, nor rudder; and the least capful of wind would have overset all my navigation. I had three encouragements : first, a smooth, calm sea ; secondly, the tide rising, and setting in to the shore ; thirdly, what little -wind there was blew me towards the land. And tlius, having found two or three broken oars belonging to the boat, and besides the tools which Avere in the chest, two saws, an axe, and a hammer : with this cargo I put to sea. For a mile, or thereabouts, my raft went very well, only that I found it drive a little distant from the place where I had landed before ; by which I perceived that there was some indi-aft of the water, and consequently, I hoped to find some creek of riA'er there, wliich I might make use of as a port to get to land with my cargo. As I imagined, so it was. There appeared before me a little opening of tlie land. I found a strong cuiTent of the tide set into it ; so I guided my raft as well as I could, to keep in the middle of the stream. But here I had liked to have sufiered a second shipwi-eck, which, if I had, I think verily woiild have broken my heart ; for, knowing nothing of the coast, my raft ran aground at one end of it upon a shoal, and not being aground at the other end, it wanted but a little that all my cargo had slipped off towards the end that was afloat, and so fallen into the water. I did my utmost, by setting my back against the chests, to keep them in their places, but could not thrust off the raft with all my strengtli ; neither durst I stir from the posture I Avas in ; but holding up the chests with all nay might, I stood in that manner near half an hour, in which time the rising of the water brought me a little more upon a level ; and, a little after, the water still rising, my raft floated again, and I thrust her oflT with the oar I had into the channel, and then driving up liigher, I at length found myself in the mouth of a little river, with land on both sides, aud a strong current or tide panning up. I looked on both sides for a proper place to get to shore, for I was not willing to be driven too high up the river ; hoping, in time to sec some ship at sea, and therefore resolved to place myself as near the coast as I could. At length I spied a little cove on the right shore of the creek, to which, with great pain and difficulty, I guided my raft, and at last got so near, that i-eaching ground with my oar, I could thrust her directly in. But here I had like to have dipped all my cargo into the sea again; for that shore lying pretty steep — that is x> say, sloping- there Avas no place to land, but Avhere one end of my float, if it ran on shore, Avould lie so liigh, and the other sink lower, as before, that it Avould endanger my cargo again. All that I could do Avas to Avait till the tide was at the highest, keeping the i-aft B^ith my oar like an anchor, to hold the side of it fast to the shore, near a flat piece of ground, which I expected the Avater Avould flow over ; and so it did. As soon as I found Avater enough, for my raft drew about a foot of Avater, I thrust her upon that flat piece of ground, and there fastened or moored her, by stickinjr my two broken oars into the ground — one on ide, near one end, and my the other side, near the *>V/erionce of the fir.st I neithir made this .so uuwiildy, nor loaded it so liard, but yet I bioiight away several things very usefid to me; a.s, fii-st, in the carpenter's stores I found two or three bags full of nails and .spikes, a gii»at screw-jack, a dozen or two ot hatehets, and, above nil, that mo.st useful thing called a grindstone. All these I secured, 36 ^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. ■p ??*i?''^:5r ) tMrrotlur witli Kcvenil tliinajs belongiy;,' to the giinncr, jirirticiihuly two or thrco iron 'i-nw.-i, Jiiid two barrels of musket bullets, seven muskets, ami another fowling pice. . Ith Fome small i|uantity of powder more ; a large bag-full of small shot, and a great roll vt liof t lead ; but this last was so heavy I could not hoist it up to get it over the ship's side. Besides these things, I took all the men's clothes that I could Hiul, and a spare fore- '|) sail, a hammock, and some bedding ; and with this I loaded my second raft, and brought them all safe on shore, to my very great comfort. I was under some apprehension during my absence from the land, that at le.i.st my ))rovisions might be devoured on .shore ; but when I came Ijack, I found no sign of any visitor; only there .sat a creature like a wild cat, upon one of the chests, which, when I came tr>wards it, mn away a little distance, and then stood still. She sat veiy composed and unconct-nied, and looked full in my face, as if .she had a mind to be anpiainted with me. I presentod my gun to her, but, as she did not understand it, .she was jierfectly uiironcerned at it, nor did .she offer to stir away ; ujion whirh I tos.sed her a bit of biscuit, though, by the way, f wa.s not very free of it, for my .store was not great ; how- ever, I spared her a l>it, I say, and she went to it, smelled at it, and ate it, and looked (as jilcased) for more ; but 7 thanked her, and could spare no more : so .she march f'd off. Ifaviug got my .second ciigo on slion — though I was obliged to ojien the barrels of jjiwdor, and bring therp by parcels, for they were too heavy, being large casks — I went to work to make me a little tent, with the sail, and some poles which I cut for that ))urpo.se ; and into this tent I brought everything that I knew would .spoil either -with rain or .sun ; and I piled all the empty chests and casks up in a circle round the tent, to fortifv it from any sudden attempt, either from man or beast. When T had done thi.s, T blocked \ip the door of the tent with .some boards within, and an empty chest .set up, on end without ; and spreading one of the beds upon the ground, laying my two pi.stols just at my head, and my gun at length by me, I went to b.'d ffir the first time, and slept very ipiletly all night. I was very weary and heavy ; foi- the night before I had .slept little, and had laboured very hard all dav, as well to to fetch tho«e things from the .ship, as to get them on .shore. I had the liiggest magazine of all kinds now that ever was laid up, I bflicve, for on. man ; but still T wns not satisfied, for while the nhip .sat u|iright in that j)osture, i tlioip,»hl T ouglit to get evervthing otit of her that I could ; so every day, at low water, I went on board, nncl bntught away pometliing or other ; but ]>arti<'ularly the third time I Weill, I brought away as much of the rigging as T couhl, n« nlso all the small ropes and rope twine T could get, with a ])iece of spare canvas, which was to meml the sails upon occasion, and the barrel of wet gunjiowiler. In a word, 1 brought away all the sails, first anil last; only that I w.as fain to cut them in jiieccs, and bring as much at a time as I could, for they were no more useful to me for .sail.s, but as nu're canvas only. Miit that which cttniforled me more still, was, that at last of all, after I had made fivi t)r six sueh voyages nn these, and thought I had nothing more to expect from the ship that was worth my meddling with -I way, alYer all this, f found a great hog.sluuul of bread, three large runlett of mm, or spiiits, a box of lino nugar, and a bant;! of lin« flour: this was surprising to nu\ because 1 h.ad given over expecting any niiuv provi.sion exeejtt what wnn spoiled by the water. I soon einptietl the hogshead of the breay panv-l, in j)icces of the .sjiils, which I cut out ; and, in n word. I got all this safe (.n shore also, though at .s(>ver:il times. Tin- next day f made another voyage, and new, having plundered the ship .,f \vli:ii ROBINSON MAKES PROVISION FOR THE FUTURE. l£ ^vas portable and fit to Laud out, I began with the cable; cuttiug tlic great cable into pieces such as 1 could move, I get two cable and a hawser on .shore, with all the iron- work I could get ; aud having cut down the spritsail-yard, aud the mizen-yard, aud everything I could to make a large raft, I loaded it with all those heavy goods and came away; but my good luck began to leave me, for this raft was so unwieldy, and so overladen, that after I was entered the little cove, where I had hauled the rest of my goods, not being able to guide it so handily as I did the other, it overs.^t, and threw me and all my cargo into the water ; as for myself, it was no great harm, for F was near the shore ; but as to ray cargo, it was great iiart of it lost, especially tlic iron, which I expected would have been of great use to me ; however, when the fuV-. was 'out, I got most of the pieces of cable ashore, and some of the iron, though with infi- nite labour; for I was fain to dip for it into the water, a work which fatigued me very much. After this, I went every day on board, and brought away what I could get. I had now been thirteen days on shore, and had been eleven times on board the ship, in which time I had brought away all that one pair of haiids enuld Avell be sup- posed capable of bringing ; though I verily believe, had the calm w.alhcr held, I should have brought away the whole ship, piece by piece ; but preparing the twelfth time to go on board, I found the wind began to rise : however, at low water I went on b.jard, and though I thought I had rummaged the cabin so effectually that nothing more could be found, yet I discovered a locker with drawers in it, in one of which I found two or tlnee razors, and one pair of large scissors, with some ten or a dozen of good knives and toiks ; in another I found about thirty-six pounds value in money— some European coin, Mmie Brazil, some pieces of eight, some gold, and some silver. I smiled to myself at the sight of this money. " Oh, drug ! " said I aloud, " what art thou good for '? Thou art not worth to me— no, not the taking off the ground ; one of those knives is worth all this heap ; I have no manner of use for thee ; e'en remain where thou art, and go to the bottom, as a creature whose life is not worth saving." However, upon second thoughts, I took it away ; and wrapping all in a piece of canvas, I began to think of making another raft ; but while I was preparing this, I found the sky overcast, and the wind began to rise, and in a quarter of an hour it Ijlew a fresh gale from tlie sliore. It presently occurred t<_) me, that it was in vain to pretend to make a raft with the wind off shore ; and that it was my business to be gone before the tide of flood began, otherwise I might not be able to reach the shore at all. Accordingly, I let myself down into the water, and swam across the channel Avhich lay between tle'ship and the sands, and even that with difficulty enough, partly with the weight of the things I had about me, and partly from the roughness of the water; far the wind rose very hastily, and before it was quite high water it blew a storm. But I was gotten home to my little tent, where I lay, with all my wealth.about me A eiy secure. It blew very hard all that night, and in the morning, when I looked out, behold, no more ship was to be seen. I was a little surprised, but recovered myself with this satisfactory reflection, that I had lost no time, nor abated any dUigence, to get e\ erything out of her that could be useful to me ; aud that, indeed, there was little left lu her that I was able to bring away, if I had had more time. I now gave over any more thoughts of the ship, or of anything out of her, except uhat might drive on shore from her wreck ; as, indeed, divers pieces of her afterwards did ; but those things were of small use to nle. My thoughts were now wholly employed about securing myself against either savages, it any should appear, or wild beasts, if an/ were in the island ; and I had many thoughts f^^^^ RULI.WSUX CRUSOE. of the method how to do this, and what kind of dwelling to make — whether I shouM make me a cave in the earth, or a tent upon the earth ; and, in short, I resolved upon )x)th ; the manner and description of which it may not be impn)por to give an account of.^ I soon found the place I was in was nf)t fit for my settlement, particulai-ly bccau-;*' it was upon a low moorish ground near the sea, and I believed would not be whole ; omo, and more particularly because there was no fresh water near it ; so I resolved to fuKl a more healthy and more convenient spot of ground. I consulted several things in my situation, which I found wouM l>e proper for me . lust, health and fre.-ih water, I just now mentioned ; secondly, shelter from the heat of tlie sun ; thirdly, security from ravenous creatures, whether man or beast ; fourthly, a view to the sea, that if God .sent any ship in sight, I might not lose any advantage fur my deliverance, of which I was not willing to banish my expectation yet. In search of a jilace proper for this, I found a little plain on the side of a rising hill, whose front towards this little j)lain was steep as a house side, so that nothing could come down upon me from the top. On the side of the rock there wai a hollow phict^, worn a little way in, like the entrance or door of a cave ; but there was not really any cave, or way into the rock, at all. On the Hat of tlie green, just below this hollow place, I resolved to pitch my tent. Tiiis plain was not above a hundred yards broad, and about twice as long, and lay like a green before my door ; and, at the end of it, descended irregularly every way down into the low ground by tlie .sea-side. It was on the N.N.W. side of the hill ; so that it Win sheltered from the heat every day, till it came to the "NV. and l>y 8. sun, or there abouts, which, in those countries, is near the .setting. Before I set up my tent, I drew a half-circle before the hollow place, wliich to;>k in about ten yards in its .semi-diameter, from the rock, and twenty yards in its diameter from its beginning and ending. In this half-circle I i»itched two rows of strong stakes, driving them into the ground till they stood very firm like piles, the biggest end being out of the ground above five feet and a half, and sharpened on the top. The two rows did not stand above six inches from one another. Then I took the pieces of cable which I had cut in the ship, and laid them in row.% upon one another, within the circle, between these two rows of stakes, up to the tjp. placing other stakes in the inside, leaning against them, about two feet and a half high like a spur to a post ; and this fence wsis so strong, that neither man nor beast could get into it or over it. This cost me a great deal of time and labour, especially to cut t!ie piles in the woods, bring them to the place, and drive them into the e;irth. The entrance into this place I made tO be, not by a door, bat by a short ladd n- t> go over the top; which ladder, when 1 wjus in, I lifted over after me; and so I w!is completely ' fenced in atid fortified, as I thought, fi*om all the world, and con- sei[uently slept secure in the night, which otherwise I could not have done; though, a* it appeared afterward.s, there wa.s no need of all this caution from the enemies that 1 apprehended danger from. into this fence, or fortre.s-s, witli inlinite labour, I carried all my riches, all my provisions, ammunition, and stores, of which you have the account above ; and I made me :i large tent also, to j)reserve me from the rains, that in one part of the year are very violfut there. I made it double — viz., one smaller tent within, and one larger t««nt above it ; and covered the uppermost part of it with a large tarpaulin, wliieh I had saved among tlu! flails. i And now I lay no more for awhile in the bed which I had brought on shore, but in a hammock, which was indeed a very good one, and belonged to the mate of the ship. Into this tent I brought all my provisions, and everything that would spoil by the wet ; and having thus enclosed all my goods, I made up the entrance, which till now I had left open, and so passed and i-epassed, as I said, by a short ladder. When I had done this, I began to work my way into the rock, and bringing all the earth and stones that I dug down out through my tent, I laid them up within my fence, in the nature of a terrace, so that it raised the ground within about a foot and a half j and thus I made me a cave, just behind my tent, which served me like a cellar to my house. It cost me much labour and many days before all these things were brought to perfection ; and therefore I must go back to some other things which took up some of my thoughts. At the same time it happened, after I had laid my scheme for the setting up the tent, and making the cave, that a storm of rain falling from a thick, dark cloud, a sutlden flash of lightning happened, and after that, a great clap of \ til under, as is naturally the effect of it. I was not so much surprised with the lightning, as I was with the thought which darted into my mind as swift as the lightning itself, "Oh, my powder !" My very heart sank within me when I thought that, at one . s^ 41 M' s- ROBINSON CRUSOE. ) blast, all my powder might be destroyed ; on which not my defence only, but tlie providing me food, as I thought, entirely depended. I was nothing near so anxious about my own danger ; though, had the powder took fire, I had never known who had hurt me. Such impression did this make upon me, that, after the storm was over, I laid aside all my work, my building and fortifying, and applied myself to make bags and boxes to separate my powder, aixd to keep it a little and a little in a parcel, in hopes, that whatever might come, it might not all take fire at oucc ; and to keep it so apart, that it should not be possible to make one p^rt fire another. I finished this work, in about a fortnight ; and I think my powder, which in all was about one hundred and forty pounds weight, was divided into no less than a hundred parcels. As to the barrel that had been wet, I did not apprehend any danger from that ; so I i>laced it in my new cave, which, in my fancy, I called my kitchen ; and the rest I hid up and down in holes among the rocks, so that no wet might come to it, marking very carefully Avhere I laid it. In the interval of time while this was doing, I went out at least once every day with my gun, as well to divert myself, as to see if I could kill anything fit for food ; and, as near as I could, to acquaint myself with what the island produced. The first time I went out, I jn-esently discovered that there were goats in the island, which was a great satisfaction to me ; but then it was attended with this misfortune to me, viz., that they were so shy, so subtle, and so swift of foot, that it was the most dillicult thing in the world to come at them ; but I was not discouraged at this, not doubting but I might now and then shoot one, as it soon happened ; for after I had found their haunts a little, I laid wait in this manner for them : I observed if they saw mo in the valleys, though they were upon the rocks, they would run away, as in a ten-ible fright ; but if they Avere feeding in the valleys, and I was upon the rocks, they took no notice of me ; from whence I concluded, that by the position of their optics, tlieir sight was so directed downward, that they did not readily see objects that were aljove them ; so afterwards I took this method — I always climbed the rocks first, to get above them, and then had frequently a fair mark. The first shot I made among these creatures, I killed a she-goat, which had a little kid by lier, which she gave suck to, which grieved me heartily ; for, when the old one foil, the kid stood stock still by her, till I came and took her up ; and not only so, but when I carried the old one with me upon my shoulder.^, the kid followed mo quite to my enclosure ; ujion which, I laid down the dam, and took the kid in my arms, and carried it over my l>ale, in hojies to liave bred it up tame ; b\it it would not cat ; so I was forced to kill it and eat it myself. These two supplied mo with llesh a great while, fur I cat sparingly, and saved my provision.s, my bread especially, as much as I possibly could. Having now fixed my liaKitatioii, I luund il absulutcly necessary to i)rovide a place to njako a fire in, and fuel to burn ; and what I did for that, as also how I enlarged my cave, and what conveniences I made, I shall give a fidl account of in its place ; but 1 I mu.st now give some little account of myself, and of my thoughts about living, which, it may well bo supposed, were not a few. I had a di.smal prospect of my condition, for tus I was not cast away upon that island without being driven, as is said, by a violent storm quite out of the course of our intended voyage, and a great way, viz., some hundreds of leagues, out of the ordinary I cotirse of the trade of mankind, I had great reason to consider it as a determination of CRUSOE'S CALENDAR. Heaven, that in this desolate place, and in this desolate manner, I should end my life. The tears would run plentifully down my face when I made these reflections ; and some- times I would expostulate with myself why Providence should thus completely ruin its creatures, and render them so absolutely miserable, so without help abandoned, and so entirely depressed, that it could hardly be rational to be thankful for such a life. But something always returned swift upon me to check these thoughts, and to reprove me ; and particularly one day walking with my gun in my hand by the sea- side, I was very pensive upon the subject of my present condition, when Reason, as it were, put in expostulating with me the other way, thus : " Well, you are in a desolate condition, it is true ; but, pray remember, where are the rest of you 1 Did not you come eleven of you into the boat 1 Where are the ten ? Why were not they saved, and you lost ? Why are you singled out ? Is it better to be here or there 1 " And then I pointed to the sea. All evils are to be considered with the good that is in them and with what worse attended them. Then it occurred to me again, how well I was furnished for my subsistence, and what would have been my case if it had not happened (which was a hundred thousand to one) that the ship floated from the place where first she struck, and was driven so near to the shore, that I had time to get all these things out of her ? What would have been my case, if I had been forced to have lived in the condition in which I at first came on shore, without necessaries of life, or any means to supply and procure them 1 " Particularly," said I aloud (though to myself), " what should I have done without a gun, without ammunition, without any tools to make anything, or to work with 1 with- out clothes, bedding, a tent, or any manner of coverings?" and that now I had all these to a sufiicient quantity, and was in a fair way to provide myself in such a manner as to live without my gim, when my ammunition was spent : so that I had a tolerable view of subsisting without any want as long as I lived ; for I considered from the beginning how I would provide for the accidents that might happen, and for the time that was to come, even not only after my ammunition should be spent, but even after my health and strength should decay. I confess I had not then entertained any notion of my ammunition being destroyed at one blast — I mean, my powder being blown up by lightning ; and this made the thoughts of it surprising to me, when it lightened and thundered, as I observed just And now, being to enter into a melancholy relation of a scene of silent life, sitch, perhaps, as was never heard of in the world before, I shall take it from its beginning, and continue it in its order. It was, by my account, the 30th of September, when, in the manner as above said, I first set foot upon this horrid island ; when the sun being to us in its autumnal equinox, was almost just over my head : for I reckoned myself, by observation, to be in the latitude of nine degrees twenty-two minutes north of the line. After I had been there about ten or twelve days, it came into my thoughts that I should lose my reckoning of time for want of books, and pen, and ink, and should even forget the Sabbath-day from the working-days ; but to prevent this, I cut it with my knife iipon a large post, in capital letters ; and making it into a great cross, I set it up on the shore where I first landed, "vdz., " I came on shore here on the 30th of Sep- tember, 1659." Upon the sides of this square post I cut every day a notch with my knife, and every seventh notch was as long again as the rest, and every first day of the month as long ^" ~-^ 43 ^ ove mentioned, 1 made to it, I got several things of less value, but not at all less useful to me, which I omitted setting ilown before ; as, in particular, pens, ink, and paper ; several parcels in the captain's, mate's, gunner's, and carpenter's keejiing ; three or four compasses, some mathematical instruments, dials, perspectives, charts, and books of navigation ; all which I huddled together, whether I might want them or no : also I found three very good Bibles, which came to me in my cargo from England, and which I had packed up among my things ; some Portuguese books also ; and, among them, two or three Popish prayer- books, and several other books ; all which I carefully secured. And I must not foi-get that wo had in the ship a dog and two cats, of whose eminent history I must have occa- sion to say something in its place, for I carried both the cats with me ; and as for the dog, he jumped out of the ship of himself, and swam on shore to me the day after I went on shore with my first cargo, and was a trusty sen'ant to me many years ; I wanted nothing that he could fetch me, nor any company that he could make up to me ; I only wanted to have him talk to me, but that he could not do. As I observed before, I found pens, ink, and paper, and I hiisbanded them to the utmost; and I shall show that while' my ink lasted, I kept things very exact ; but after that was gone I could not, for I could not make any ink by any means that I could devise. And this put me in mind that I wanted many things, notwithstanding all that I had amassed together ; and of these, ink was one : as also a spade, pick-axe, and shovel, to dig or remove the earth ; needles, pins, and thread : as for linen, I soon learned to want that without much difficulty. This want of tools made every work I did go on heavily ; and it was near a whole year before I had entirely finished my little pale, or surrounded habitation. Tlie piles or stakes, which were as heavy as I could well lift, were a long time in cutting and preparing in the woods, and more, by far, in bringing home ; so that I spent sometimes two days in cutting and bringing home one of those posts, and a third day in driving it into the ground ; for which purpose, I got a heavy piece of wood at firet, but at last bethought myself of one of the iron crows ; which, however, though I found it, yet made driving those posts or jiilcs very laborious and tedious work. But what need I have been concerned at the tediousness of anything I had to do, seeing I had time enough t(> do it in ? nor had I any other employment, if that had been over, at least that I could foresee, except the ranging the island to seek for food, which I did, more or less, every day. I now began to consider seriously my condition, and thi upon a horril>lo, dcsolf^o Ulaiul ; void of all hope of rocovery. Rut I am alivo jiany wns. 44 (;oon. i\ns^und a little bn- which, as I hinted before, had been filled with corn for the feeding of poultry — not fi>i- this voyage, but before, as I sujipose, when the ship came from Lisbon. What little re- mainder of corn had been in the bag was all devoured by the mts, and I saw nothing in the bag but liusks and dust; and being willing to have the bag for some other use (I tliink it was to put powder in, when I divided it for fear of the lightning, or some such u.se), I shook the husks of corn out of it on one side of my fortification, under tlie rock. It was a little before the great rains just now mentioned that I throw this stulT away, tukuig no notice of luiything, and not .so much as remembering that I had thrown anything there, when, about a month after, or thereabouts, I .saw some few stalks of .some- thing green shooting upon the ground, which I fancied might be some plant I had not seen : but I wius surprised, and perfectly astonished when, after a little longer time, I .'^aw about ten or twelve cai-s come out, which were perfect green barley, of the same kind as our Eurojican— nay, as our English barley. It 13 impo.ssiblo to express the astonishment and confusion of my thoughts on this occasion ; I had hitlierto acted upon no religious foundation at all ; indeed, I liad very few notions ofrelii^ion in my he.vd, nor had entertained any sense of anything that had ROBINSON CRUSOE. befallen me, otherwise than as a chance, or, as we lightly say, what pleases Crod, without so much as inquiring into the end of Providence in these things, or hLs order in governing events in the world. But after I saw barley grow there in a climate which I knew was not proper for com, and especially that I knew not how it came there, it startled me strangely, and I began to suggest that Gotl had mimcidously caused tliis gi-ain to grow without any help of seed sown, and that it was so directed purely for my sustenance in that wild, misemblo place. This touched my heart a little, and brought tears out of my eyes, and I began to bless my.self that such a prodigy of Nature should happen upon ray accouni; and this was the more strange to me, because 1 saw near it still, all along by the side of the rock, some other straggling stalks, which proved to be stalks of rice, and which I knew, beaiuse I had seen it grow in Africa, when I was ashore there, I not only thought these the pure productions of Providence for my support, but not doubting but that there was more in the place, T went all over that part of the island where I had been before, peering in every comer and under every rock, to see for more of it, but I could not find any. At last it occurred to my thoughts, that I had shaken the bag of chickens' meat out in that place ; and the wonder began to cease ; and I must confess, my religious thankfulness to God's providence began to abate too, upon tho discovering that all this was nothing but what was common ; though I ouglrt to have been as thankful for so strange and unforeseen providence, as if it hud been miraculous ; for it was really the work of Providence as to me, that should order or appoint that ten or twelve grains of corn sluould remain imspoiled, when the rats had destroyed all the rest, as if it had been dropped from heaven ; as also that I should throw it out into that particular place, where, it being in the shade of a high rock, it sprang up immediately ; whereas, if I had thrown it anywhere else at that time, it had been burnt up and destroyed. I carefully saved the eai-s of this corn, you may be sure, in their season, which was about the end of June; and laying up every corn, I resolved to sow them all again, hoping in time to have some quantity, sufficient to sujiply me with bread. But it was not till the fourth year that I would allow myself the least grain of this corn to cat, and even then but sparingly, as I shall say afterwards, in its order; fori lost all tli; sowed tlie first season, by not observing the proper time ; for I sowed it just befori' diy season, so that it never came up at all, at least not as it would have done : of wl in its place. Besides this barley, there were, as above, twenty or thirty stiilks of rice, whii ' preserved with the same care, and whoso \ise was of the same kiml, or to the si purpose, viz., to make mo bread, or rather food; for I found ways to cook it up with baking, though I did that also after some time. But to return to my Journal : — I worked excessive hard these three ur four months, to get my wall done; it in. the 1 Uh of April, I closed it up, contriving to go into it, not by a door, but over a wall, by a ladder, that there might bo no sign on the outside of my habitation. April IG. — I finished the ladder; so I went up the ladder to the top, and tluii pulled it \t\t after me, and let it down on the inside : this was a complete enclosure to mo ; for within I had room enough, and nothing could come at mo from without, unless it could first mount my wall. The very ne.\t day after this wall was finished, I had almost hail all my labour overthrown at once, and myself killed. The case was thus :— As 1 was busy in the S4 ' _./ 'J inside of it, behind my tent, just in the entrance into my cave, I was terribly frightened with a most dreadful surprising thing indeed : for, all on a sudden, I found the earth came tumbling down from the roof of my cave, and from the edge of the hill over my head, and two of the posts I had set tip in the cave cracked in a frightful manner, I was heartily scared ; but thought nothing of what really was the cause, only thinking that the top of my cave was falling in, as some of it had done before : and for fear I should be buried in it, I ran forwards to my ladder, and not thinking myself safe there neither, I got over my wall for fear of the pieces of the hill, which I expected might roll down upon me. I was no sooner stepped down upon the firm ground, than I plainly saw it was a terrible earthquake ; for the ground I stood on shook three times at about eight minutes' distance, with three such shocks as would have overturned the strongest building that could be supposed to have stood upon the earth ; and a great piece of the top of the rock, which stood about half a mile from me, next the sea, fell down with such a terrible noise as I never heard in all my life. I perceived also the very sea Avas put into a violent motion by it ; and I believe the shocks were stronger under the water than on the island. I was so amazed with the thing itself, having never felt the like, or dis- coursed with any one that had, that I was like one dead or stupefied ; and the motion of the earth made my stomach sick like one that was tossed at sea ; but the noise of the falling of the rock awaked me as it were, and rousing me from the stupefied condition I Avas in, filled me with horror, and I thought of nothing then but the hill falling upon my tent and all my household goods, and burying all at once ; and this sunk my very soul within me a second time. After the third shock was over, and I felt no more for some time, I began to take courage ; and yet I had not heart enough to get over my wall again, for fear of being buried alive, but still sat upon the ground, greatly cast down and disconsolate, not knowing what to do. All this while, I had not the least serious religious thought ; nothing but the common " Lord, have mercy upon me ! " and when it was ovei-, that went away too. While I sat thus, I found the air overcast, and it grew cloudy, as if it would rain ; soon after that, the wind arose by little and little, so that .in less than half an hour it blew a most dreadful hurricane of wind : the sea was, all on, a sudden, covered with foam and froth ; the shore was covered with the breach of the water ; the trees were torn up by the roots ; and a terrible storm it was. This held about three hours, and then began to abate ; and then in two hours more it was calm, and began to rain very hard. All this while I sat upon the ground very much terrified and dejected ; when on a sudden it came into my thoughts, that these winds and rain being the consequences of the earthquake, the earthquake itself was spent and ovei', and I might venture into my cave again. With this thought, my spirits began to revive ; and the rain also helping to persuade me, I went in and sat down in my tent ; but the i-ain was so violent, that my tent was ready to be beaten down with it ; and I was forced to go into my cave, though very much afraid and uneasy, for fear it should fall on my head. This violent rain forced me to a new woz'k, viz., to cut a hole through my new fortifi- cations, like a sink, to let the water go out, which would else have drowned my cave. After I had been in my cave some time, and found still no more shocks of the earthquake follow, I began to be more composed. And now to support my spirits, which indeed wanted it veiy much, I went to my little stoi-e, and took a small sup of rum ; which, however, I did then and always veiy sparingly, knowing I could have no '\ ROBINSON CRUSOE. more when that was gone. It continued raining all that night, and great part of the next diiy, no that I couKl not stir abroad ; but my mind being more composed, I began to think of what I had beat to do ; concluding, that if the island waa subject to these eartlupiakes, there would bo no living for me in a cave, but I must consider of buildiug mo some little hut in an open place which I might surround with a wall, as r hiul done here, and so make mj-self secure from wild beasts or men ; for I concluded if I Htil>'ed where I was, I should certainly, one time or other, be buried alive. With these thoughts, I resolved to move my tent from the place where it now stood, which wivsjust under the hanging precipice of the hill; and which, if it shouhl bo shaken again, would cerUinly fall upon my tent : and I spent the two next days, Wing the lUth and 20th of April, in contriving where and how to remove my habitation. The fear of being swallowed up alive made me that I never slept in quiet ; and yet the apprehensions of lying abroad without any fence were almost equal to it : but still, when I looked about, and siiw how everything was put in order, how pleasantly concealed I wa.s, and how safe from danger, it made me loth to remove. In the mean- time, it occurred to me that it would require a vast deal of time for me to do this, and that I must bo contented to run the venture where I was, till I had formed a camp for myself, and had secured it so as to remove to it. So with this resolution I composeil myself for a time, and resolved that I would go to work with all speed to build me a wall with piles and cables, I'c, in a circle, as before, and set my tent up in it, when it wa« finished ; but that I would venture to stay whore I waa till it wa.s finished, and tit to remove to. This was the 2l8t. April 22. — The next morning I began to consider of means to put this resolve in execution ; but I was at a great loss about my tools. I had three large axes, and abundance of hatchets (for we cairied the hatchets for trathc with the Indians) ; but with much chopping and cutting knotty hard wood, they were all full of notches, and dull ; and though I had a grindstone, I could nt)t turn it and grind my tools too. This cost mo an much thought as a statesman would have bestowed uj)on a grand point of jM»liticH, or a judge upon the life and death of a man. At length, I contrived a wheel with a string, U) turn it with my foot, that I might have both my hands at libei-ty. Note. — I liad not seen any such thing in England, or at least not to take notice how it was done, though since I have ob8er\-ed it was very common thei-e ; besides that, my grindstone was very large and heavy. This machine cost me a full week's work to bring it to perfection. April 2jS, 29. — Those two whole days I took up in grinding my tools, my machine for turning my grindstone performing very well. April .'JO. — Having jKyrceived my bread had been low a great while, I now took a Hurvoy of it, oud reduced myself to one biscuit-cako a day, which made my heart veiy heavy. May 1. — In the morning, looking towards the sea-side, the tide being low, I saw something lio on tho shore bigger than ordinary, and it looked like a Ciisk ; when I camo to it, I found a small bjirrel, and two or three pieces of tho wreck of the ship, which were driven on shoi-o by tho lato liurrioane ; and looking towards the wreck it.trlf, I thought it seemed to lie higher out of tho water than it used to do. I examinetl the barrel which was driven on shore, and soon found it was a banel of gun|X)Wiler ; but it had Uik.>n water, and tho powder waa caked as hard as a stone : however, I rollod It farther on shore for the present, and went on xipon tho sands, as near as I covikl to tho wreck of tho sliip, to look for more. 56 fpif^f nm^^^m^hs. I I When T came down to the shii^, I found it stiangely lemovtd. The foieca.stl(^ •hich Liy before buried in sand, was heaved up at least six feet, and tlie stern, whicli was broken to jiieces and parted from the rest by the force of the sea- soon after I had left rummaging of her, was tossed, as it were, up, and cast on oiu3 side ; and the sand was thrown so high on that side next the stern, that whereas there was a great jDlace of water before, so that I could not come within a quarter of a mile of the wreck without swimming, I could now walk quite up to her when the tide was out. I was surjnised with this at first, but soon concluded it must be done by the earthquake; and as by this violence the ship was more broken open than formerly, so many things came daily on shore, which the sea had loosened, and which the winds and water rolled by degrees to the land. This wholly diverted my thoughts from the design of removing my habitatiiiu^ and I busied myself mightily, that day especially, in searching whether I coulcl make any way into the ship ; but I found nothing was to be expected of that kind, for that all the inside of the ship was choked up with sand. However, as I had learned not to despair of anything, I resolved to pull everything to pieces that I could of the ship, concluding that everything I could get from her would be of some use or other to me. Mai/ 3. — I began with my saw, luid cut a piece of a beam through, which I thought held some of the upper part or quarter deck together, and when I had cut .1 ij- ROBINSON CRUSOE. it throu''h, I cleared away the sand as well as I could from the side which lav highest ; biit the tide coming in, I was obliged to give over for that time. }fat/ 4. — I went a-fiahing, but caught not one fish that I dui-st eat of, till I was wear)' of my sport ; when, just going to leav^ off, I caught a young dolphin. I had made me a long line of some rope-yarn, but I had no hooks ; yet I frequently caught fish enough, as much a.s I cai-ed to eat ; all which I dried in the sun, and ate them dry. Mat/ 5. — Worked on the \s'reck; cut another beam asunder, and brought three great fir planks* off from the deck-s, which I tied together, and made swim on shoi-e when the tide of Hood came on. Mai/ G. Worked on the wreck ; got several iron bolts out of her, and other pieces of iron-work ; worked very hard, and came home very nmch tired, and had thoughts of giving it over. « Mat/ 7. — Went to the VTOck again, with an intent not to work, but found the weight of the wreck had broken itself down, the beams being cut ; that seveml pieces of the Hhip Keemed to lie loose, and the inside of the hold lay so open that I could see into it ; but it was almost full of water and sand. Mat/ 8. — Went to the wTcck, and carried an iron ci'ow to wrench up the deck which lay now quite clear of the water or sand. I wrenched open two planks, and brought them on shore also with the tide. I left the iron crow in the vrreck for next day. Mat/ 9. — Went to the wreck, and with the crow made way into the body of the wreck, and felt sevei-al casks, and loosened them with the crow^but could not break tliem up. I felt also a roll of English lead, and could stir it, but it was too heavy to more. M((i/ 10, 11, 12, 13, 14. — Went every day to the wreck; and got a great deal of pieces of timber, and board.«t, or planks, and two or three hundredweight of iron. Mat/ l~). — I can-ied two hatchets, to try if I could not cut a piece off the roll of lead, by placing the edge of one hatchet, and driving it with the other ; but as it lay about a foot and a half in the water, I could not make any blow to drive the hatchet. Mat/ IG. — It had blown hard in the night, and the vTCck appeared more broken by the force of the water ; but I stayed so long in the woods, to get pigeons for food, that the tide prevented me going to the wreck that day. Mcuj 17. — I saw some pieces of the wreck blown on .shore, at a groat distance, near two miles off mo, but resolvetl to see what thoy were, and found they were ])ieces of the head, but too heavy for me to bring away. 3fai/ 24. — EvoiT day, to this day, I worked on the wreck ; and with hard labour I loosened some things so much with the crow, that the fii-st flowing tide sevei-al casks floated out, and tw(> of the seamen's chests : but the wind blowing from the shore nothing came to land that day but pieces of timber, and a hoirshoad, which had some Ura7Jl poi-k in it ; but the salt water and the sand had spoiled it. I continued this work every day to the I5t]i of June, except the time necessary to get food, which I always api>ointed, during this part of my employment, to be when the tide was up, that I nji^ht bo ready when it was ebbed out ; and by this time I had gotten timber, and i>lank, and ii-on-work enough to have built a gootl boat, if I had known how ; and also I got, at several times, and in several pieces, near one himdredwcight of the sheet-lead. Jime in. — Going down to the sea-side, I found a large tortoise, or turtle. Tliis was the lii-jtt T had set», which, it seems, was onlv my misfortune, not any defect of the place "58' or the scai'city ; for bad I happened to be ou the other side of the island, I might have had hundreds of them eveiy day, as I found aftei-vrards ; but perhaps had paid dear enough for them. Ju)ie 17 I spent iu cooking the turtle. I found in her threescore eggs; and her flesh \ras to me, at that time, the most savoury and pleasant that ever 1 tasted in my life, having had no flesh, but of goats and fowls, since I landed in this hon-ible place. Ju7ie 18. — Eained all the day, and I stayed -within. I thought, at this time, the rain felt cold, and I was something chilly, -vrhich I knew was not usual in that latitude. June 19. — Very ill, and shivering, as if the weather had been cold. Ji'.ne 20. — Xo rest all night ; violent pains in my head, and feverish. Jum 21. — Very ill ; frighted almost to death with the apprehensions of my sad condition — to be sick, and no help : prayed to God, for the firet time since the storm, off of Hull, but scarce knew what I said or why ; my thoughts being all confased. June 22. — A little better ; but under dreadful apprehensions of sickness. June 23. — ^Yery bad again; cold and shivering, and then a violent headache. June 24. — Much better. Jujie 25. — ^An ague very violent : the fit held me seven houi-s ; cold fit, and hot with faint sweats after it. Jun^ 26. — Better ; and having no victuals to eat, took my gun, but found myself very weak ; however, I killed a she-goat, and with much difficulty got it home, and broiled some of it, and ate. I would fain have stewed it, and made some broth, but had no pot. Juiie 27. — The ague again so Aiolent that I Jay a-ljed all day, and neither ate nor drank. I was ready to perish for thii-st ; but so weak I had no strength to stand up, or to get myself any water to di-ink. Prayed to Gk>d again, but was light-headed ; and when I was not, I was so ignorant that I knew not what to say ; only I lay and cried, " Lord, look upon me ! Lord pity me ! Lord have mercy upon me ! " I suppose I did nothing else for two or three hours ; till the fit wearing ofl', I fell asleep, and did not awake till far in the night. When I awoke, I found myself much refi-eshed, but weak, and exceeding thirsty ; however, as I had no water in my -whole habitation, I was forced to lie till morning, and went to sleep again. In this second sleep, I had this terrible dream : I thought that I was sitting on the gi-ound, on the outside of my waU, where I sat when the storm blew after the earthquake, and that I saw a man descend from a great black cloud, in a bright flame of fire, and light upon tJie gi'ound : he was aU over as bright as a flame, so that I could but just bear to look towards him : his countenance was most inexpressibly dreadful, impossible for words to describe ; when he stepped upon the ground with his feet, I thought the earth trembled, just as it had done before in the earthquake, and all the air looked, to my apprehension, as if it had been filled with flashes of fii-e. He was no sooner landed upon the earth, but he moved forwards towards me, -ndth a long spear or weapon in his hand, to kill me; and when he came to a rising ground, at some distance, he spoke to me — or I heard a voice so terrible that it is impossible to express the terror of it. All that I can say I undei-stood was this : — " Seeing aU these things have not brought thee to repentance, now thou shalt die ;" — at which words, I thought he lifted up the spear that was in his hand to kiU me. Xo one that shall ever read this account will expect that I should be able to describe the horrors of my soul at this terrible vi.sion. I mean, that even while it was a di-eam, I even di-eamed of those horrors. Xor is it any more possible to describe the impression that remained upon my mind wlien I awaked, and found it was but a dream. / ^ ROBINSON CKUSOK. I had, alas ! no divine knowledge What I had received by the good instruction of my fnthor wa.s tlicn worn out by an unintcmipted series, for eight years, of seafaring wickiMlnesM, and a constant conversation witli none but such as were, like myself, wicked and pnifjino to the last degree. I do not remember that I had, in all that time, one thought that 80 much as tended cither to looking upwards towards (lod, or inwards towards a rellection uix)n my own ways ; but a certain stupidity of soul, without desire of grtod, (H- conscience of evil, had entirely overwhelmed me ; and I was all that the m< st hardened, unthinking, wicked creature among our common sailors can be sui)itosed to bi'— not having the leaat sense, either of the fear of God in dangers, or of thankfulness to (Io«l in deliverances. In the relating what is already past of my story, this will be the more easily Ijclieved when r shall add, that through all the variety of miseries that had to this day befallen me, I never had so much as one thought of its being the hand of tJoil, or that it was a just punishment for my sins — my rebellious behaviour against my father — or my ])reseiit sins, which were grejit — or so much as a punishment for the general course of my wicked life. When I was on the desperate expedition on the desert shores of Alriea, I never had so much as one thought of what would become of nie, or one wish to CJod to direct mo whither I should go, or to keep me from the danger whieli apparently surrounded n^c, as well from voiucious creatures as cruel savages ; but I was merely thoughtless of (!o«l or a I'rovidence — I acted like a mere bmite, from the prineiplfs of nature, and by the dictates of common sense only, and indeed hardly that. WlifU I was delivered ami taken up at .sea by the Portugal cajjtain, Avell used, and dealt j l^lly and honourably with, as well as charitably, 1 had not the lea,st thankfulness in my thoughts. When, again, I w;is shipwrecked, ruined, and in danger of drowning on this islund, I was as far fi-om remoi-se, or looking on it as a judgment. I only s;iid to mysi'If often, that I was an unfortunate dog, and born to be always miserable. It is true, when I got on shore first here, and found all my ship's crow drowned, ami myself spared, I was s»u-pri.sed with a kind of ecstacy, and some transports of soul, which, .rjCli \ where it began, in a mere common llight of joy, or, as I may .siy, being glad I was ^"''^ alive, without the least rellection upon the distinguishing goodness of the Hand which li pn.'.servi'd me, and hatl singled nu* out to b»» preserved when all the rest were destn»} ( or an in(|uiry why rrovidy which seamen generally have, after they have got safe a.shoi"e from siiipAVfcck, all which they drown in tho ne.xt bowl of punch, and forget almost as su as it is over ; and all the rest of my life was like it. Even when I w;vs afterwards, on il> consideration, made sensible of my comliti«)n, how Tmm cast on this dreadful place, c o| the reach of human kind, out of all hojio of relief, or prosj>ect of redemption, as .sn as I .H41W a juobability of living, and that I should not st^irve and jierish for hung.r. all tho Hcnse of my allliction wore olf; and I began to bo very ea.sy, applied mystll to the wtuks proper for my ])reservation and supply, and Wiis far enough from being Jilllii;tenc to help or hear me. I rejected the voice of Providence, which h;ul ujcrcifidly put me iu a posture or station of life wherein I might have been happy aid easy ; but I would neither see it myselti nor learn to know the blessing of it from my pareuU*. I left them to mourn over my folly ; and now I am left to mourn un«ler the consequences of it. I lefuscd their help and assistance, who would have lifted me into the woikl, anl wouhl hive m vlo everything eixsy to mo ; and now I havo dilhculties to struggle with too great for even nature it^self to support, and no assistance, no hel]), no comfort, no advice." Then i cried out, "Lord, be my help, for I am iu great distrcw." This w»w tlie lU-st pf-aycr, if 1 might call it so, that I had nude for many ycam. But I return to my Joui'md : — Jun« 26. — llioing been .somewhat refi-cshed with the sleep I had had, and the fit being entirely oli; I got up ; and though the fright and terror of my dream was very greats yot I con»«iilcrod that the fit of the ague would return again the next day, and umv was my time to get sometliing to refix^sh and support myself when I .should bo ill : and the fii-st thing I did, I filletl a large s«piaro casc-botllu with water, and set it ui)ou my table, in re^ch of my bod; and to take off the chill or aguish disposition of tho Wiiter, I put about a qiuirter of a pint of rum into it, and mixed them togetlier. Then 1 got mo a piece of tho goat's flesh, and broiled it on tho coals, but could eat very little. I wjdkod about^ but waa very weak, and withal very sad and heavy-hearted in the sense of n>y iniserable condition, dreading the return of my distemper tho next day. At night, I made my supper of three of the turtle's eggs, which I ro:uste.l in tho ashes, and eat, as wo call it, in tho .shell, ami this was tho first bit.of meat I had ever a.skod God's blessing to, eviii, as I couKl remember, in my wliolo life. A CURE FOR r.ODY AND IMIN i After I had eaten, I tried to walk, but found myself so weak, that I could hardl> carry the gun, for I never went out without that; so I went out but a little way, an.] sat down upon the ground, looking out upon the sea, which was just before me, and ver\- calm and smooth. As I sat here, some thoughts such as these occurred to me : What is the earth and sea, of which I have seen so much? Wlience is it produced? And what am I, and all the other creatures, wild and tame, human and brutal ? Whence are we ? Sui-e we are all made by some secret Powei', who formed the eai-tli and sea the air and sky. And who is that? Then it followed most naturally, It is God that has made it all. Well, but then, it came on strongly, if God has made all these thino-.s, he guides and governs them all, and all things that concern them; for the Being that could make all things must certainly have power to guide and direct them. If so, nothing can happen in the great circuit of his works, either without his knowledo-e or appointment. And if nothing happens without his knowledge, he knows that I am here, and am in this dreadful condition; and if nothing happens without his appointment, he has appointed all this to befall me. ITothing occurred to my thoughts to contradict any of these conclusions, and therefore it rested upon me with the greater force, that it must needs be that God had appointed all this to befall me ; that I was brought to this miserable circumstance by liis direction, he ha\-ing the sole power, not of me only, but of everything that happened in the world. Immediately it followed, — Why has God done this to me 1 What have I done to be thus used ? My conscience presently checked me in that inquiry, as if I had blasphemed, and methought it spoke to me like a voice, " Wretch ! dost thoit ask what thou hast done 1 Look back upon a dreadful misspent life, and ask thyself, what thou hast not done ? Ask, why is it that thou wert not long ago destroyed 1 Why wert thou not drowned in Yarmouth Eoads ? killed in the fight, when the ship was taken by the Sallee man-of-war 1 devoured by the wild beasts off the coast of Africa 1 or di-owned here, when all the crew perished but thyself? Dost thou ask, What have I done?" I was struck dumb with these reflections, as one astonished, and had not a word to say, — no, not to answer to myself, but rose up pensive and sad, walked back to my retreat, and went up over my wall, as if I had been going to bed; but my thoughts were sadly disturbed, and I had no inclination to sleep; so I sat down in my chair, and lighted my lamp, for it began to be dark. Now, as the apjn-ehensions of the return of my distemper terrified me very much, it occurred to my thought, that the Brazilians take no physic but their tobacco for almost all distempers, and I had a piece of a roll of tobacco in one of the chests, which was quite cured, and ( some also that was green, and not quite cured. I went, du-ected by Heaven, no doubt ; for in this chest I found a cure both for soul and body. I opened the chest, and found what I looked for, viz., the tobacco ; and as the few books I had saved lay there too, I took out one of the Bibles which I mentioned before, and which to this time I had not found leisure, or so much as inclination, to look into. I say, I took it out, and brought both that and the tobacco with me to the table. What use to make of the tobacco I knew not, as to my distemper, or whether it was good for it or no ; but I tried several experiments with it, as if I was resolved it should heal one way or other. I first took a piece of leaf, and chewed it in my mouth, which, indeed, at first, almost stupefied my brain, the tobacco being green and strong, and that I had not been much used to it. Then I took some and steeped it an hour or two in some rum, and resolved to take a dose of it when I lay down ; and, lastly, I burnt some iipon a pan of coals, and held my nose close over the smoke of it as long as I could bear it, as 63 ROBINSON CRUSOE. well for the hout as the virtia- ot it, uu.l I held it ulinost to huH'ocatioij. In the interval of this opemtion, I took up tho liible, and begnn to read; but my head was too much dis- turl)«-«l with the tobacco to l)car reading, at least at that time ; only, having opened the Ixjok casually, the words'first that occuiTerey8iou upon n»y thoughts at the time of reading them, though not so much as they did afterwards ; for, as for being dtUvered, the word had no sound, as I may say, to mc ; tho thing was so remote, .so inii)ossible in my apprehension of things, that I Wgan to say, as the children of Israel did when they were promised flesh to eat, " Can Goartly of opinion that I slept all tho next day and night, and till almo.st three the dny after ; for otherwise, I know not how I should lose a day out of my reckoning in tho days of the week, as it appeared some yeai-s after I had done; A»r if I had lost it by crossing and re-cro.ssing tho line, I should have lost more than one day; but in my account it was lost, and I never knew whieh way. Be that, howcvei*, one way or other, when I awaked I found myself exeoodingly refreshed, and my .spirits lively and cheerful ; when I got uj) I was .stronger than I was the dny before, and my stomach better, for I was hungry ; and, in short, I had no fit the next «lay, but continued much altered for tho better. This was tho 29th. Tho .3(»th was my well day, of course, and I went abroad with my gun, but did not caro to travel too far. I killed a sea-fowl or two, something like a brand goo.sc, anil brought them home ; but was not very forward to cut them ; so I eat some more of the turtle's eggs, which were very good. Tiiis evening I renewed the medicine, which I had suppo.sed did nm good tho day before, viz., tho tobacco steeped in rum ; only I ilid not take -.so much as bi'forc, nor did I chew any of the leaf, or hold my head over the smoke; however, I was not so w«'ll tho next day, which was tho 1st of July, as I hoped I should liave been ; for 1 had a little .spico of tho cold fit, but it was not much. Jidif 2. — I renewed the medicine all the three ways ; and dosed myself with it as at first, and doubletl tho (piantity which I drank. July .3. — I missed tho fit for goo«l and all, though I did not recover my full strength for aome weeks atler. While I was thus gathering strength, my thoughts ran exceed- ingly ujion this Scripture, " I will deliver theo ; " and the impossibility of my lf, I went up the creek lirst, Avhere, as I hinted, I brought my rafts onshore. 1 found, after 1 came about two miles up, that the tide did not Hoav any higher; and 66 _,! A SURVEY OF THE ISLAND. that it was no more than a little brook of running water, and very fresh and good : but this being the dry season, there Avas hardly any water in some parts of it ; at least, "lot enough to run in any stream, so as it could be perceived. On the banks of this biook, I found many pleasant savannas of meadows, plain, smooth, and covered with grass ; and on the rising parts of them, next to the higher grounds, where the water, as it might be supposed, never overflowed, I found a great deal of tobacco, green, and growing to a great and very strong stalk ; there were divers other plants, which I had no notion of or understanding about, and might, perhaps, have virtues of their own, which I could not find out. I searched for the cassava root, which the Indians in all that climate make their bread of, biit I could find none. I saw large plants of aloes, but did not then understand them. I saw several sugar-canes, but wild, and for want of cultivation, im- perfect. I contented myself with these discoveries for this time, and came back, musing with myself what course I might take to know the virtue and goodness of any of the fruits of plants which I should discover ; biit could bring it to no conclusion : for, in short, I had made so little observation while I was in the Brazils, that I knew little of the plants of the field ; at least, very little that might serve me to any pui'pose now in my distress. The next day, the IGtli, I went vip the same way again; and after going something further than I had gone the day before, I found the brook and savannas cease, and the country became more woody ohan before. In this part I found dififerent fruits, and particularly I found melons upon the ground, in great abundance, and grapes upon the trees : the vines had spread indeed over the trees, and the clusters of grapes were just now in their prime, very ripe and rich. This was a surprising discovery, and I was exceeding glad of them ; but I was warned by my experience to eat sparingly of them, remembering that, when I was ashore in Barbary, the eating of grapes killed several of our Englishmen, who were slaves there, by throwing them into fluxes and fevers. But I found an excellent use for these grapes ; and that was, to cure or dry them in the sun, and keep them as dried grapes or raisins are kept, Avhich I thought would be, as indeed they were, as wholesome and as ngreeable to eat, when no grapes might be had. I spent all that evening there, and went not back to my habitation, which, by the way, was the first night, as I might say, I had lain from home. In the night, I took my first conti'ivance, and got up into a tree, where I slept well ; and the next morning proceeded upon my discovery, travelling nearly four miles, as I might judge by the length of the valley, keeping still due north, vv'ith a ridge of hills on the south and north side of me. At the end of this march I came to an opening, where the country seemed to descend to the west ; and a little spring of fresh watei', which issued out of the side of the hill by me, ran the other way, that is, due east ; and the country appeared so fresh, so green, so floui'ishing, everything being in a constant verdure, or flourish of spring, that it looked like a planted garden. I descended a little on the side of that delicious valley, surveying it with a secret kind of pleasure, though mixed with other afflicting thoughts, to think that this was all my own ; that I v/as king and lord of all this country indefeasibly, and had a right of possession ; and, if I could convey it, I might have it in iaj^ritance as completely as any lord of a manor in England. I saw her abundance o^jocoa trees, orange and lemon, and citron trees ; but all wild, au few bearing any fruit, at least not then. However, the green limes that I gather.: were not only pleasant to eat, -but very wholesome ; and I jnixed their juice afterwan [ with water, Avhich made it very wholesome, and very cool and refreshing. I found no I had business enough to gather and carry home ; and I resolved to lay up a store, : well of grapes as limes and lemons, to furnish myself for the wet season, which I km m^ ROIilXSON CRUSOE. 'n order to do this, I gathered a great heap of grapes in one place, jthtT place, and a great ]»arct'l (if limes and lemons in another place; each with mo, 1 travelled homeward, and resolved to come a;,'ain, sack, or what I could make to carry the rc^t home. Accordingly, days in thin journey, I came home (s-i I must now call my tent anloasant, fruitful part of the island. This thought ran long in my head, and I was exceeding fond of it for .some time, the plea.santnc.ss of the place tempting me ; but when I came to a nearer view of it, I considered that I was now by the sea side, where it was at least i)o.ssible that some- thing might happen to n)y advantage ; and that the .same ill fate that brought me hither, might bring .some other unhapjiy wretches to the .same place ; and though it was scax-co proljablo that any such thing should ever happen, yet to enclose myself among the hill;; aid woods in the centre of the island, was to anticipate my bondage, and to render such an affair not only improbable, but impossible; autl that thoretbre I ought not by any njcans to remove. However, I was .so enamoured with this place, that I spent much •)f my time there for the whole remaining part of the month of July ; and though, upon .second thoughts, I resolved as above not to remove, yet I built nio a little kind of a bower, and surrounded it at a distance with a strong fence, being a double hedge, as high as I could reach, well sUiked, and fdled between with brubhwood ; and lierc I ! ly w.y secure, sometimes two or three nights together, always going over it with a ■ ddcr JUS before; so that I fancied now 1 had my country house and my .sea coast 'IIS.. ; ;nid this work took mc up to the beginning of August. 1 had but newly finished my fence, and began to enjoy my laboui*,^lvit the rains .imo on, and nnulo mo stick close to my lirst habitation ; for thougli I had midc me a I'.'ui like the other, with a piece of a sail, and spread it very well, yet I had not the shelter of a hill to keep me from stiuius, nor :v cave behind me to retreat into when the rains were extraordinary. About the beginning of August, sa I said, I ha. I finished my bower, and began to 68 -^ t>> !^f 1- .- yjr^. ROBINSON CRUSOE. enjoy myself. The 3rd of Atigiist, I found the grapes I hatl hung up were perfectly dried, and indeed were excellent good raisins of the sun ; so I began to taku them down fioiii the trees, and it wr^ very happy that I did so, for the mins which followed would have HpuilcJ them, and I had lost the best part of my winter food ; for I had above two hundred large bunches of them. No sooner had I taken them all down, and carried most of them home to my cave, but it began to i-ain ; and from hence, which was the 1 llh of August, it rained, more or less, every day till the middle of October, and s .iiietimes so violently, that I could not stir out of my cave for several days. In this season I was much surprised with the increase of my family; I had been concerned for the loss of one of my cats, who ran away from me, or, as I thought, had been dead, and I heard no more tidings of her, till, to my astonishment, she came home about the end of August, with three kittens. This was the more strange to me, because, though I had killed a wild cat, as I called it, with my gun, y-et I thought it was a quite diHercnt kind from our European cats; but the young cats were the same kind of house-breed as the old one ; and both my cats being females, I thought it very strange. Hut from these three cats I afterwards came to be so pestered with cats, that I was Ibrced to kill them like vermin, or wild beasts, and to drive them from my house as much a-s possible. From the llth of August to the 2Gth, incessant i-ain, so that I could not stii-, and was now very careful nut to be much Avet. In this confinement, I began to be stniitened for food : but venturing out twice, I one day killed a goat; and the last day, which was the 2Gth, found a very large tortoise, which was a treat to me, and my food was regulated thus: — I ate a bunch of raisins for my breakfast; a i»iece of the goat's n«'.sh, or of the turtle, for my dinner, broiled (for, to my gi'eat misfortune, I had no Mssil to boil or stew anything), and two or three of the turtle's eggs for sujiper. During this confinement in my cover by the r.iin, I Morkcd daily two or three hours at enlarging my cave, and by degi'ees worked it on towards one side, till I came to the outside of the hill, and made a door or way out, which came beyond my fence or V all ; and so I came in ami out this way. But I was not 2>erfectJy ea.sy at lying so open ; for, as I had managed myself before, I was in a jierfect iuclosure ; whereae now, I thought, I lay exjjo.sed, ami yet I could not perceive that there was any living thing to fear; the biggest creature that I had yet seen ui)on .the i^land being a goat. S'pt. 30. — I was now come to the unhappy anniversary of my landing. I cast up the notchea on my jjost, and found 1 had been on ahoro three lunulrcd and hixty-fivc ' vs. I ke])t this day as u soK-mn fast, settmg it apart for religious exeix-ise, pros- ling myself on the ground with the most serious humiliation, conic:4sing my sins to '■'.d, acknowledging his righteous judgment upon me, and J'raying to him to havo mercy on mo through Jesu.s Christ ; and having not tasti-i the least refreshnuut for twilvo houi-s, even till the going down of tlie sun, I then a(o a biscuit-cake and a buneh of gnipo.H, mid went to bed, fini.-iliijig tJie day ju I began it. 1 had all this time i>bserved no Sabbath-day; f«)r as at lii-.st X had no sense of religion upon my mind, I had, after some time, omitted to distinguisJi the weeks, by making a longer notch than ordiiuuy for the Sabbath-day, an.l so did not really know what any of the days were ; but now, having cjist up the days as above, I found I had been there a ycjir ; so I divided It into weeks, and set aj.art every seventh day for ji Sabbath; though I found at the end of my account I had lost a day or two in my reckoning. A little after this> my ink began to fail me, and so I contented my.self to use it more sparingly, and to 70 _- ^ 4 ^ THE FIRST CROP OF CORN. i'C.J i write down only the most remarkable events of my life, without continuing a daily memorandum of other things. The rainy season and the dry season began now to appear regular to me, and I learned to divide them so as to provide for them accordingly; but I bought all my experience before I had it, and this I am going to relate was one of the moat dis- couraging experiments that I made at all. I have mentioned that I had saved the few ears of barley and rice which I had so surprisingly found spring up, as I thought, of themselves; and I believe there wei'e about thirty stalks of rice, and about twenty of barley ; and now I thought it a proper time to sow it, after the rains, the sun being in his southern position, going from me. Accordingly, I dug up a piece of ground as well as I could with my wooden spade, and dividing it into two parts, I sowed my grain ; but as I was. sowing, it casually occurred to my thoughts that I would not sow it all at first, because I did not know when was the proper time for it, so I sowed about two-thirds of the seed, leaving about a handful of each. It was a great comfort to me afterwards that I did so, for not one grain of that I sowed this time came to anything : for the dry months following, the earth liaAdng had no rain after the seed was sown, it had no moisture to assist its growth, and never came up at all till the wet season had come again, and then it grew as if it had been newly sown. Finding my first seed did not grow, which I easily imagined was by the drought, I sought for a moister piece of ground to make another trial in, and I dug xip a piece of ground near my new bower, and sowed the rest of my seed in February, a little before the vernal equinox ; and this having the rainy months of IMarch and April to water it, sprang up veiy pleasantly, and yielded a very good crop ; l)iit having part of the seed left only, and not daring to sow all that I had got, I had but a small quantity at last, my whole crop not amounting to above half a peck of each kind. But by this experiment I was made master of my business, and knew exactly when the proper season was to sow, and fhat I might expect two seed times and two harvests every year. While this corn was growing I made a little discovery, which was of use to me afterwards. As soon as the rains were over, and the weather began to settle, which was about the month of November, I made a visit up the country to my bower, where, though I had not been some months, I found all things just as I left them. The circle or double hedge that I had made was not only firm and entire, but the stakes which I had cut off of some trees that grew thereabouts were all shot out and grown with long branches, as much as a willow-tree usually shoots the first year after lopping its head. I could not tell what tree to call it that these stakes were cut from. I was surprised, and yet veiy well pleased, to see the young trees grow : and I pruned them, and led them up to grow as much alike as I coiild ; and it is scarcely credible how beautiful a figure they grew into, in three years ; so that though the hedge made a circle of about twenty- five yards in diameter, yet the trees, for such I might now call them, soon covered it, and it was a complete shade, sufiicient to lodge under all the dry season. This made me resolve to cut some more stakes, and make me a hedge like this, in a ■micircle round my wall (I mean that of my first dwelling), which I did ; and placing '1:3 trees or stakes in a double row, at about eight yards distance from my first fence, tliey grew presently, and were at first a fine cover to my habitation, and afterwards served for a defence also, as I shall observe in its order. I found now that the seasons of the year might generally be divided, not into summer and winter, as in Europe, but into the I'ainy seasons and the dry seasons, which were generally thus : — 71 * le during the wet months. In this time I found much employment, and very suitabhi also to the time, for I found great occa-sion of many things which I had no way to furnish myself with but by hard labour and constant application ; i)articularly, I tried many ways to make myself a basket, but all the twigs I could get for the purpose provetl .so brittle that they would do nothing. It proved of excellent advantage to me now that wlien I was a boy I \ised to take great delight in standing at a basket- maker' .s, in the town where my father lived, to see them make their wicker-ware ; and iM'ing, as boys usmilly are, very oHicious to help, and a great obsen'er of the manner how they worked those things, and sometimes lent a hand, I had by this means so full knowle, how to supply two wants. 1 liad no vessel to hold anything that was liipiid, except two ninlet.s, which were almost full lT rum, and some glass botth's — some of the common size, ami othei-s which were case-bottles, square, for the 111 Iding of water, spirits, itc. I had not so much as a pot to boil anything in, except a great kettle, which 1 .saved out of the ship, and which mus too big for such uses as I de.'^ired it for — viz., to nuike bix)th, and stew a bit of meat by itself. Tho second thing I fain would have liad was a tobacco-pipe, but it was impossible for me to make one ; however, 1 found a contrivance for that, too, at hvst I employed myself in jdanting my Hccmid row of stakes or jiiles, and ih this wicker-work all the summer or dry senson, when another business took nic up more time than it could be imagined I could I mentioned before that 1 lui.l a great mind to see tlie whole i.sland, and that I liad"^ travelled up the brook, and so on to where I built my bower, and where I had an opening quite to the sea, on the other side of the island. I now resolved to travel quite across to the sea-shore on that side; so, taking my gun, a hatchet, and mv dog, and a larger quantity of powder and shot than usual, with two biscuit-cakes and a great bunch of raisins in my pouch for my store, I began my journey. When I had passed the vale where my bower stood, as above, I came within view of the sea to the west, and it being a very clear day, I fairly descried land-whether an island or a continent I could not tell; but it lay very high, extending from the W. to the W.S.W,, sx± a veiy great distance ; by my gue*s, it could not be less than fifteen or twenty leagues off. _ I could not tell what part of the world this might be, otherwise than that I knew It must be part of America, and, as I concluded, by all my observations, must be near the Spanish dominions, and perhaps was all inhabited by savages, where, if I should ha^-o landed, I had been in a worse condition than I was now; and therefore T acquiesced in tho^. \\ ROBINSON CRUSOE. •lispositions of Providence, ^vlljph I began now to o\ni and to believe ordered everytliing fir the best; I say I quieted my mind •with tliis, and left afflicting myself AvitU fniitles-s wishes of being there. Ueside.s, after sonic pause upon this afluir, I considered that if this land was the Spanish coast, I should certainly, one time or -other, sec some vessel 2>ass or repairs one way or other ; but if not, then it was the Havago coast between the Spanish countiy antl the Brazils, which were indeed the worst of savages ; for they are canni- bal?i, and fail not to murder and devour all the human bodies that fall into their hands. With these considerations, I walked veiy leisurely forward. I found that side of the island where I now was much pleasanter than mine — the open or savannah fields sweet, adorned with floweiu and grass, and full of very fine woods. I s;iw abundance of juirrots, and fain would I Jiavo caught one, if 2)ossible, to have kept it to be tame, and taught it to speak to mo. I did, after some painstaking, catch a young ])arrot, fur I knocked it down with a stick, and having recovered it, I brought it home ; but it was souio ycai-s before I could make him speak ; however, at last, I taught him to call nic hy my name very familiarly. But the accident that followed, thougli it be a trifle, will be very diverting in its place. I Avits exceedingly diverted with this journey. I found in the low grounds hares (is I thought thorn to be) and foxes ; but they differed greatly from all the other kinds I had met with, nor could I satisfy myself to cat them, though I killed several. But I luul 410 need to bo vcntumns, for I had no want of food, and of that which was very g.Kxl, tplied all the comforts of it to my present state. One morning, being very sad, I opened the Bible upon these words, " I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee." Immediately it occurred that these words were to me ; why else should they be directed in such a manner, just at the moment when I was mourning over my con- diti<, and repent. I never opened the Bible, or shut it, but my very soul within me ble.ssed G(»d for directing my friend in England, without any order of mine, to pack it uj) among my good.s, and for as.sisting me afterwards to save it out of the wreck of the ship. Thu.««, and in tlii-» disposition of mind, I began my third year ; and though I have not given the rea«ler the trouble of so particular an account of my works this year i\^ tho fn-st ; yet in general it may bo observed that I wivs very seldom idle, but having regularly divided mv time according to several daily employments that wore before 7(^ ^ ^^r-i^. V^ KOIUNSOX CRUSOE. iH« such ns, first, my duty to Gotl, nnd the reading the Scriptures, -wLicli I constantly Ket'a]«rt some time fon,thrico every day ; secondly, the going abroad wiih my gun fur f joJ, which gcnomlly took up three liours in every morning, when it did not rain ; thirdly, tho ordering, ciuing, presening, and cooking what I hud killed or caught for my supply : theso took up groat part of the day ; also, it is to bo considercil, that in the middle of tixo day, when tho siui was in tho zenith, the violence of the lieat was too great to btir out ; so that alx)ut four hours ia the evening was all the time I could bo supposed to work in, with this exception, that sometimes I changed my hours of hunting anlough to turn up the earth; no spade or sliovel to dig it. Well, iiis I cunfjuercd by making mo a wooden is]»ade, ns I observed before; but this did my \v«>rk but in a wooden manner; and tliough it coat me a great many days to make it, yet for want of iron, it not only wore out the sooner, but made my work the harder, and made it be performed much woree. However, this I bore with too, and was content to work it out with |)atience, and bear with the baducsi of the performance. When the corn was Kown, I had no liarrow, but wa« forced to go over it myself, and di-ag a great licavy bough of a tree over it, to scratch it, as it may bo called, rather than rake or har- row it. When it was gi-owing, or grown, I have obsen-ed already how man}' things I wanted to fence it, secure it, mow or reap it, cure and can-y it home, thrash, part it from the chafT, and save it. Then I wanted a mill to grind it, sieves to dress it, yeast and talt to make it into bread, and an oven to bake it in; and all these things I did without, as shall be observed; and yet the corn was an inestimable comfort and advantage to me too. Fut this, as I said, made everything laborious and tedious to me; Init that there was no help for; neither was my time so much loss to me, because, as I had divided it, a certain part of it was every day appointed to these works ; and as I had resolved to use none of tlic corn for bread till I had a greater quantity by mo, I had tlie next six months to apply myself wholly, by labour and invention, to furni.r T had n )\v se:J eiuugh to sow ab^ve au acre of ground. Before I did this, I had a week's work at least to make me a sp.ide, which, when it wns done, was but a sorry one indeed, and very heavy, and rcipiired double lal)uur to work with it. However, [ went through that, and sowed my sclhI in two large flat pieces of ground, as near my liouso as I covdd find them to my mind, and fenced them in with a good hedge, the stakes of which were all cut of that wood which I had .set before, which I knew would grow; .so tliat, iu one year's time, I knew I "uld liave a quick or living hedge, that would want but little repair. This work was t Mi little as to take mc u]) less than three months, because great part of that tiui j V. .IS of the wet season, when I could not go abroad. 'NVithin-door, that is when it raineJ, iunl I Could not go oiit, I fotmd employment in the following occupations — always observing that all the while I was at work I diverted myself with talking to my parrot, and teaching him to speak; and I quickly Icanit him to know his own name, and at last t.i speak it out pretty loud, " Poll," which was the first word I ever heard spoken in the isl.ind by any mouth but my own. Tins, therefore, was not my work, but an assistant to my work; for now, as I .sjvid, I halagre.it employment ui)on my hands, as follows: v'u, I had long .studied, by some means or other, to make my.self .some earthen vesseLs, whi:^'), indeed, 1 wanted sorely, but knew not where to come at them. However, considering the heat of the climate, T did not doubt but if I could find out any clay, I might b<»teh up some such pot as might, being dried by the sun, be hard enough and strong gh to bear handling, and to hold anything that wivs dry, and required to be 1je]»t ; and as this was necessary in preparing corn, meal, A'c., which was the thing I was upon, I resolved to makfi some a.s largo as I could, and fit only to stand like jars, to hold sliould l)e put into them. It wonM link" thi' r.-adn- jiitv me, or rather laugh at nie. to {.11 how mnny awkward 80 ways I took to raise this paste ; what odd, luisshapeu, ugly ^ things T made ; how many of them fell in, and how many fell out— the 7^ clay not being stiff enough to bear its own weight ; how many cracked by the over-\'iolent heat of the sun, being set out too hastily ; and how many fell to pieces with only removing, as well before as after they were dried ; and, in a word, how, after having laboured hard to find the clay — to dig it, to temper it, to bring it home, and work it — 1 could not make above two large earthen ugly things (I cannot call them jars) in about two months' labour. However, as the sun baked these two very dry and hard, I lifted them very gently up, and set them down again in two great wicker baskets, which I had made on purpose for them, that they might not break ; and as between the pot and the basket there was a little room to spare, I stuffed it full of the rice and barley straw ; and thes«; two pots being to stand always dry, I thought would hold my dry corn, and perhaps the meal, when the corn was bruised. ROBINSON CRUSOE. Thoagh r miscarried so mucli in my design for large pots, yet I made several Biiiidier tliinflfs with better success ; such as little round pots, flat dishes, pitchers, aiui i)i|)kins, and anything my hand turned to ; and the heat of tlie sun baked them strangfly ji.lrd. Eut all this would riot answer my end, whicli was to get an earthen pot to hold what wfts liquiil, and t>ear the fire; which none of these could do. It happened after sonio time, making a pretty large fire for cooking my meat, when I went to put it out aftet* I had done with it, I found a broken piece of one of my eai-thenware vessels in the fire, burnt as hard U3 i stone, and red as a tile. I was agreeably surprised to see it, ohd said to myself thai; ccftainly they miglit bo made to burn whoU', if they woidd burn broken. This set mo to study how to order my fire so as to make it burn mo some pots. I had no iidtlon of a klhi, such as the potters burn in, or of glazing them with lead, thougli I had some lead to do it with; but I phiced three large pipkins, and two or three pot.s, in a pile, one upon another, and placed my firewood all round it, with a great heap of embers under tlictti. I plied the fire with fresh fuel round the outside, and upon the lop, till i saw the pots in the inside red-hot rpiite through, and observed that they did not crack at all ; when I .saw them clear red, 1 let them stand in that heat about five or MIX hours, till I foUnd one of them, though it did not crack, did melt or run; for the 8:ind which was mixed willi the clay melted by the violence of the heat, and would have run into glass if I had gone on; so I slacked my fire gradually till the pots began to abate of tlio red colour, and watching them all night, that 1 might not let the fire abate too fa.st, in the morning I had three very good (t will not say handsome) pipkins, and two oUicfr earthen pots, as hard burnt as could bo desiirbd, arid one of them perfectly glazed with the running of the sand. After this experiment, t need not say that I wanted rib soft of ieartlienware for my u^o ; but i must needs say as to the shapes of ilierii tlioy wore vbty indifferent, as any one may suppose, when I had no way of making them but as the children make dirt pics, or as a woman would make pies that never learned to raise paste. No joy at a thing of so mean a nature was ever equal to mine, when I found I liad made an earthen pot that would bear the fire ; and I lunl hardly patience to stay till they were col 1 before I set one on the fire again, with some water in it, to boll me some meat, which it did admirably well ; and with a piece of a kid I m.ado some veiy good broth, though I wanted oatmeal and .several other ingredients rcqiiisite to make it as good as I would have had it. My next concen; was to get mo a stone mortar to stamp or beat some corn in ; for as to the mill, there was no thought of arriving to that perfection of art with one pair of haiuls. To Hiipply this want I was at a great lo.ss; for, of all the tmdes in the world, I was as perfectly un, after a great deal of time lost in searching for a stone, I gave it over, aiul resolved to look out a great block of hard wood, which I found indeed miich easier ; and getting one as big as I had strength to stir, T rounded it and formed it on the outside with my axe and hatchet, and tlu-n, wiili flic Iwlnnf fire and infinite labour, made a hollow place 82 / CRUSOE SUCCEEDS AS A BAKEl in it, as the Indiaus iu Brazil make their cauoes. After this, I made a great heavy pestle, or beater, of the -wood called the iron- wood ; and this I prepared and laid by a^ain^t I had my next crop of corn, which I proposed to myself to grind, or rather pound my corn or meal, to make my bread. j\Iy next difficulty was to make a sieve, or sierce, to dress my meal, and to part it from the bran and the husk ; without which I did not see it possible I could have any bread. This was a most difficult thing, so much as but to think on, for to be sure I had nothing like the necessary things to make it with ; I mean fine thin canvas, or stuff, to sierce the meal through. And here I was at a full stop for many months; nor did I really know what to do. Linen I had none left but what was mere i-ags ; I had goats'- hair, but neither knew I how to weave or spin it ; and had I known how, here were no tools to work it with. All the remedy that I found for this was, that at last I did remember I had, among the seamen's clothes which were saved out of the ship, some neckcloths of calico or muslin ; and with some pieces of these I made three small sieves, but proper enough for the work ; and thus I made shift for some years : how I did after- wards, I shall show in its place. The baking part was the next thing to be considered, and how I should make bread when I came to have corn ; for, first, I had no yeast ; as to that part, as there was no suj)plying the want, so I did not concern myself much about it. But for an oven, I was indeed in great pain. At length I found out an expei'iment for that also, which Avas this : I made some earthen vessels very broad, but not deep, that is to say, about two feet diameter, and not above nine inches deep ; these I burned, in the fire, as I had done the other, and laid them by ; and when I w;anted to bake, I made a great fire upon the hearth, which I had paved with some square tiles, of my own making and burning also ; but I should not call them square. When the fire-wood was burned pretty much into embers, or live coals, I drew them forward upon this hearth, so as to cover it all over, and there I let them lie till the hearth was very hot ; then sweeping away all the embers, I set down my loaf or loaves, and whelming down the earthen pot upon them, drew the embei'S all round the outside of the pot, to keep in and add to the heat ; and thus, as well as in the best oven in the world, I baked my barley-loaves, and became, in little time, a good pastry-cook into the bargain ; for I made myself several cakes and puddings of the rice ; indeed I made no pies, neither had I anything to put into them, supposing I had, except the flesh either of fowls or goats. It need not be wondei'ed at if all these things took me up most part of the third year of my abode here ; for, it is to be observed that, in the intervals of these things, I had my new harvest and husbandly to manage ; for I reaped my corn in its season, and carried it home as well as I could, and laid it up in the ear, in my large baskets, till I had time to mb it out, for I had no floor to thrash it on, or instrument to thrash it with. And now, indeed, my stock of corn increasing, I really wanted to build my barns bigger ; I wanted a place to lay it up in, for the inci-ease of the corn now yielded me so much, that I had of the barley about twenty bushels, and of the rice as much, or more ; insomuch that I now resolved to begin to use it freely ; for my bread had been quil c gone a great while ; also I resolved to see what quantity would be sufficient for me a whole year, and to sow but once a year. "Upon the whole, I found that the forty bushels of barley and rice were much rnorc than I could consume in a year ; so I resolved to sow just the same quantity every year kf>'' \\ ROBINSON CRL'SO tlmt I xowod the last, in hopes that such a qtiautity would fully provide me "with bread, itc. All the while tlieso things were doing, you may be sure my thoughts ran many times upon the prospect of land which I had seen from the other side of the island ; and I was not without secret wishes that I was on shore there, fancying that, seeing the main-land, and an inhabited country, I might find some way or other to convey myself farther, and perhaps at last find some means of escape. Hut all this while I made no allowance for the dangera of stich a condition, and how I might fall into the hands of savages, and perhaps such as I might have reason to think far worse than the lions and tigers of Africa : that if I once came into their power I should run a hazard more than a thousand to one of being killed, and perhaps of being eaten ; for I had lieard that the people of the Caribbean coasts were cannibals, or men-caters, and I knew by the latitude that I could not be far off from that shore : that suppose they were not caimibals, yet they might kill me, as many Europeans who had fallen into their hands had been served, even when they had been ten or twenty together — much more I, that was but one, and could make little or no defence; all these things, I say, which I oug^it to have considered Avell of, and I did cast up in my thoughts afterwards, yet took up none of my apprehensions at first, and my head ran mightily uj>on the thought of getting over to that shore. Now, I wished for my boy Xury, and the long-boat with the shouldcr-of-mutton sail, with which I sailed above a thousand miles on the coast of Africa ; but this was in vain : then I thought I would go and look at our ship's boat, which, as I have said, was blown up iipon the shore a great way, in the storm, when we were first cast away. She lay almost where she did at lii-st^ but not quite, and was turned, by the force of tho waves and the winds, almost bottom upward, against the high ridge of beachy, rough sand, but no water about lier as before. If I had had hands to liave refitted her, and to have launched Jicrinto tho water, the boat Avould have done well enough, and I might have gone back into tho Brazils with lier easily enough ; but I might have easily foreseen that I could no more turn her and set her upright upon her bottom, than I could remove tho island ; however, I went to tho wood, and cut lovers and rollers, and brought them to tho boat, resolved to try what I could do; suggesting to myself, that if I could but turn Ijor down, I might easily repair tho damage she had received, and she would be a very good boat, and I might go to sea in her very easily. I .spared no pains, indeed, iu this piece of fruitless toil, and spent, I think, three or four weeks abmit it; at hu>t, finding it impossible to heavo it up with my little strength, I fell to digging away the smd, to undermine it, and so to make it fall down, setting pieces of wood to thrust and guide it right iu tho fall. Uut when I had ilono thi.s, I wa.s unable to stir it u]y again, or to get under it, much \os» to nunc it forward towards tho water; so I was forced to give it over; and yet, though I gave over tho hopes of tho boat, my desire to venture over for the main in- creased, rather than decreaseil, as the means for it secuK\l impossible. This at length set me uj)on thinking whether it was not jwssible to make myself n canoe, or i)eriagua, such as the natives of those climates make, oven without tools, or, as I might say, without hands— viz., of the trunk of a great ti'cc. This 1 not only thought possible, but c.a.sy, and j)leascd myself extremely with my thoughts of making it, and with my having nnich more convenience for it than any of the Negi'ocs or Indians; l>ut nnt at all eonnidenng tho )>articular ineonvenionces wliioh 1 lay under more than the Indians did, \ iz., want of hands to move it into the water when it was mado<— a i ^')^: L'-f-^>^\2^ , 1WT ROBINSON CRUSOE. y)4 tlifliciilty much Larder for me to snnnoiuit than all the cpwscquences of want of tools could be to thoin. For what was it to me, thit when I had chosen a vast tree in the wood, I miglit with great trouble cut it down, if after I migat be able with my tools to liew and dub the outside into tlio i)roj»er sliape of a boat, and bum or cut out the insido to make it hollow, so as to make a boat of it— if, after all this, I must leave it just there where 1 found it, and was not able to launch it into the water ? One would have thought I could not have ha4 the least reflection upon my mind of my circumstances while I was making this boat, btit 1 shoidd have immediately thought Uow I shotdd got It into the sea ; but my thoughts were so intent upon my voyage over tjio 8ca in it, that I never onco considered how I should get it off the land : and it wns rc-iUy, in its own uaturp, more easy for mo to guide it over forty-five miles of sea, than ;i'>out forty-five fut)iom3 of land, whore it lay, to set it afloat in the water. I went to work uj^fi ^lis boat the most like a fool that ever man did, who had any of hi} .senses aw^ke. J jdcascd myself with the design, without determining whether I was ever able to undertake it; not but that the difficulty of launching my boat came often into ray head; but I put a stop to my inquiries into it, by this foolish ar.3wcr which I gave myself: " Let pie fir^t injike it; I warrant I shall find some way or other to get it along when it is done." This was a most i)rcpo3tcrous jnethod ; but the cagf^yncss of my fancy prevailed, and to work I went, an^ |ellcd a cedar-tree. I fLuestion much whether Solomon ever had 8uch ft one for the buijding tl^o Temple at Jerusalem; it was five feet ten inches diameter at the Jowcr j>ar|; next the stump, and four feet eleven inches diameter at the end of twenty-t)vo feet ; after which it lessened for a while, and then parted into branches. It yfixa not :wit|iout infinite labour that I felled this tree. I was twenty i|ays hacking ;i ' ' * ' ' t the bottom; I was fourteen more getting the branches and limbs an 1 ; he.id of it cut off, which I hacked and hewed through ith my axe ani jKiiclict, .-iiul inexpressible labour; after this, it cost me a month to ;>o it and dub it to a proportion, ap4 to .something like the bottom of a boat, that it mi ,Iit swim tipright as ip ought to do. It cost mo near three mouths more to clear the iucidc, and work it out so as to pake an exact boat of it : this I did, indeed, without fire, mere mallet au4 chisel, and by the dint of hard labour, till I had brougjit it ^o bo a V' handmino periagua, and big enough to have carried si x-aud- twenty men, and I. 'ig enough to have carried mo and all my cargo. d crone through this work, I was extremely delighted with it. The boat V. _;(!r than ever I saw a (j.-xnoo or neriagiia, that was matlc of one t;:,ce, i .1 weaiy stroke it had cost, you may bo sure — for th>'ro j'Oiuaiucd uuihiiig Lui. to gyt it ilfto tl»c wiiter; and liad I gotten it into the water, I make no (pn'sti(»n but I .should have begun i]io maddest voyage, and the most unlikely to bo perfi)rmed, that over was uudertaken. But all my devices to got it into the water failed mo ; thouidi they cost fufinfto Ivbourtoo. It lay about ojio hundred yards from the water, and jiot juorc ; but the fit t iiic 'UveiilriHo Ma;, it was up hill towards Iho creek. Well, to take away this " ' I to dig into the surface of tjio earth, and so make a declivity. - luc a prodigious deal of pains (Imt >vho grudge piiins that have ' ' yiewi); but when this was worked through, and this dilliculty '" 11 mvich at one, for I could uo more stir tho canoe th.an I could liio Diiu r boat. Then X measured tho distance of ground, and resolved to cut a dock or il, to bring tho water up to tho canoe, seeing J could not brir-' *' ' ■ * - tlie water. Well, I began this work ; and when I began to enter into it, and calcula'.„ how deep it was to be dug, how broad, how the stuff was to bo thrown out, I found tli:it, by the number of hands I had, being none but my own, it must have been ten or twelve years before I could have gone through with it ; for the shore lay so high that at the upper end it must have been at least twenty feet deep; so at length, though Avith great reluctancy, I gave this attempt over also. This grieved me heartily ; and now I saw, though too late, the folly of beginning a v.-ork before we count the cost, and before v.^e judge rightly of our own strength to go through with it. In the middle of this work I finished my fourth year in this place, and kept my anniversary with the same devotion, and with as much comfort as ever before ; for, by a constant study and serious application of the Word of God, and by the assistance of his grace, I gained a difiierent knowledge fi-om what I had before, I entertained different notions of things. I looked now upon the world as a thing remote, which I had nothing to do with, no expectation from, and, indeed, no desires about : m a Y.'ord, I had nothing indeed to do with it, nor was ever likely to have. So I thought it looked, as we may perhaps look upon it hereafter viz., as a place I had lived in, bub was come out of it ; and well might I say, as Father Abraliam to Dives, " Between me and thee is a great gulf fixed." In the first place, I was removed from all the wickedness of the world here ; I had neither the lust of the flesh, the lusb of the eye, nor the pride of life. I had nothing to covet, for I had all I was now capable of enjoying; I was lord of the whole manor ; or, if I pleased, I might call myself king or emperor over the whole country Avhich I had possession of. There were no rivals ; I had no competitor, none to dispute sovereignty or command with me. I might have raised ship-loadings of corn, but I had no use for it; so I let as little grow as I thought enough for my occasion. I had tor- toises or turtles enough, but now and then one was as much as I could put to any use. I had timber enough to have built a fleet of ships ; and I had grapes enough to have made wine, or to have cured into raisins, to have loaded that fleet when it had been built. But all I could make use of was all that was valuable : I had enough to eat and to supply my wants, and what was all the rest to me ? If I killed more flesh than I coidd eat, the dog must eat it, or the vermin ; if I sowed more corn than I could eat, it must be spoiled; the trees that I cut down were lying to rot on the ground; I could make no more use of them than for fuel, and that I had no occasion for but to dresa my food. In a word, the nature and experience of things dictated to me, upon just reflection, that all the good things of this world are no further good to us than they are for our use; and that, whatever we may heap up indeed to give others, we enjoy as much as wc can use, and no more. The most covetous, griping miser in the world would have been cin*ed of the vice of covetousness, if he had been in my case ; for I possessed in- finitely more than I knew what to do with. I had no room for desire, except it was of things which I had not, and they were but trifles, though, indeed, of great use to me. I had, as I hinted before, a parcel of money, as well gold as silver, about thirty-six pounds sterling. Alas ! there the nasty, sorry, useless stuff lay ! I had no manner of Ixisiuess for it ; and I often thought with myself that I would have given a handful of it for a gross of tobacco-pipes ; or for a hand-mill to grind my corn ; nay, I would have given it all for sixpenny-worth of turnio and carrot seed out of Euglan;!, or for a handful ^87 .1 \ I I 1 / % ii vi\tch-coats of the seamen's which were loft behind, but they were too hot to woi\r; and though it is true that the weather v.as so violently hot that there was j n uecd of clothes, yet 1 could not go quite naked — i.o, though I had been inclined to it, which I was not; nor could I abido the thoughts of if, though I was all alone. One reason why I could not ^c naked was, I could not bear the heat of tlio sun so well when quite naked as witli some clotlies on : nay, the very heat frequently blistered my skin, whereas, witli a shirt on, the air itself made some motion, and whistling under the .ihirt, wjis twotcld cooler than without it. No more could I ever bring myself to go out in the heat n the sun without a : 10 or a hat ; the heat of the smi, beating! with such violence Oi it docs in that place, would give me the hoadacho presently, by darting so directly on my he;id, without a cap or hat on, so that I could not bear it ; wheiras, if 1 j)ut on my hat^ it would presently go away. l^pon those views, I began to consider about putting the lew rags I had, which I called clothos, into some order ; I had worn o\it all the waistcoats I had, and my busi- 9^ _J| CRUSOE'S UMBRELLA. iics.s Avas now to try if I coiikl not make jackets out of tlie great wateli-coats wliicli I liud by luo, and -with such other materials as I had ; so I set to work, tailoring, or rather, indeed, botching, for I made most piteous work of it. However, I made shift to make two or three waistcoats, which I hoped would serve me a great while ; as for breeches or drawers, I made but a very sorry shift indeed till afterwards. I have mentioned that I saved the skins of all the creatures that I killed, I mean four-footed ones, and I had them hung vip stretched out with sticks in the sun, by which means some of them were so dry and hard that they were fit for little, but others, it seems, were very useful. The first thing I made of these was a great cap for my head, with the hair on the outside, to shoot off the rain ; and this I performed so well, that after, I made me a suit of clothes wholly of those skins — that is to say, a waistcoat, and breeches open at the knees, and both loose, for they Avere rather wanting to keep me cool than to keep me warm. I must not omit to acknowledge that they were wretchedly made ; for if I Avas a bad carpenter, I Avas a Avorse tailor. HoAvever, they were such as I made a very good shift Avith, and Avhen I Avas abroad, if it happened to rain, the hair of the Avalstcoat and cap being outermost, I Avas kept very dry. After this, I spent a great deal of time and pains to make an umbrella. I Avas in- deed in great Avant of one, and had a great mind to make one. I had seen them made in the Brazils, Avhere they are very useful in the great heats which are there, and I felt the heats every jot as great here, and greater too, being nearer the equinox ; besides, as I Avas obliged to be much abroad, it was a most useful thing to me, as Avell for the rains as the heats. I took a world of pains at it, and Avas a great Avhile before I could make any- thing likely to hold ; nay, after I thought I had hit the Avay, I spoiled tAvo or three be- fore I made one to my mind. But at last I made one that answered indifferently well ; the main difficulty I found Avas to make it to let doAvn. I could make it spread, but if it did not let down too, and draAv in, it Avould not be portable for me any Avay but just over my head, Avhich Avould not do. HoAvever, at last, as I said, I made one to ansAVcr. I covered it with skins, the hair upwards, so that'it cast off the rain like a pent-house, and kept off the sun so effectually, that I could w^alk out in the hottest of the v/eather Avith greater advantage than I could before in the coolest, and when I had no need of it, I could close it, and carry it under my arm. Thus I lived mighty comfortably, my mind being entirely composed by resigning to the Avill of God, and throAviug myself Avholly upon the disposal of his proA-idence. This made my life better than sociable, for Avheu I began to regret the Avant of conver- sation, I would ask myself, Avhether thus conversing mutually Avith my own thoughts, and (as I hope I may say) Avith even my Maker, by ejaculations and petitions, Avas not better than the utmost enjoyment of human society in the Avorld I I cannot say that, after this, for five years, any extraordinary thing happened to me, but I lived on in the same course, in the same posture and place, just as before. The chief thing I was employed in, besides my yearly labour of planting my barley and rice, and curing my raisins — of both Avhicli I alAvayskept up just enough to haA'e sufficient stock of the year's provision beforehand — I say, besides this yearly labour, and my daily labour of going out Avith my gun, I had one labour, to make me a canoe, Avhich at last I finished ; so that, by digging a canal to it of six feet wide and four feet deep, I brought it into the creek, almost half a mile. As for the first, Avhich was so A^astly big, as I made it Avith- out considering beforehandj as I ought to do, how I should be able to launch it, so, never being able to bring it into the water, or bring the Avater to it, I Avas obliged to let it li3 where it Avas, as a memorandum to teach me to be Aviser the next time. Indeed, the next hW .x^} -^^^-^ss^ KODINSON CRUSOE. time, though I could not get a tree proper for it, and was in a place where I could not get the water to it at any less di.st;vnce than, as I hare said, of near half a mile, yet, as I saw it was practicable at last, I never gave it over ; and though I was near two years about it, yet I never grudged my labour, in hopes of having a boat to go off to sea at last. • However, though my little pcriagxia was finished, yet the size of it was not at all answerable to the design which I had in view when I made the fii-st ; I mean of ventur- ing over to the terra Jirma, where it was above forty miles broad; accoi-dingly, the sinallness of my boat assisted to put an end to that design, and now I thought no more of it. As I had a boat, my next design was to make a tour round the island ; for as I had Ijeen on the other side in one place, crossing, as I have already described it, over the land, so the discoveries I made in that journey made mo very eager to see other jKirts of the coast ; and now I had a boat, I thought of nothing but i>iiiling round the ishiml. I'^or this purpose, and that I might do everything with discretion and consideration, I fitted up a little mast in my boat, and made a sail to it out of some of the i)ieces of the sliip's sails which lay in store, and of Avhich I had a great store by mc. Having fitted my iHiust and sail, and tried the boat, I found she would sail very well j then I raado little lockers, or boxes, at each end of my boat, to put provisions, necessaries, ammunition, itc, itito, U> bi; kept dry, cither from rain or the spray of the sea ; and a little, long, linllow place I cut in the inside of the boat, where I could Liy my gun, making a flaj> to hang down over it, to keep it dry. I fixed my iimbrella also in a step at the stern, like a mast, to stand over my head, and k<>('p the heat of the sun off of me, like an awning. And thus I every now and then to.)k a little voyage upon the sea ; but never went far out, nor far from the little creek. At la.st, being eager to view the circumference of my little kingdom, I resolved upon my tour ; and accordingly I victualled my ship for the voyage, putting in two dozen of loaves (cakes I shoidd rather call them) of barley bread, an earthen i»ot full of parched I i«-e (.1 food I ate a great deal of), a little bottle of mm, half a goat, and powder with shot tor killing more, and two largo watch-coats, of those which, as I mentioned before, I had •saved otit of the .seamen's chests ; these I took, one to lie upon, and the other to cover mr in the night. II was the Gth of November, in tho sixth yt^r of my nign, or my captivity, which you pIra.so, that J set out on this voyage, and I found it much longer than 1 expected ; for though the island itself was not very large, yet when I came to tho east side of it, > I tound a great ledge of rockn lie out al>out two leagues into the .soa, .some above water, soiiH! under it ; and beyond that a shoal of .sand, lying dry half a league more, so that I wa.H obliged to go ji great way out to .sea to doulJe that point. ^Vll(•ll I first discovered them, I was going to give over my cntt iprise, and come back again, not knowing how fur it might oblige mo to go out to .^ea ; and, .ibove all, doubt- ing how I should get l)ack again ; .so J camo to an anchor ; for I had made a kind of an anchor with a piece of a broken gTapj.ling which 1 got out of the ship. Having .secured my boat, I took my gun and went on shore, climbing up a hill, whioh seemed to overlook that point where 1 sjiw the full extent of it, and resolved to venture. III my viewing tho sea from that hill where I stood, I perceived a strong and, in- doe»l, a most furiou.s current, which ran to the cast, and even came close to the point ; and I took tho more notice of it, because I saw there might be .some danger, that when I camo into it, 1 might bo carried out to sea by the strength of it, and not bo aWe to J^r^y. -r^^ ZVJ6M iAnLS (DIO IT ©IF HIS m^Em] ^^^^^- make the island again. And, indeed, had I not got first upon this hill, I believe it would have been so ; for there was the same current on the other side of the island, only that it set off at a farther distance, and I saw there was a strong eddy under the shore ; so I had nothing to do but to get out of the first current, and I should presently be in an eddy. I lay here, however, two days, because the wind blowing pretty fresh at E.S.E., and that being just contrary to the current, made a great breach of the sea upon the point ; so that it was not safe for me too keep too close to the shore for the la-each, nor to go too far off", because of the stream. The third day, in the morning, the wind having abated overnight, the sea was calm, and I ventured. But I am a warning-piece to all rash and ignorant pilots ; for no sooner was I come to the point, when I was not even my boat's length from the shore, bxit I found myself in a gi'eat depth of water, and a current like the sluice of a mill. It carried any 93 r-.-:ssss::^sss5S:KS i SSSSS 53^-=^^^^^^^^ ROBINSON CRL'SOE. boat aloug witli it with such violence tliat all I could do could not keep her so much as ou the edge of it ; but I found it hurried me farther and farther out from the eddy, which was on my left hand. There wa:i no wind stirring to help me, and all that I could do with my paddles signified nothing. And now I began to give myself over for lost ; for as the current was on both sidtj.s of the island, I knew in a few leagues' distance they must join again, and then I was irrecoverable gone ; nor did I see any possibility of avoiding it ; so that I had no prospect before me but of perishing, not by the sea, for that was calm enough, but of starving fronx hunger. I had, indeed, found a tortoise on the shore, as big almost as I could lift, and had tossed it into the boat ; and I had a great jar of fresh water, that is to say, one of my earthen jiots ; but what was all this to being driven into the vast ocean, where, to be sure, there was no shore, no mainland or islanil, for a thousand leagues at least 1 And now I saw how easy it was for the providence of God to make the most misemble condition tliut mankind could be in woi-se. Now I looked back nix>n my tlesolate, solitary island as the most pleasant place in the world, and all the happiness my heart could wish for was to be there again. I stretched out my hands to it, with eager wishes. " O happy desert !" said I, " I shall never sec thee more. O misei-ablo creature ! whither am I going V* Then I reproached myself with my unthankful tem- IMjr, and how I had repined at my solitary condition; and now what would I give to be on shore there again ! Thus, we never see the true state of our condition till it is ited to tis by ila contraries, 7ior know how to value what we enjoy, but by the iilusti want of it. Jt ia .scarcely possiljlc to imagine the consternation I was now in, being driven from n>y beloved island (for so it appeared to mo i-w to be) into the wide ocean, ahnost two leagues, and in the utmost despair of ever i-ccovcring it again- However, I workitl hard till, iudoud, ray strength w;\3 almost exhausted, and kept my boat as much to the northward— that is, towards the side of the current which the eddy lay on — as possibly I could ; when about noon, as the sim passed the meridian, I thought I felt a little breeze of wind in my face, .si)ringing \ip from the S.S.K This cheered my heart a little, and especially when, in about half an hour more, it blew a jn-etty small, gentle gale. V>y this time, I had got at u frightful distance from the island; and had the least cloudy or luizy weather intervened, I had been luidono another way, too ; for I had no compass on l)oarJ, and should never have known how to have steered towards the island, if I had but once lost sight of it. But the weather continuing clear, I applied myself to get u[> niy mast again, and .spread my .sjvil, standing away to the north as much jus possible, to get out of the current. Just OS I had set my mast and siiil, and the boat began to stretch away, I saw even by the clea»-ues3 of the water some alteration of the current was near ; for where the current was so strong, the water was foul ; but perceiving the water clear, I found the cun-ei>t abate ; and presently I found to the osist, at about half a mile, a breach of the sea upon some rocks. These rocks I found caused the current to j^art again, and as the main stress of it ran away moi-o southerly, leaving the roeks to the north-ciist, so the other returned by the repulse of the rock, and made a strong eddy, which ran back again to the north-west, with a very sharp stream. They who know what it is to have a reprieve brought to them upon the ladder, or to be rescued fix)ni thieves ju};t going to mtirder them, or who have been in such ex- tremities, may guess what my present surprise of joy was, and how gladly I put my boat into the stream of this eddy ; «nd the wind also freshening, hox^ gladly I spread my s;ul * It, running elicerfully befoixj the wind, and with a strong tido or eddy under foot. 91 This eddy carried mc about a league iu my way back again, directly towards tlic island, but about two leagues more towards the }ioi'tliward tbau the current lay v.-hich carried me away at first ; so that Avhen I came near the island, I found myself open to the northern shore of it, that is to say, the other end of Iho i.slaud, opposite to that which I went out from. When I liad made something more than a league of way by help of this current or eddy, I found it was spent, and saved me no farther. However, I found that being between two great cuiTents, viz., that on the south side, which had hurried me away, and that on the north, which lay about two leagues on the other side ; I say, between these two, in the wake of the island, I found the water at least still, and running no way ; and having still a breeze of wind fair for me, I kept on steering directly for the island, tliough not making such fresh way as I did before. About four o'clock in the evening, being then v/ithin about a league of the island, I found the point of the rocks which occasioned this disaster stretching out, as is described before, to the southward, and casting off the current more southerly, had, of course, made another eddy to the north ; and this I found very strong, but directly setting the way my coiu-se lay, which was due west, but almost full north. However, having a fresh gale, I stretched across this eddy, slanting north-west ; and in about an hour came within about a mile of the shore, where, it being smooth water, I soon got to land. When I was on sliore, I fell on my knees, and gave God thanks for my deliverance, rcijolving to lay aside all thoughts of my deliverance by my boat ; and refreshing myself with such things as I had, I brought my boat close to the shore, in a little cove that I had spied under some trees, and laid me down to sleep, being quite spent Avith the labour and fotigue of the voyage. I was now at a great loss which way to get home with my boat ! I had run so much hazard, and knew too much of the case, to think of attempting it by the way I went out J and what might be at the other side (I mean the west side) I knew not, nor had I any mind to run any more ventures. So I resolved on the next morning to make my way westward along the shore, and to see if there was no creek where I might lay lip my fi-igate in safety, so as to have her again, if I wantetl her. In about three miles, or thereabouts, coasting the shore, I came to a very good inlet or bay, about a mile over, which narrowed till it came to a very little rivulet or brook, wdiere I found a very convenient harbour for my boat, and where she lay as if she had been in a little dock made on pin-pose for her. Here I put in, and having stowed my boat very safe, I went on shore to look about me, and see where I was. I soon found I had but a little passed by the place where I had been before, when I travelled on foot to that shore ; so, taking nothing out of my boat but my gun and umbrella, for it was exceedingly hot, I began my march. The way was comfortable enough after such a voyage as I had been upon, and I reached my old bower iu the evening, where I found everything standing as I left it ; for I always kept it in good order, being, as I said before, my country-house. I got over the fence, and laid me down in the shade to rest my limbs, for I was very weary, and fell asleep. But judge you, if you can, that read my story, what a surprise I must have been in when I was awaked out of my sleep by a voice, calling me by my name several times : " Robin, Eobin, Robin Crusoe ! poor Kobin Crusoe ! Where are you, Robin Crusoe 1 Where are you 1 Where have you been ? " I was so dead asleep at first, being fatigued with rowing, or paddling, as it is called, the first part of the day, and walking the latter part, that I did not awake thoroughly : ROBINSON CRUSOE. m\ ice, and \y came ft:ul dozing Wtween sleoping and waking, lliouglit I dreamed that somebody spoke to me ; buta-s the voice continued to repeat, " Robin Crusoe ! Robin Crusoe !" at last I began to fiwuko nioro pcrfcctlv, and wius at first dreadfully frightened, and started up in the utmost . .!istoniutierformance, or more joyful for anything I found out, than for my being able to make a t()bacco-])ipe ; and though it was a very ugly, clumsy thing when it was done, and only burnt red, like other earthenware, yet as it was hard and firm, and would draw the smoke, I was exceedingly comforted with it, for I had been always used to smoke ; and there were jupes in the .ship, but I forgot them at first, not thinking that there was tobacco in the island ; and afterwards, wlion I .searched the ship again, I could not come at ny pipes. Tn my wiekerwaro also I improved much, and made abundance of necessary baskets, M mwmM M iHHl p^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. OH well as my invcutiou showed ine ; tbougU not very LaucLsome, yet they were suc'x as were very handy and convenient for laying things up in, or fetcluug things home. Foi- example, if I killed a goat abroad, I could hang it up ia a tree, flay it, and dress it, and cut it in pieces, and bring it home in a basket : and the like by a turtle ; I could cut it up, take out the eggs, and a piece or tvo of the flesh, which was enough forme, and bring theai home in a basket, and leave the rest behind me. Also, large deep baskets were my rccoivera for my com, which I alwnys rubbed out as soon as it was dry, and cured ; and kept it in great baskets, instead of a granary. I bemin now to i)crceivc my powder abated considerably ; and ^is was a want which it was imiJOssiUe for me to supply, and I began seriously to consider what I must do when I .should have no more powder ; that is to say, how I should do to kill any goats. I had, as I observed in the third year of my being hero, kept a youug kid, and bred her up tame ; I was in hopes of getting a he-kid : but I could not by any means bring it to pass, till my kid gi»w an old goat ; and as I could never And in my heart to kill her, she died at la-st of mere age. But being now in the eleventh year of my residence, and, as I have said, my ammunition growing low, I set myself to study some art to trap and snare the goats, to s-c M-hcther I could not catch some of them alive ; and particularly, I wanted a she- goat great with young. To this purpose, I made snares to hamper them ; and I bjlievo they were more than once taken in them ; but my tackle was not good, for I had no wire, and always found them broken, and my bait devoured. At length, I resolved to try a i)itfall : so I dug aevcral largo pits in the earth, in places whei*o I had observed the goati used to feed, and over those pits I placed hurdles, of my o\\-n making t )o, with a great weight upon tJiem ; and several times I put ears of barley and dry rice, without sotting the trap ; and I could easily perceive that the goats had gone in and eaten up the corn, for I could see the marks of their feet. At length, I set three trapj in one nighty and going the next morning, I found thorn all standing, and yet the bait eaten and gone : this was very discouraging. However, I altered my traps; and, not to trouble you with particulars, going one morning to see my traps, I found in one of them a large (jld he-goat ; and in one of the others, three kids, a male and two females. As to the old one, I knew not what to do with him ; he was so tierce, I dui-st not go into tin' pit to him ; that is to say, to go about to bring him away alive, which wa« what I wanted. 1 could have killed him, but that was not my buiineis, nor would it answer iny cud ; so I ovcu let him out, and he i^an away as if ho hud been frighted outof his wits ; but I had forgot then what I learned afterwards, that hunger will tamo a lion. Ill had let him st.iy there three or four days without food, and then havo carried him some water to drink, and then a little com, he would have been as tamo as one of the kids; for they are mighty sagacious, ti-actablo creatures, whore they are well used. However, for the present I let hinj go, knowing no better at that time : then I went to the three kids, ami, taking them one by one, I tied them with strings together, and with some dilUculty brought them all home. It was a, good vhile before they would feed ; but throwing them some sweet corn, it tempted them, and they began to bo tiune. And now I found that if I expected to Bvipply myself with go.-xts' flesh, when I had no powder or shot left, breeding some up tame was my only way; when, jierhaps, I miglit have them about my house like a flock of shepp. lint, tlirn it o PUTcd to me that I must ]-^f'v <'"" * «inr> jVom f ebb setting from the Avcst, and joining with the current of waters from some great river on the .shore, must be the occasion of this current; and that according as the wind blow more forcible from the west or from the north, this current came near, or went farther from the shore; for, waiting thereabouts till evening, I went up to the rock again, and then the tide of ebb being made, I plainly saw tho current again as before, only that it ran farther off, being near half a league from the shore, whoro.ns in my ca.so it set close upon the shore, and hurried me in my canoe along with it, which nt another time it would not liave done. This observation convinced me that I had nothing to do but to observe the ebbing and the flowing of the tide, and I might very easily bring my boat about tho island again ; but whin I began to think about jjutting it in practice, I had such terror ujjon my Hpirits at tho rcmembvanco of the danger I had been in, that I could not think of it again M-ith any patience ; but, on tho contrary, I took up another resolution, which was more saf.>, though moro laborious— and this was, that I would build, or rather make me another periagua or canoo ; and so have one for one side of the i:5land, and one for tho other. You aro to undor.stand, that now I had, tn I may call it, two i>lantation3 in the island ; one my little fortification or tent^ with the wall about it, under the roclc, a'. illi tho cave behind me, Mhich by tliis time I had enlarged into several npiu-tments, or caves, one within another. Ono of these, which was the driest and lorgc.st, and luid a door out beyond my wall or fortifie.ition, that u to say, beyond where my wall joincl to the rook, was nil filled up with the large earthen pots, of wliich I h.avo given .'^. i account, and with fourteen or fifteen great basket^ which would hold live or six buslu I • each, where I laid up my stores of provision, especially my corn, somo in tho cm\ c:x: oft' .'thort from the straw, and the other rubbed out with my hand. " As for my wall, made, as before, with long stakes or pile/;, thos^pild^ grew all liko trciM, and were by tliia time grown so big, and .spread so very mueh, that tlicre Wiis not tho leaat apixsarance, to any one's view, of any habitation behind thc;ii. , 103 CRUSOE'S COUNTRY HOUSE AND PLANTATION. Kcar this dwelling of mine, but a little farther within the land, and upon lower ground, lay my two pieces of corn land, which I kept duly cultivated and sowed, and which duly yielded me their harvest in its season ; and whenever I had occasion for more corn, I had more land adjoining, as fit as that. Besides this, I had my country seat, and I had now a tolerable plantation there also ; for first, I had my little bov/er, as I called it, which I kept in repair — that is to say, I kept the hedge, which circled it in, constantly fitted up to its usual height, the ladder standing always in the inside ; I kept the trees, which at first were no more than my stakes, but were now gro-wn very firm and tall, always so cut, that they might spread and grow thick and wild, and raake the more agreeable shade, which they did efiectually to my mind. In the middle of this I had my tent always standing, being a piece of a sail sj)read over poles "set up for that purpose, and which never wanted any repair or renewing ; and under this I had made me a squab or couch, v/ith the skins of the creatures I had killed, and with other soft things, and a blanket laid on them, such as belonged to our sea-bedding, which I had saved ; and a great watch-coat to cover me ; and here, whenever I had occasion to be absent from my chief seat, I took up my country habitation. Adjoining to this, I had my inclosures for my cattle, that is to say, my goats ; and as I had taken an inconceivable deal of pains to fence and inclose this ground, I vv^as so anxious to see it kept entire, lest the goats should break through, that I never left off till, with infinite labour, I had stuck the outside of the hedge so full of small stakes, and so near to one another, that it was rather a pale than a hedge, and there was scarce room to put a hand through between them ; which afterv/ards, when those stakes grew, as they all did in the next rainy season, made the inclosure strong like a wall, indeed stronger than any wall. This will testify for me that I was not idle, and that I spared no pains to bring to pass whatever appeared necessary for my comfortable support ; for I considered the keeping up a breed of tame creatures th.us at my hand would be a living magazine of flesh, milk, buttei-, and cheese for me as long as I lived in the place, if it were to bo forty years ; and that keeping them in my reach depended entirely upon my perfecting my inclosures to such a degree, that I might be sure of keeping them together ; which, by this method,"indeed, I so effectually secured, that when these little stakes began to grow, I had planted them so very thick, I was forced to pull some of them up again. In this place also I had my grapes grov/ing, which I principally depended on for my winter store of raisins, and Avhich I never fiijled to preserve very carefully, as the best and most agreeable dainty of my whole diet ; and, indeed, they were not agreeable only, but physical, wholesome, nourishing, and i-efreshing to the last degree. As this was also about half-v/ay between my other habitation and the place where . had laid up my boat, I generally stayed and lay here in my way thither, for I used frequently to visit my boat ; and I kept all things about, or belongiug to her, in very good order. Sometimes I went out in her to divert myself, but no more hazardous voyages would I go, scarcely ever above a stone's cast or two from the • shore, I was so apprehensive of being hurried out of my knowledge again by the currents or winds, or any other accident. But now I come to a new scene of my life. It happened one day, about noon, going towards my boat, I was exceedingly surprised Vv-ith the print of a man's naked foot on the shore, which was very plain to be seen on the sand. I stood like one thunderstruck, or as if I had seen an apparition. I listen ( IDT -^-^. ^:s:j>eS.S^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. I looked round mo, but I could hear nothing, nor see an}-thing ; I went up to a rising "round, to look farther ; I went up the shore, and down the shore, but it was all one : I could Hce no other impression but that one. I went to it again to see if there were iiny more, and to observe if it might not be my fancy ; but there was no room for that, lor there was exactly the print of a foot — toes, heel, and every part of a foot. How it enrae thither I knew not, nor could in the least imagine. But after innumci-able fluttering thoughts, like a man perfectly confused and out of myself, I came home to my fortification, not feeling, as wo say, the ground I went on, but terrified to the last degree, looking behind me at every two or three steps, mistaking every bush and tree, and fancying eveiy stump at a distiinco to be a man. Nor is it possible to describe how many vanous shapes my affrighted imagination represented things to me in ; how many wiltl idciis were formed every niomont in my fancy, and what strange unaccountable whinisoys came into my thoughts by the way. When I came to my castle (for so I think I called it ever after this), I fled into it like one pui-sued. ^^'hether I went over by the ladder, as first contrived, or went in at the hole in the rock, which I called a door, I cannot remember ; for never frighted hare fled to cover, or fo.K to earth, with more terror of mind than I to this retreat. I had no sleep that night ; the farther I M'as from the occasion of my fright, the greater my apprehensions were, which is something contrary to the nature of such things, and ••specially to the usual ])ractice of all creatures in fear ; but I wiis so embarrassed with my own frightful ideas of the thing, that I formed nothing but dismal imaginations to myself, even though I was now a great way off it. Sometimes I fancied it must be the vil ; and reason joined in with me upon this supposition : for how should any other thing ill human shape come into the place i Where was the vessel that brought them ? What marks were there of any oth(;r footsteps ] And how was it possible a man should come there ? But then to think that Satan should take human shape upon him in such a place, where there coidd be no manner of occasion for it, but to leave the print of his foot behind him, and that even for no i)urposc too, for he could not be sure I should s,.(. it — this was an amazement the other way. I considered that the devil might have fniuul out abundance of other ways to have terrified me than this of the single print of a foot ; that aH I lived quite on the other side of the island, he would never have bi-en so simple as to leave a mark in a place where it was ten thousand to one whether I should ever see it or not, and in the sand too, which the first surge of the .sea, upon a high wind, would have defaced entirely. All this seemed inconsistent with the thing itself, and with all the notions we u.sually entertain of the subtlety of the devil. Abundance of Huch things as these assisted to ai'guo me out of all apprehensions of its being the devil ; and 1 jjresently concluded then, that it must be some more dangerous creature ; viz., that it must be some of the .siwages of the mainland over aLjainst me, who had wandered out to sea in their canoes, and cither driven by the currents or by contrary winds, had made the island, and had been on shore, but were gone away again to sea ; being as loth, perhaps, to have sUycd in this desolate island ns I would have been to have had them. While the.sc reflections were rolling upon my mind, I was very thankful in my thought, that I was so happy as not to bo thereabouts at that time, or that they did not .see my bout, by which tliey would have concluded that some inhabitants had been in the place, and perhaps huvo searched farther for me. Then terrible thoughts racked my imagi- nation about their having found my boat, and that there were people here ; and that, if so, I should certainly Imve them come again in greater numbers, and ilevour me ; 104 ./ *>> tint if it slioukl happen that they should not find me, yet they would find my enclosure, destroy all my corn, and carry away all my flock of tame goats, and I should perish at last for mere want. Thus my fear banished all my religious hope ; all that former confidence God, which was founded upon such wonderful experience as I had had of his goodness, now vanished ; as if He that had fed me by miracle hitherto, could not preserve by His power the provision which He had made for me by His goodness. I reproached myself with my laziness, that would not sow any more corn one year than would just serve me till the next season, as if no accident could inter- ):ene to prevent my enjoying the crop that was upon the ground ; and this I thought so just a reproof, that I resolved for the futu-re to have two or three years' coi-u beforehand, so tliat, whatever might come, I might not perish for want of bread. How strange a chequer- work of Providence is the life ot man ! and by what secret differing springs are the affections hurried about, as differing circumstances present ! To-day we love what to-morrow we hate ; to-day we seek what to-morrow 105 -cfe<.-iL ROBINSON CRUSOE. 1 wosliun ; to-day we desire what to-morrow we fear, nay, even tremble at tke apprehen- sions of. Tliis wa.s exemplified in me at this time in the most lively manner imaginable ; for r, whoso only allliction wa.s, that I seemed banished from human society, that 1 was alone, circumscribed by the boundless ocean, cut off from mankind, and condemnel to what I call silent life ; that I was as one whom Heaven thought not worthy to bo numbered among the living, or to appear amongst the rest of his creatures ; that to havo seen one of my own species would have seemed to me a raising me from death to life, and the greatest blessing that Heaven itself, next to the supreme blessing of salvation, could bestow ; I say, that I should now tremble at the very appreheiLsious of seeing a man, and was ready to sink into the ground at but tlie .-ihadow or silent appearance of a man having set his foot on the island. 8uch is the uneveu 8t«ite of human life ; and it affonlcd me a great many curious speculations aflcrward^, when I had a little recovered my first sinprise. I considered that tliis was the station of life the infinitely wise and good pi'oviden o of God had detormiiied for me ; that as I could not foresee what the end of Divine wisdom might be in all this, so I was not to dispute His soveiviguty, v,ho, as I was His creature, liad an undoubted right by creation to govern and dispose of me absolutely as He thought (it ; and who, as I was a creature who had offended Him, had likewise a judicial right to condemn me to what puuishmeut He thought fit ; and that it was my part to submit to bear His indignation, because T had sinned against Him. I then reflected, tliat God, who was not only righteous, but omnipotent, as He had thought fit thus to punish and afflict me, so He was able to deliver me ; that if He did not think fit to do it, it was my imquestioned duty to resign my.self absolutely and entirely to His will ; and, on the other hand, it was my duty also to hoi)c in Him, pray to Him, and quietly to attend the dictates and directions of His daily providence. These thoughts took me up many hour.^, divys, nay, I may say weeks and months ; and one particular effect of my cogitations on this occasion I cannot omit ; viz., one morning early, Iving in my bed, and filled with thoughts about my danger from the ajipearance of savages, I found it discomposed me very much ; upon which those words of the S-ripture came into my thoughts: "Call upon mo in the day of trouble: I will deliver thee, and thou shalt glorify me." Upon this, rising cheerfully out of bed, my heart was not only comforted, but I was guided and encoui-agod to pniy earnestly to God f..r deliveiimco : when I had done praying, I took up my Bible, and opening it to read, the fii-st words that presented to me were, " ^\'ait on the Lord : be of good courage, and Ho sliall strengthen thy heart : wait, I say, on the Lord." It is impossible to express the comfort this gave me, and in return I thankfully laid down the bo.»k, and was no more sad, at least, not on that occasion. In the middle of these cogitations, apprehensions, anil rellection.s, it came into my thou-'hts one day, that all this might bo a mere chimera of my own, and that this foot mi"ht bo the print of my own foot, when I came on .shore from my boat : this cheered mo wv a little, too, and T began to poi-suade myself it was all a delusion ; that it was nothing else but my own foot ; and why might I not come that way from the boat, as I well as I was going that way to the bo.it ? Again I considered also, that I could by no moans tell for certain where I had trod, and where I had not; and that if, at hwt, this was only the print t)f my own foot, I had jjliyed the part of those fools who try to make ht )ric8 of spectres and apparitions, and then are themselves frighted at them more tliau anybody else. I Now T began to take courage, and to peep abroad again. *•"■ ' '" ' 1 " '' >:iir,\l out of io6 < ANOTHER VISIT TO THE SHORE. li my castle for tlii'cc days and uiglits, so tliat I began to starve for provision ; for I liad little or nothing witliin doors but some barley-cakes and water. Then I knew that my goats wanted to be milked too, which usually was my evening diversion ; and the poor creatures were in great pain and inconvenience for want of it ; and, indeed, it almost spoiled some of them, and almost dried up their milk. Heartening myself, therefoi-e, with the belief that this vv-as nothing but the print of one of my own feet, and so I might be truly said to start at my own shadow, I began to go abroad again, and went to my country-house to milk my flock ; but to see with what fear I went forward, how often I looked behind me, how I was ready, every now and then, to lay down my basket, and run for my life, it would have made any one have thought I was haunted with an evil conscience, or that I had been lately most terribly frighted ; and so, indeed, I had. However, a3 I went down thus two or three days, and liaving seen nothing, I' began to be a little bolder, and to think there was really nothing in it but my own imagination ; but I could not persuade myself fully of this till I should go down to the shore again, and see this print of a foot, and measure it by my own, and see if there was any similitude or fitness, that I might be assured it was my own foot. Bat when T came to the place — first, it appeared evidently to me, that when I laid up my boat, I could not possibly be on shore anywhere thereabouts : secondly, when I came to measure the mark with my own foot, I found my foot not so large by a great deal. Both these things filled my head with new imaginations, and gave me the vapours again to the highest degree, so that I shook with cold like one in an ague; and I wetit home again, filled with the belief that some man or men had been on shore there ; or, in short, that the island was inhabited, and I might bo surprised before I was aware ; and what course to take for my security I knew not. Oh, what ridiculous resolutions men take when possessed Avith fear ! It deprives them of the use of those means which reason ofiers for their relief The first thing I proposed to myself was, to throAv dov/n my enclosures, and turn all my tame cattle wild into the woods, that the enemy might not find them, and then frequent the island in prospect of the same or the like booty : then the simple thing of digging up my two corn- fields, that they might not find such a grain there, and still be prompted to frequent the island ; then to demolish my bower and tent, that they might not see any vestiges of habitation, and be prompted to look farther, in order to find out the persons inhabiting. These were the subjects of the first night's cogitations, after I was come home again while the apprehensions which had so overrun my mind were fresh ujion me, and my head was full of vapours as above. Thus, fear of danger is ten thousand times more terrifying than danger itself, Avhen apparent to the eyes ; and Ave find the burden of anxiety gi-eatei-, by much, than the evil which we are anxious about : but, which Avas Avorse than all this, I had not that relief in this trouble, from the resignation I used to practise, that I hoped to have. I looked, I thought, like Saul, Avho complained not only that the Philistines Avere upon him, but that God had forsaken him ; for I did not now take due AA-ays to compose my mind, by crying to God in my distress, and rest- ing upon His providence, as I had done before, for my defence and deliverance ; Avhich if I had done, I had at least been more cheerfully supported iinder this ncAV surprise, and perhaps carried through it Avith more resolution. This confusion of my thoughts kept me Avaking all night ; but in the morning I fell a^sluep ; and having by the ami;sement of my mind been, as it Avere, tired, and my spirits exhausted, I slept very soundlj', and aAVaked much better composed than I had ever been before. And noAV I began to think sedately ; and, upon the utmost debate 107 v^li v\ -.^-^^rT^^^^T^^^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. 1 • 1^ with mvsclf, I concluded that this island (which was so exceeding pleasant, fruitful, and no faitlicr from the main land than as I had seen) was not so entirely abandoned as I might iuiagiue; that although there were no stated inhabitiints who lived on the spot, yet tluit tlicrc might sometimes come boats off from the shore, who, either with design, or perhaj s never but when they were driven by cross winds, might come to this jJacc ; that I h;ul lived here fifteen years now, and had not met with the least shadow or figure of any jn'oplc yet ; and that, if at any time they should be driven here, it was i)robable they went away again as soon as ever they could, seeing they had never thought fit to fix hcic uiM)n any occasion to this time ; that the most I could suggest any danger from was, from any casual accidental landing of straggliitg people from the main, who, as it was likely, if they were driven hither, were here ag:iinst their wills ; so they made no stay here, but went ofl' again with all i)ossible speed, seldom stiiying ono night on shore, lest they should not have the help of the tides and daylight back again ; and tliat, therefore, I had nothing to do but to consider of some s;\fe retreat, in case I should H'jc any savages land upon the sj>ut. Now I began sorely to re]ient that I had dug my cave so large as to bring a duor through again, which door, as I said, came out beyond where my fortification joined t.< the rock. Upon maturely considering this, therefore, I resolved to draw mc a second I'ortification, in the same manner of a semicii-cle, at a distance from my wall, just where I had planted a double row of trees about twelve years before, of which I made mention : these trees having been planted so thick before, there wanted but few piles to be driven between them, that they shoidd be thicker and stronger, and my wall would be soon finished. So that I had now a double wall ; and my outer wall was thickened with pieces of timber, old cables, and everything I could think of to make it strong, having in it .seven little holes, about as big as I might put my arm out at. In the inside of this, I thickened my wall to about ten feet thick, continually bringing earth out of my cave, and laying it at the foot of the wall, and walking upon it ; and through the seven lioles I contrived to jdant the muskets, of which I took notice that I got seven ou shore out of the .ship ; these, I say, I planted like my cannon, and fitted them into frames, that held them like a carriage, that so I could fu-c all the seven guns in two minutes time. Tliis wall I was many a wcjiry month in finishing, and yet never thought myself sjifo till it was done. When this was done. I stuck all the ground without my vail, for a great way every way, as fidl with stakes or sticks of the osier- like wood, which I found so apt to grow, as they could well stand ; insonnich that I believe I miglit .set in near twenty thousand I of them, leaving a j.retty large space between them and my wall, that I might have room to .see an enemy, and they might have no .shelter from the young trees, if they attempted to approach my outer wall. Thus, in two yeuj-s' time, I had a thick grove; and in five or six ycai-s' time I had a wool before my dwelling grown so monstmus thick and strong that it was indeed perfectly in>pas.sablc : and no man, of what kind .soever, would ever imagine that there wtus anytliing beyon-lien, Avanderiog more to the west point of the island than I had ever done yet, and looking out to sea, I thought I saw a boat upoQ the sea, at a great distance. I had found a perspective glass or two in one # the seamen's chests, which I saved out of our ship, but I had it not about me ; and this was so remote that I. could not tell what to make of it, though I looked at it till my eyes were not able to hold to look any longer : whether it was a boat or not, I do not know; but as I descended from the liill I covild see no more of it, so I g^e it over ; only I resolved to go no more out without a perspective glass in my pocket. When I was come down the hill to the end of the island, where, indeed, I had never been before, I was presently convinced that the seeing the print of a man's foot was not sucli a strange thing in the island as I imagined ; and but that it was a special providence that I was cast upon the side of the island where the savages never came, I should easily have known that nothing was more frequent than for the canoes from the main, when they happened to be a little too far out at sea, to shoot over to that side of the island for harbour : likewise, as they often met and fought in their canoes, the victors, having taken any prisoners, would bring them over to this shore, where, according to their ch-eadful customs, being all cannibals, they would kill and eat them ; of which hereafter. When I was come down the hill to the shore, as I said above, being the S.W. point of the island, I was perfectly confounded and amazed ; nor is it possible for me to express the horror of my mind, at seeing the shore spread v/ith skulls, hands, feet, and other bones of human bodies ; and particularly, I observed a place where there had been a fire made, and a circle dug in the earth, like a cockpit, where I supposed the savage wretches had sat down to their inhuman feastings upon the bodies of their fello^y-creatures. I was so astonished with the sight of these things, that I entertained no notions of any danger to myself from it for a long while : all my apprehensions were buried in the thoughts of such a pitch of inhuman, hellish brutality, and the horror of the degeneracy of human nature, which, though I had heard of often, yet I never had so near a view of before ; in short, I turned away my face from the horrid spectacle ; my stomach grew sick, and I was just at the point of fainting, when nature dischar-ged the disorder from my stomach ; and having vomited with uncommon violence, I was a little i*elieved, but could not bear to stay in the place a moment; so I got up the hill again with all the speed I could, and walked on towards my own habitation. When I came a little out of that part of the island, I stood still awhile, as amazed, and then, recovering myself, I looked iipwith the utmost affection of my soul, and, with a flood of tears in my eyes, gave God thanks, that had cast my first lot in a part of the world where I was distinguished from such dreadful creatures as these ; and that though I had esteemed my present condition very miserable, had yet given me so many comforts in it that I had still more to gi^-e thanks for than to complain of : and thi.s, above all, that I had, even in this miserable condition, been comforted with the knowledge of Himself, and the hope of His blessing : which was a felicity more than sufficiently equivalent to all the misery which I had suffered, or could suffer. In this frame of thankfulness, I Avent home to my castle, and began to be much easier now, as to the safety of my circumstances, than ever I was before : for I observed that these wretches never came to this island in search of what they could get ; perhaps not seeking, not wanting, or not expecting, anything here ; and having often, no doubt, been iip in the covered, woody part of it, without finding anything to their purpose. I . .- _ III ROBINSON CRUSOE. I know I had been here now nlmost eighteen years, and never saw the least footsteps of Iniiimn creature there before ; and I might be eigliteen yeai-s more as entirely concealed ;iM^ was now, if I did not discover myself to them, which I had no manner of occasion t:> do • it being mv only business to keep myself entirely concealed where I was, unless I found a bettor sort of creatures than cannibals to make myself known to. Yet I cntertiiiiud such an abhoirence of the savage wretches that I have been .speaking of, and of the wrotclietl inhuman custom of their devouring and eating one another up, that I continued pensive and .siul, and kept close within my own circle for almost two yeai*s after this : wlien I sjiy my own circle, I mean by it my three jJantation.s, viz., my Civstle, mv country-.seat (wliich I called my bower), and my enclosure in the woods : nor did I look aftfr this for any other use than as an enclosure for my goats ; for the aversion which nature gave me to these helli.sh wretches was such, that I was as fearfid of seeing them a-s of .seeing the devil liimself, nor did I so much as go to look after my boat in all this time, but began rather to think of making me another; for I could not think of ever making any more attempts to bring the other boat round the island to me, lest I .should meet with .some of tho.se creatures at .sea ; in which ca.se, if I had Imppenod to have fallen into their hands, I knew what would have been my lot. Time, however, and the satisfaction I had that I was in no danger of being discovered liy the.se people, began to wear off my uneasiness about them ; and I began to live just iu the same compo.sed manner as before, only with this difference, that I used more caution, and kept my eyes more about me than I did before, lest I should happen to be Keen by any of them ; and jiarticularly, I was more cautious in firing my gun, lest any of them, being on the i.sland, .should happen to hear it ; and it was, therefore, a veiy good providence to me that I had furni.shed myself with a tame breed of goats, and that 1 had no need to hunt any more about the woods, or shoot at them ; and if I did catch any of tliem after thi.s, it was l)y tra[>s and snares, as I had done before : so that for two years after thi.s, I believe I never fired my gun once off, though I never went out without it ; anci, which was more, as I had sjived three pistols out of the ship, I always carried them nut with me, or at lea.st two of them, sticking them in my goat-skin btdt. I likewise furbished up one of the great cutlas.scs that 1 had out of the ship, and made me a belt to put it on also ; so that I was now a most formidable fellow to look at when I went abroad, if you add to the former description of myself, the particular of two pistols, and a gi-oat broad-sword hanging at my side in a belt, but without a scabbard. Things going on thus, as I have said, for .some time, I seemed, excepting these lutions, to bo reduced to my former calm sedate way of living. All these things tended to show me, more and more, how far u\y condition was from being misci-ablc, compared to some others; nay, to many other particulars of life, which it might have pleased Cio.l to have made my lot. It put me upon retlecting how little repining there would 1m among mankind at any condition of life, if people would iiither compare their condition with those that are worse, in order to be thankful, than be tUways comparing them with those which are better, to a.ssist their munnurings and complainings. As in my present condition there were not really many things which I wanted, so, indeed, i thought that the flights I had been in about these savage wretches, and the concern 1 had been in for my own preservation, had taken off the edge of my invention for my own conveniences ; and I had dropped a good design, which I had once bent my thoughts upon, and that was \fi try if I could not make .some of my barley into uj.dt, and then try to brew my.self some beer. This was really a whimsical thought, and 1 reproved myself often for the simplicity of it : for I presently saw there would be the I \2 ^V want of several things necessaiy to the making my beer, that it ^■■'*- '' AYOuld be impossible for me to supply ; as, first, casks to preserve it in, which ^j, Yj^ was a thing that, as I have observed already, I could never compass ; no, thougl I spent not many days, but weeks, nay months, in attempting it, but to no purpose. In the next place, I had no hops to make it keep, no yeast to make it work, no copper or kettle to make it boil ; and yet had not all these thing-, intervened — I mean the frights and terrors I was in about the savages — I had undertaken it, and perhaps brought it to pass, too ; for I seldom gave any- thing over without accomplishing it, when I once had it in my head enough to begin it. But my invention now ran quite another way ; for, night and day, I could think of nothing but how I might destroy some of these monsters in their r ^S^^n ROCIXSON CRUSOE. I .ucl, bloody ciitei-tainmeut ; and, if possible, save the victim tlicy should bring hitlicr t J destroy. It would take up a larger volume than this whole work is intended to be, to set down all the contrivances I hatched, or rather brooded upon, in my thoughts, for t!ie destroying these creatures, or at least frightening them so as to prevent their coming hither any more: but all was abortive; nothing could bo possible to taka clFect, unless I was to bo there to do it myself: and what could one man do among tlicm, when perhaps there might be twenty or thirty of them together with their da;-ts, 1 r their bows and arrows, with which they could shoot as true to a mark as I could with my gun ? Sometimes I thought of digging a hole under the i)lacc where they made their fire, and putting in five or six pounds of gunpowder, which, when they kindled their fire, wuuld conseriuonlly take fire, and blow up all that was near it : but as, in the fii*st place, I should bo unwilling to waste so much jjowder upon them, my store being now within tlio quantity of one ban-el, so neither could I bo sure of its going off at any certuiu time, when it might surprise them ; and, at best, that it would do little more than just blow the fire about their cara and fright them, but not suflBcient to make them forsake the place : so I laid it aside ; and then proposed that I would place myself in ambush in Kome convenient place, with my three guns all double loaded, and in the middle of their bloody ceremony let fly at them, when I should be sure to kill or wound perhaps two or three at every shot ; and then falling in upon them with my three pistols and inv sword, I made no doubt t)ut that, if there were twenty, I should kill them all. Tliis fancy pleased my thoughts for some weeks, and I was so full of it, that I often dreamed of it, and sometimes, that I was just going to let fly at them in my sleep. I went so far with it in my imagination, that I employed myself several days to find out proper jtlaces to piit my.stlf in ambuscade, as I said, to watch for them, and I went freouently to the place itself, which was now grown more familiar to me ; but while my mind was thus filled with thoughts of revenge and of a bloody putting twenty or thirty of them to the sword, as I may call it, the hon-or I had at the place, and at the signals of the \>arbarous wretches devouring one another, abetted my malice. "Well, at length I found a jHace in the side of the hill, where I was satisfied I might securely wait till I saw any of their boats coming ; and might then, even before they would be i-eady to come on shore, convey myself unseen into some thickets of trees, in one of wliich there was a hollow largo enough to conceal me entirely ; and there I might sit and obscn'O all their blooily doings, and take my full aim at their heads, when they were so close together as that it would bo next to impossible that I should miss my .shot, or that I could fail wounding three or four of them at the first shot. In this i)lace, then, I resolved to fix my design ; and accordingly, I prepared two mu>>kets and my ordinary fowling-piece. The two mu-skets I loaded with a bmco of slugs each, and four or five smaller bullets, about the size of jnstol bullets; and the fowling-piece I loaded with near a handful of swan-shot of tho lai-gest size; I also loaded my piitoh with alH)ut fotufcbullets each ; and in this posture, well provided with ammuuitiou for a second and third charge, I prepared myself for my expedition. I After I had thus laid tho Bchemo of my design, and in my imagination put it iu practice, 1 continually made my tour every morning to tho top of the hill, which v. as from my castlo, as I called it, about three miles, or more, to see if I could obs. r\ e any boats upon tho sea, coming near tho island, or standing over towards it ; but I began to tire of this hard duty, after I had for two or three months constantly kept my I watch, but came always back without any discovery ; there having not, iu all that >I4 ._ HE ABANDONS HIS DESIGN AGAINST THE SAVAGES time, been the least appearance, not only on or near the shore, but on the whole ocean, as far as my eyes or glass could reach every way. As long as I kept my daily tour to the hill to look out, so long also I kept up the \igour of my design, and my spirits seemed to be all the while in a suitable fram-e for so outrageous an execution as the killing twenty or thirty naked savages, for an oifencc which I had not at all entered into a discussion of in my thoughts, any farther than my passions were at first fired by the horror I conceived at the unnatural custom of the P'cople of that country ; who, it seems, had been suffered by Providence, in His wise dis- position of the world, to have no other guide than that of their own abominable anl vitiated passions ; and, consequently, were left, and pei-haps had been so for some ages, to act such horrid things, and receive such dreadful customs, as nothing but nature, entirely abandoned by Heaven, and actuated by some hellish degeneracy, could have run them into. But now, when, as I have said, I began to be weary of the friiitless excursion which I had made so long and so far every morning in vain, so my opinion of the action itself began to alter ; and I began, with cooler and calmer thoughts, to consider what I was going to engage in ; what authority or call I had to pretend to be judge :md executioner upon these men as criminals, whom Heaven had thought fit, for so many ages, to suffer, unpunished, to go on, -and to be, as it were, the executioners of His judgments, one upon another ; how far these people were offenders against me, and Avliat right I had to engage in the quarrel of that blood which they shed promiscuously upon one another. I debated this very often with myself thus : — " How do I know Avhat God himself judges in this particular case? It is certain these people do not commit this as a crime ; it is not against their own consciences reproving, or their light reproaching them ; they do not know it to be an offence, and then commit it in defiance of Divine justice, as we do in almost all the sins we commit. They think it no more a crime to kill a captive taken in war, than we do to kill an ox ; or to eat human flesh, than we do to eat mutton." When I considered this a little, it followed necessarily that I was certainly in the Avrong in it ; that these people were not murderers, in the sense that I had before ^con- demned them in my thoughts, anymore than those Christians wei'e murderers who often put to death the prisoners taken in battle ; or more frequently, upon many occasions, put whole troops of men to the sword, without giving quarter, though they threvvr down their arms, and submitted. In the next place, it occurred to me, that albeit the usage they gave one another was thus brutish and inhuman, yet it w^as really nothing to me. These people had done me no injury; that if they attempted me, or I saw it necessary, for my immediate preservation, to fall upon them, something might be said for it : but that I was yet out of their power, and they really had no knowledge of me, and, consequently no design upon me ; and, therefore, it could not be just for me to fall upon them. That this would justify the conduct of the Spaniards in all their barbarities practised in America, where they destroj^ed millions of these people ; who, however they were idolaters and barbarians, and had several bloody and barbaAus rites in their customs, such as sacrificing human bodies to their idols, were yet, as to the Spaniards, very innocent people ; and that the rooting them out of the country is spoken of with the utmost abhorrence and detestation by even the Spaniards tliemselves, at this time, and by all other Chiflstian nations in Europe, as a mere butcheiy, a bloody and unnatural piece of cruelty, unjustifiable either to God or man ; and such as for Avhich the very name of a Spaniard is reckoned to be frightful and tenible to all people of humanity or of Christian compassion ; as if the kingdom of Spain were particularly eminent for tho ,, 1 1? \\ ROBINSON CRUSOE. I)roduct of a race of men who were without principles of tenderness, or the common « bowels of pity to tho miserable, which is reckoned to be a mark of a generous temper in J the mind. W These considerations really put me to a pause, and to a kind of a full stop ; and I began, S by little and little, to bo off my design, and to conclude I had taken wrong measures ia W my resolution to attack the savages ; and that it was not my business to meddle with 1 them, unless they first attacked me ; and this it was my business* if ])os.siblc, to prevent : 1 but that if I were discovered and attacked by them, then I knew my duty. On the other \ hand, I argued with myself that this really was tho way not to deliver myself, but ^ entirely to ruin and destroy myself; for, unless I was sure to kill every one that not i only should bo on shore at that time, but that should ever ublic judgment upon thoso who offend in a public manner, by such ways as best b| l»leaso God. This appeared so clear to mo now, that nothing was a greater satis- I faction to mo than that I had not been suffered to do a thing which I now saw .so J much reason to believe would have been no less a sin than that of wilful murder, if I ^ had committed it ; and I gave most humble thank.s, on my knees, to God, that lie had -^ thus delivered me from blood-guiltiness ; beseeching Him to grant mo tho protection of ja His pn.vidence, that I might not fiill into the hands of tho barbiuians, or that I might M not lay my hands upon them, unless I had a moro clear call from Heaven to do it, in n !, an.il manage my little flock in the wood, which, ns it was quite on the other part of the island, was out of danger ; for cei'tain it is that these savage peo])le who somctiints haunted this island, never came with any thoughts of finding anything here, and consequently never wandered off from the coast, and I doubt not but thoy might have been several times on shore after my apprehensions of them had made mc cautioufs, as well as before. Indeed, I looked back with some horror upon the thoughts of what my condition would have boon, if I had chopped upon them and been discovered before that ; when, naked, and unarmed, except with one gun, and that loaded often only with small shot, I walked everywhere, peeping and peering about the island to see what I could get ; what a siirpriso shoidd I have been iu, if, when I discovered the print of a man's foot, I had instead of that seen fifteen or twenty savages, and found them pui-suing me, and by the swiftness of thdr nmning, no possibility of my escaping them 1 The thoughts of this sometimes sunk my very soul within me, and distressed my miml so much that I could not soon recover it, to think what I should have done, and how J should not only have been unable to resist them, but even should not have had presence of mind enough to do what I might have done ; much less what now, after so much consideration and preparation, I might be able to do. Indeed, after serious thinking of these things, I would bo very melancholy, and, sometimes, it would last a great while ; but I resolved it all, at last, into thank- fnlness to that Providence which had delivered me from so many unseen dangers, aufl had kept me from those mischiefs which I could have no way been the agent in delivering nn>elf from, because I had not the least notion of any such thing depend- ing, or the least supposition of its being possible. This renewed a contemplation which often had come into my thoughts in former times, when fii-st I began to sec the merciful di^^positions of IJeaven, in the dangcra we run through in this life ; how wonderfully we are delivered when wo know nothing of it; how, when we are in a quandary (as we call it), a doubt or hesitation whether to go this way or that way, a secret hint shall direct us this way; when wo, intended to go that way : nay, when sense, our own inclination, and perhaps business, has called us to go the other way, yet a strange impression upon the mind, from we know not what springs, and by wo know not what power, shall overndo us to go this way; and it shall afterwards appear that had we gone that way which we should have gone, and even to our imagination ought to have gone, we should have lei-n naincd and lust. Upon these, and many like reflections, I afterwards ma'lo it a certain ndo with roe, that whenever J found those secret hints or pressings of mind, to doing or not doing anything tliat presented, or going this May or tliat way, 1 never failed to obey the secret dictate; though I knew no other reason for it than that such a pressure, or such a hipt, hung, upon my mind. I could give mai.y examples of the suoccsa of this conduct in the course of my life, but more eenecialiy in the latter part of my inhabiting this unhappy islamj ; bcsidea many occasions ^vllich it iii very likely J might have taken notice of, if I had seen wiiji the same c; iM then that I see with now. But it is never too lato to be wise; and I cannot but. advise all considering men, whoso lives are attended witli such extraordinary iui idcnts as mine, or even though not so exti-aordino^y, not to slight such secret intimations of I'rovidence, let them come from what invisible intelligence they will. Ihat 1 fchall not discuss, and perha])S cannot account for; but certainly tiny aro a proof of the converse of spirits, and a secret communication between thoso n8 THE CAVE IN THE WOODS. embodied and those unembodied, and such a proof as can never be withstood ; of which I shall have occasion to give some very remarkable instances in the remainder of my solitary residence in this dismal place. I believe the reader of this will not think it strange if I confess that these anxieties, these constant dangers I lived in, and the concern that was now upon me, pnt an end to all invention, and to all the contrivances that I had laid for my future accommodations and conveniences. I had the care of my safety more now upon hands than that of my food. I cared not to drive a nail, or chop a stick of wood now, for fear the noise I should make should be heard ; much less would I fire a gun for the same reason : and, above all, I was intolerably uneasy at making any fire, lest the smoke, which is visible at a great distance in the day, should betray me. For this reason, I removed that part of my business which required fire, such as burning of pots and pipes, &c., into my new apartment in the woods ; where, after I had been some time, I found to my unspeakable consolation, a mere natural cave in the earth, which went in a vast way, and where, I dare say, no savage, had he been at the mouth of it, would be so hardy as to venture in ; nor, indeed, would any man. else, but one who, like me, wanted nothing so much as a safe I'etreat. The mouth of this hollow was at the bottom of a great rock, where, by mere accident (I would say, if I did not see abundant reason to ascribe all such things now to Providence), I was cutting down some thick branches of trees to make charcoal ; and before I go on I must observe the reason of my making this charcoal, which was thus : — I was afraid of making a smoke about my habitation, as I said before ; and yet I could not live there without baking my bread, cooking my meat, &c ; so I conti'ived to burn some wood here, as I had seen done in England, under turf, till it became chark or diy coal : and then putting the fire out, I preserved the coal to carry home, and perform the other services for which fire was wanting, without danger of smoke. But this is by the bye. While I was catting down some wood here, I perceived that, behind a very thick branch of low brushwood or underwood, there was a kind of hollow place : I was curious to look in it ; and getting with difficulty into the mouth of it, I found it was pretty large, ihc'c is to say, sufficient for me to stand upright in it, and perhaps another with me : but I must confess to you that I made more haste out than I did in, when looking farther into the place, and which was perfectly dark, I saw two broad shining eyes of some creature — whether devil or man I knew not — which twinkled like two stars ; the dim light from the cave's mouth shining directly in, and making the reflection. However, after some pause, I recovered myself, and began to call myself a thousand fools, and to think that ho , that was afraid to see the devil, was not fit to live twenty years in an island all alone; and that I might well think there was nothing in this cave that was more frightful than myself. Upon this, plucking up my courage, I took up a firebrand, and in I rushed again, with the stick flaming in my hand : I had not gone three steps in, before I was almost as much frightened as before; for I heard a very loud sigh, like that of a man in some pain, and it was followed by a broken noise, as of words half expressed, and then a deep sigh again. I stepped back, and was indeed struck i. with such a surprise that it put me into a cold sweat, and if I had had a hat on my head, I will not answer for it that my hair might not have lifted it off. But still plucking up my spirits as well as I could, and encouraging myself a little with considering that the power and presence of God was everywhere, and was able to protect me, I stepped forward again, and by the light of the firebrand, holding it up a little over my head, I 119 ^-% ROBINSON CRUSOE. enw lying on the ground a monstrous, frightful old he-goat, just making his will, as we say, and gasping for life, and dying, indeed, of mere old age. I stirred him a little to see if I could get him out, and he essayed to get up, but was not able to raise himself; and I thought with myself he might oven lie there ; for if ho had frightened me, so ho would certainly fright any of the savages, if any one of them should Vb so hardy OS to come in there while he had any life in him. I was now recovered from my surprise, and began to look I'ound me, when I found the cave was but very small, that in to say, it might be about twelve feet over, but in no manner of shape, neither round nor square, no hands having ever been employed in making it but those of mere Nature. I observed also that there was a place at the far- ther side of it that went in farther, but was so low that it required me to creep upon my hands and knees to go into it, and whither it went I knew not ; so, having no candle, I gave it over for that time, but resolved to come again the next day provided with caudles and a tinder-box, which I had made of the lock of one of the musket-', with some wildiirc in the pan. Acconlingly, the next day I came provided with six large candles of my own making (for I made very good candles now of goats' tallow, but was hard set for candle-wick, using sometimes rags or rope-yarn, and sometimes the dried rind of a weed like nettles) ; and going into this low i)lace I was obliged to creep upon all-foui's, as I have said, nlnvDst ten yards — which, by the way, I thought was a venture bold enough, considering that I knew not how far it might go, nor what was beyond it. "When I had got through the strait, I found the roof rose higher up, I believe near twenty feet ; but never was such a glorious sight seen in the island, I dare say, as it was to look round the sides and roof ul' this v»ult or cave ; the wall reflected a hundred thousand lights to mo from my two candles. What it Wivs in the rock — whether diamonds, or any other precious stones, or gold — wliich I rather supjjosed it to be — I knew not. The place I was in was a most di'lightful cavity, or grotto, though perfectly dark ; the floor was dry and level, and had a sort of a small loose gravel upon it, so that thei*e was no nauseous or venomous crea- ture to bo seen, neither was there any damp or wet on the sides or roof; the only ditll- culty in it was the entrance — which, however, as it was a place of security, and such a retreat as I wanted, I thought was a convonionco — so that I was really rejoiced at tho discovery, and resolved, without any dulay, to bring some of those things which I was most anxious about to this place; particularly, I resolved to bring hither my magjxzine of powder, and all my 8j)are arms ; viz., two fowling-pieces — for I had three in all — and three muskets — for of them I had eight in all; so I kept in my ca.stle only fivf, which stood ready mounted like pieces of cannon on my oiitniost defence, and were ready also to take out upon any expedition. Upon this occasion of removing my amnnmition, I happened to open the barrel of powder which I took up out of the sea, and which had been wet, and I found that the water had penetrated about three or four inches into tho powder on every side, which caking and growing hard, had preserved tho inside liko a kernel in the shell, so that I had near sixty pounds of very good powder in the centre of the ca.sk; and this was a very agreeable discovery to me at that time; so I carried all away thither, never keei)ing above two or three pounds of powder with me in my castle, for fear of a surprise of any kind; I also earned thither all the lead I had left for bullets. T fancied myself now like one of the ancient giants who were s;iid to live in caves and holes in tho rocks, where nono could come at them ; for I perauaded myself, while I was here, that if five hundred savages were to hunt me, they could never find me out 120 IIMJIIHIJI._ y^k i$MBmmm f§ml ^'^M —or if tliey did, they would not venture to attack me here. The old goat whom I found expiring died in the mouth of the cave the next day after I made this discovery ; and I found it much easier to dig a great hole there, and throw him in and cover him with earth, than to drag him out ; so I interred him there, to prevent offence to my nose. I was now in the twenty- third year of residence in this island, and was so naturalised to the place and the manner of living, that, could I but have enjoyed the certainty that no savages Avould come to the place to disturb me, I could have been content to have capitulated for spending the rest of my time there, even to the last m^^^^^^c^m^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. moment, till I liad laid me down and died, like the old goat in tlie cave. I had also anivcd to some little diversions and amusements, whieh made the time pass more i)lea.santly with me a great deal than it did before : first, I had taught my Poll, as I noted before, to speak ; and he did it so faniiliarly, and talked so articulately and plain, that it was very pleasant to me, and he lived with mc no less than six aud-twcnty years. Hot*- long ho might have lived afterwards I kno# not, though I know they have a notion iti the Brazils that they live a hundred yeai-s. Terhnps sotnc of my Pols may be alive there still, calling after poor Robinson Crusoe to this day : I wish no Englishman the ill-luck to come there and hear them ; but if he did he wmiM certainly believe it was the devil. My dog was a jdeasant and loving companion to ttie for no less than sixteen years of my time, and then died of mere old age. As for my cats, they multiplied, as I have obscn-ed, to that degree, that I was obliged to shoot sfeVei-al of theln at first, to keep them from devouring me and all I had ; but, at length, when the old ones I brought with rtic were gone, and after some time continually driving them from me, and letting them have lio provision with me, they all i-au wild into the wood.^ cxcejit two or threiB favourites, whicli T kept tame, and whose young, when they had any, I always drowned ; and the^e were jiart of my family. iBesides these I always kept two or thl-ee hoiisehold kids about nie, whom I taught to feed out of tny hatid ; and 1 had two morfe parh)ls, which talked pretty well, and woilld all call " Robin Crusoe," but none like" my first; nor, indeed, did I take the pains with any of them that I had done with him. I had also setti-al tame sea-fowls, whose name 1 know not, that t caught upon the shore, and cut their wings; and the little stakes which t had planted before my castle- wall being now gt•D^*^n up to a good thick gt-ove, these fowls all lived among these low trees, and bred there, which was very agreeable to too ; so that, as t Bald fkbove, 1 began to be very well contented with the life I led, if I could have beeil secured from the dread of ttie savages. But it was otherwise dil-ected; and it may hot be amiss for all peoplfe who shall meet e.l see it,-und no doubt they did ; for as soon as ever my fire bhucd u)i, I heard i-M ROBINSON CRUSOE. ■ X another gun, and after that several others, all from the same quarter. I plied my firo all night long, till daybreak ; and when it was broad day, and the air cleared iiji, I saw 8uM not distinguish — no, not with my glass ; the distance was so great, and the weather still something hazy also — at least, it was so out at sea. I looked frequently at it all that day, and soon porceived that it did not n^OTe; so I presently concluded that it was a ship at anchor; and being eager, you may ho sure, to bo satisfied, I took my guu in my hand, and ran towards the south side of tho island, to the rocks where I had formerly bccu canied away with the current ; and getting up there, tho weather by this timo being perfectly clear, I qould plainly see, to my great sorrow, tho wreck of a ship, cast away in the night upon those concealed rocks which I found when I was out in my boat; and which rocks, as they checked the violence of the stream, and made a kind of counter-stream, or eddy, were the occasion of my recovering from the most desperate, hopeless condition that ever I had been in in all my life. Thus, what is one man's safety is another man's destruction; for it seems thoso men, whoever they were, being out of their knowledge, and the rocks being wholly under water, had been driven upon them in the night, the wind blowing hard at E. and E.X.E. Had they seen the island, as I must necessarily suppose they did not, they must, as I thought, have endeavoured to have saved themselves on shore by the help of their boat ; but their Hring off" their guns for help, especially when they saw, as I imagined, my fire, filled mo with many thoughts. First, I imagined that upon seeing my light, they might have put themselves into their boat, and endeavoured to make the shore ; but that the sea running very higli, they might have been Civst away. Other times, I imagined that tliey miglit havo lost their boat before, as might be the case many ways; as particularly, by the breaking of the sea upon their ship, wl^ch many times obliged men ti) stave, or take in jiieces, their boat, and sometimes to throw it overboard with their own hands. Other times, I imagined they had somo other ship or ships in company, who, upon the signals of distress they made, had taken them up, and carried them off. Other times, I fancied they were all gone off to ecix ix), tluir boat," and being hurried away by tho cun-ent that I had been formejly in, woi'O caiTiod out into the great ocean^ where there was nothing but misery and perishing; an4 that, perhaps, they might by this time think of starving, and of being iu a condition to e^t one another. As all these were bjit conjectures at best, so, in tho condition I was iu, I could do no more than look on ujioutho miswy of tho poor won, and pity them; which had still tliis gon«l effect upon my side, tliut it gave mo more and moie ctiusc to givo thanks to (I(hI, who had ko happily and comfortiibly provided for me in my desolate condition ; and tliat of two sliips' comiwinies, who were now ca^t away upon this part of the world, not one life should bo sjiarod but mine. I loiirned here again to obacvve, that it is very rare that tho Providence of God casta us into any comUtion of life so low, or any misery so great, but wo nmy see something or other to be thankful fur, and may sec others in worse circumHUince.s than our own. Such certainly was the ease i-f these men, of whom I could not 80 much^jas see room to suppose any of them wore saved; nothing could nuiko it nitional so much as to wish or expect that they did not all pciish there, except tho possibility only of their being taken up by another ship iu company; and this was but mere possibility indeeil, for I saw not tho least signal or appearance of auy such ' thnig. I cannot explain, by any possible energy of words, what a strange longing I felt in my soul uiK>n this i'ight, breaking out sometimes thus : — " Oh, that there had beuii but one or two, nny, or but one soul, suwcd out of this ship, to havo escaped to me, that . 126 j/^ ROBINSON RESOLVES TO VISIT THE WRECK. I might but liave had one companion, one fellow-creature, to have spokeu to mo and to have conversed with ! " In all the time of my solitary life, I never felt so earnest, so strong a desire after the society of my fellow-creatures, or so deep a regret at the want of it. There are some secret moving springs in the affections, which, when they arc set a-going by some object in view, or, though not in view, yet rendered present to the mind by the power of imagination, that motion carries out the soul, by its impetuosity, to such violent, eager embracings of the object, that the absence of it is in'sii^ortablc. Such were these earnest wishings that but one man had been saved. I believe I repeated the words, " Oh, that it had been but one ! " a thousand times ; and my desires were so moved by it, that when I spoke the words my hands would clinch together, and my fingers AVDuld press the palms of my hands, so that if I had had any soft thing in my hand, I would have crushed it involuntarily ; and my teeth inwl^ head would strike together, and set against one another so strong, that for some time I could not part them again. Let the naturalists explain these things, and the reason and manner of them. All I can say of them is, to describe the fact, which was even surprising to me, when I found it, though I knew not from what it should proceed ; it was, doubtless, the effect of ardent wishes, and of strong ideas formed in my mind, realising the comfort which tite conversation of one of my fellow- Christians would have .been to me. But it was not to be ; either 'their fate, or mine, or both, forbade it, for till the last year of my being on this island, I never knew whether any were saved out of that ship or no ; and had only the affliction, some days after, to see the corpse of a drowned boy come on shore at the end of the island which was next the sliip wreck. He had no clothes on but a seaman's waistcoat, a pair of open-kneed linen drawers, and a blue linen shirt ; but nothing to direct meno much as to guess what nation he was of He had nothing in his pockets but two pieces of eight and,^ tobacco-pipe — the last was to me of ten times more value than the first. ' ''■^ It was now calm, and I had a great mind to venture out in my boat to this wreck, not doubting but I might find something on board that might be useful to me. But, that did not altogether press me so much as the possibility that there might be yet some living creature on board, whose life I might not only save, but might, by saving that life, comfort my own to the last degree ; and this thought clung so to my heart that I could not be quiet night or day, but I must venture out in my boat on board this wreck; and committing the rest to God's providence, I thought the impression was so strong upon my mind that it could not be resisted, that it must come from some invisible direction, and that I should be wanting to myself if I did not go. Under the power of this impression, I hastened back to my castle, prepai-ed every- thing for my voyage, took a quantity of bread, a great pot for fresh water, a compass to steer by, a bottle of rum (for I had still a great deal of that left), and a basket of raisins ; and thus loading myself with everything necessary, I went down to my boat, got the water out of her, got her afloat, loaded all my cargo in her, and then went home again for more. My second cargo was a great bag full of rice, the umbrella to set up over my head for a shade, another large pot full of fresh water, and about two dozen of small loaves, or barley cakes, more than before, with a bottle of goat's-milk, and a cheese : all which with great labour and sweat I brought to my boat ; and praying to God to direct my voyage, I put out, and rowing or paddling the eanoe along the shore, came at last to the utmost point of the island on the north-east side. And now I was to launch out into the ocean, and either to venture or not to venture. I looked on the rapid currents -Mm s^>a&<^- ROBINSON CRUSOE. wliicli ran constantly on both sides of tlie island at a distance, and which were very terrible to nic, from the remembrance of the hazaj-d I had been in before, and my heart began to fail mc ; for I foresaw that if I was driven into either of those cuiTents, I should be carried a great way out to sea, and perhaps out of my rcixch, or sight of the i.sluud again ; and that then, as my boat was but small, if any little gale of wind should rise, I should be inevitably lost. These thoughts so oppressed my mind, that I began to give over my enterprise ; and having hauled my boat into a little creek on the shore, I stepi^ed out, and siit down upon a rising bit of giound, very jMjnsive and anxious, between fear and desire, about my voyage ; when as I was musing, I could perceive that the tide was turned, and the flood came on ; upon which, my going was impracticable for so many hours. U^wn this, presently it occuncd to mo, that I should go up to the highest piece of ground I could find, and obseno, if I could, how the sets of the tide, or cun-cnts lay, when the flood came in, that I might judge whether, if I was driven one way out, I might not expect to bo driven another way home, Avith the same mpidity of the cuirents. This thought was no sooner in my head than I cast my eye upon a little liill, whiph sufficiently over- looked the sea both ways, and from whence I had a clear view of the currents, or sets of the tide, and wliich way I was to guide myself in my return. Here I found that as the current of ebb set out close by the south point of the island, so the cuiTcnt of the flood set in close by the shore of the north side ; and that I had nothing to do but to keep to the north of the island in my return, and I should do well enough. Encouraged with this observation, I resolved, the next moraing, to set out with the first of the tide ; and reposing myself for the night in my canoe, under the gi-cat watch-coat I mentioned, I launched out. I first made a little out to sea, full north, till I began to feel the benefit of the cun-ent, which set eastward, and which carried me at a groat rate ; and yet tlid not so hurry me as the cuiTont on the south side had done before, so as to take from me all government of the boat ; but having a strong steerage with my paddle, I went, at a great rate, directly for the wreck, and in less than two liours I came up to it. It was a dismal sight to look at : the ship, which, by its buihling, was Spanish, stuck fast, jammed in between two rocks : all the stern and quarter of 1ri wore beaten to pieces by the sea ; and as her forecastle, which stuck in the i-ocks, had run on with great violence, her mainmast and forema-st were brought by the board, that is to sav, broken .short ofl' ; but her bowsjirit was sound, and the head and bow appeared firm. When 1 came close to her, a dog appeared upon her, who, seeing me coming, velpetl anil cried ; and, as soon as I called him, jumped into the sea to come to me : I took him into the boat, but found him almost dead with hunger and thii-st. I gave him a cake of my bread, and he ilevoured it like a ravenous wolf that had been starving a fortnight in tho snow ; I then gave the poor creature some fresh water, with which, if I would have lot him, ho would have burst himself. After this I went on board ; but the first sight I met with was two men drowned in the cook-room, or forecastle of the ship, with their arms fast about one another. I concluded, as is indeed j)robablc, that when tho ship struck, it being in a storm, the sea broke so high, and .so continually over her, that tho men were not able to boar it, and wore strangled with the constant i-ushing in of the water, as much as if they hao»o«l that night in the boat; and in the morning I resolved to harbour what I had got in my now wve, and not cany it homo to my castle. After refreshing myself, I got all my cargo on shore, and began to examine the particulars. Tho cask of liquor I found to bo a kind of rum, but not such as wo had at the Brazils ; and, in a word, not at all good ; but when I came to open tho chests, I found several things of gioat use to me : for example, I found in one a fine case of bottles, of an extraordinary kind, and filled with cordial waters,41no and very good; the bottles held about three pints each, and were tipped with silver. I found two pots of very good Buccades, or swootmeats, so faatenod also on the top that the salt water had not hurt them ; and two more ^i the same, which tho water had spoiled. I found somo very good shirts, which were very welcome to mo ; and about a dozen and ahalf of white linen handkerchiefs and coloured neckcloths ; tho former wore also very welcome, being excoodingly refreshing to wipe my fttco in a hot day. Beaides this, when I came to tho till in tho chest, I found there tl>reo great bags of jiiocos of eight, which held about eleven hundred pieces in all ; and in ono of them, wrapped \ip in a pii})er, six doiibloons of gold, and some small bars or wedges of gold ; I stippose they might all weigh near a pound. In the other chest were Home clothes, but of little value ; but, by tho circumstances, it must have belonged to the ; guiuier's mate ; though there was no powdor in it, except two jjounds of fine glazed powder, in three smnll flasks, kept, I suppose, for charging their fowling-pieces on occasion. ■Ui)on tho whole, I got voiy little by this voyage that was of any use to me ; for as to the money, I had no manner of occasion for it ; it was to mo as the dirt under my foot, and I would have given it all for three or four pair of English ..hoes and stockings, which were things I greatly wanted, but had none on my feet for many yeai-s. I had, ind, got two pair of shoes now, which I took off tho feet of tho two drowned men whom 1 siiw iu tho wreck, and I found two pair more in one of tho chests, which wore very welcome to mo ; but they wi>ro not like our English shoes, either for case or sirvico, being rather what wo call pumps than shoes. I found in this seaman's chest about lifty i)ieces of eight, in rials, but no gold : I suppose [this belonged to a poorer nuin than tho other, which seemed to belong to somo ollieer. Well, however, I lugged this money homo to my cave, and laid it up, as I had done that before which I had brought from our own ship ; but it was a great pity, as I said, that tho other part of I this ship liad not como to my share ; for I aai satisfied I might have loaded my canoe I several times over with money; which, if I had over escaped to England, would have lain here gafo enough till I might have como again and fetched it. Having now brought all my things on shore, and secured them, I went back to my hnni, and roweil or jnulUed her along tho shore to hor old harbour, where I laid her up, and mado tho best of my way to my old habitation, wUci-o I found everything safe 130 ^^ CRUSOE MEDITATES MEANS OF ESCAPE. and quiet. I began now to repose myself, live after my old fashion, and take cave of my family affiiirs; and for a while I lived easy enough, only that I was more vigilant than I used to be, looked out oftenei', and did not go abroad so much ; and if, at any time, I did stir with any freedom, it was always to the east part of the island, where I Avas pretty well satisfied the savages never came, and where I could go without so many precautions, and such a load of arms and ammunition as I always carried with me if I went the other way. I lived in this condition near two years more ; but my unlucky head, that was always to let me know it was born to make my body miseral:)lc, was all these two years filled with projects and designs, how, if it were possible, I might get away fi-om this island : for sometimes I was for making another voyage to the M-reck, though my reason told me that there was nothing left there worth the hazard of my voyage ; sometimes for a ramble one way, sometimes another : and I believe verily, if I had had the boat that I went from Sallee in, I should have ventured to sea, bound anywhere, I knew not whither. I have been, in all my circumstances, a memento to those who are touched with the general plague of mankind, whence, for aught I know, one-half of their miseries flow; I mean that of not being satisfied with the station wherein God and Nature hath placed them : for, not to look back upon my primitive condition, and the excellent advice of my father, the opposition to which was, as I may call it, my original sin, my subsequent mistakes of the same kind had been the means of my coming into this miserable condition 3 for had that Providence, which so happily seated me at the Brazils as a planter, blessed me with confined desires, and I could have been contented to have gone on gradually, I might have been by this time, I mean in the time of my being in this island, one of the most considerable planters in the Brazils : nay, I am persuaded, that by the improvements I had made in that little time I lived there, and the increase I should probably have made if I had remained, I might have been worth a hiuufred thousand moidores : and what business had I to leave a settled fortune, a well-stocked plantation, improving and increasing, to turn supercargo to Guinea to fetch negroes, when patience and time would have so increased our stock at home, that we could have bought them at our own door from those whose business it was to fetch them 1 and though it had cost us something more, yet the difi'erence of that price was by no means worth saving at so great a hazard. But as this is ordinarily the fate of young heads, so reflection upon the folly of it is as commonly the exercise of more years, or of the dear-bought experience of time : so it was with me now j and yet so deep had the mistake taken root m my temper, that I could not satisfy myself in my station, but was continually poring upon the means and possibility of my escape from this place : and that I may, with the greater pleasure to the reader, bring on the remaining part of my story, it may not be improper to give some account of my first conceptions on the subject of this foolish scheme for my escape, and how, and upon what foundation I act{;d. I am now to be supposed retired into my castle, after my late voyag-e to the wreck, my frigate laid up and secured under water, as usual, and my condition restored to what it was before : I had more wealth, indeed, than I had before, but was not at all the richer ; for I had no more use for it than the Indians of Peru had before the Spaniards came there. It was one of the nights in the rainy season iu Marclij the four-aiid-twentieth year of my first setting foot in this island of solitude. I was lying in my bed or hammock, awake, very well in health, had no pain, no distemper, no tmeusincss of body, nor any uneasiness of mind more than ordinary, but could by no means close my eyes, that 1 , 131 ^-^^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. ! i o as to sleep ; no, not a wink all night long, otherwiBe than as follows : — It is impossible unci needless to set do^vn the innumerable crowd of thoughts that Avhirled through that K«'cat thoroughfare of the brain — the memory, in this night's time : I ran over the whole history of my life in miniature, or by abridgment, as I may call it, to my coming to this island, and also of that part of my life since I came to this island. In my reflections upon the state of my case since I came on nhore on this island, I was comparing the happy posture of my aflfaii-s in the first years of my habitation here, with the life of anxiety, fear, and care, which I had lived in ever since I had seen the print • )f a foot in the sand ; not that I did not believe the savages had frequented the island pointments which T felt upon coming to myself, and finding that it was no more than a dream, were eipially extravagant the other way, and threw mo into a gotxl dejection of sjiirits. Ul>on this, however, I made this conclusion ; that my only way to go about an attempt for an escape was, if possible, to get a savago into my possession ; and, if possible, it should bo ono of their jirisoners, whom they had condemned to bo eaten, and should bring hither to kill. Ptut thoso thoughts still wore attended with this difllculty, that it was impossible to olTcct this without attacking a whole caravan of them, and killing them all; and this was not only a very desperate attomj)t, and might .miscarry, but, j>n the other hand, I had greatly scrupled the lawfulness of it tb me ; and my heart trembled at the thoughts of .shedding so much blo »>n.>iiii'! i, my liff, and would devour mo if they could; that it was self- »34 ^' ANOTHER ARRIVAL OF CANNIBALS. m^^ preservation, in the highest degree, to deliver myself from this death of a life, and was acting in my own defence as much as if they were actually assaulting me, and the like; I say, though these things argued for it, yet the thoughts of shedding human blood for my deliverance were very terrible to me, and such as I could by no means reconcile myself to for a great while. However, at last, after many secret disputes with myself, and after great perplexities about it (for all these arguments, one way and another, ■struggled in my head a long time), the eager prevailing desire of deliverance at length mastered all the rest ; and I resolved, if possible, to get one of these savages into my hands, cost what it would. My next thing was to contrive how to do it, and this indeed was very difficult to resolve on; but as I could pitch upon no probable means for it, so I resolved to put myself upon the watch, to see them when they came on shore, and leave the rest to the event ; taking such measures as the opportunity should present, let be what would be. With these resolutions in my thoughts, I set myself upon the scout as often as possible, and indeed so often that I was heartily tired of it; for it was above a year and a half that I waited; and for great part of that time went out to the west end, and to the south-west corner of the island almost every day, to look for canoes but none appeared. This was very discouraging, and began to trouble me much, though I cannot say that it did in tlds case (as it had done some time before) wear off" the edf>'e of my desire to the thing ; but the longer it seemed to be delayed, the more eager I was for it : in a word, I was not at first so careful to shun the sight of these savages and avoid being seen by them, as I was now eager to be upon them. Besides, I fancied myself able to manage one, nay, two or three savages, if I had them, so as to make them entirely slaves to me, to do whatever I should direct them, and to prevent their beino' able at any time to do me any hurt. It was a great while that I pleased myself with this affiiir; but nothing still presented; all my fancies and schemes came to nothing, for no savages came near me for a great while. About a year and a half after I entertained these notions (and by lono- musinc had as it were, resolved them all into nothing, for want of an occasion to put them in execu- tion), I was siu'prised one morning early by seeing no less than five canoes all on shore together on my side the island, and the people who belonged to them all landed and out of my sight. The number of them broke all my measiires; for seeing so many, and knowing that they always came four or six, or sometimes more, in a boat, I could not tell what to think of it, or how to take my measures, to attack twenty or thirty men single-handed; so lay still in my castle, perplexed and discomforted. However, I put myself into all the same postures for an attack that I had formerly provided, and was just ready for action, if anything had presented. Having waited a good while, listening to hear if they made any noise, at length, being very impatient, I set my guns at the foot of my ladder, and clambered up to the top of the hill, by my two stages, as usual; standing so, however, that my head did not appear above the hill, so that they could not perceive me by any means. Here I observed, by the help of my perspective glass, that they were no less than thirty in number ; that they had a fire kindled, and that they had meat dressed. How they had cooked it, I knew not, or what it was ; but they were all dancing, in I k\iow not how many barbarous gestures and figures, their own way, round the fire. AVhile I was thus looking on them, I perceived, by my perspective, two miserable wretches dragged from the boats, where, it seems, they were laid by, and were now brought out for the slaughter. I perceived one of them immediately foil; being .35 ■ . ^ 4 ROBINSON CRUSOE. (^ knocked clown, I Huppose, with a club, or wooden swonl, for that was their way ; ami two or three others were at work immediately, cutting him open for their cookery, while tlio other victim was left standing by himself, till they should be ready for him. In tliut very moment, this poor wretch, seeing himself a little at liberty, and unbound, Nature insjured him with hopes of life and he started away from them, and ran with iiicrediljle swiftness along the sands, directly towards mo ; I mean, towards that part of the coast where my habit;ition was. I was dreadfully frightened, that I must acknowledge, when I perceived him i-uu my way ; and especially when, as I thought, I saw him pursued by the whole body ; and now I expected that part of my dream was coming to jMiss, and that ho would certainly tjike shelter in my grove : but 1 could not depend, by any means, ujwn my dream, tlutt the other Sixvages would not pursue him thither, and find him there. However, I kept my station, and my spirits began to recover when I found that there was not above threo men that followed him ; and still more was I encouraged, when I found that ho outstripped them exceedingly in running, and gained ground on them ; so that, if ho could but hold it for half an hour, I saw easily he would fairly get away from them all. Tiiero was between them and my castle, the creek, which I mentioned often in the fii-st part of my story, whero I lauded my cargoes out of the ship ; and this I .saw plainly he must necessarily swim over, or the poor wretch would be taken there ; but when the savage escaping camo thither, he made nothing of it, though the tide was then up ; but, plunging in, swam through in about thirty strokes, or thereabouts, landed, and i-.iu with exceeding strengtli ami swiftncs.s. "When the threo pei-sons camo to the creek, I found that two of them could swim, but the third could not, and that, standing on the (.tiier side, he looked at the othci-s, but went no farther, and .soon after went softly back again ; which, a.s it happened, was very well for him in the end. I observed that the two who swam were yet more than twice as long swimming over the creek than the I'. How was that lied from thorn. It camo very warmly upon my thoughts, and indeed irresistibly, tliat now was tho time to get mo a servant, and perhaps a companion or assistant ; and that I was j)lainly called by Providence to Sivve this poor creature's life, l immediately ran down tho ladder with all possible expedition, fetched my two guns, for they were lH)th at tho foot of tho ladder, as I observed before, and getting up again with tho Hamo haste to tho top of the hill, I crossed towards tho sea; and having a very short cut, and all down hill, clap'd myself in tho way between tho pui-suers and tlie pui-suinl, hallooing aloud to him that fled, who, looking back, was at first perhaps as much frightened at mean at them ; but I beckoned with my hand to him to come back ; and, in tho mean time, I slowly advanced towards tho two that followed; then rushing at once ;ipon tho foremost, I knocked him down with tho stock of my piece. I was h)th to fire, because I would not have the rest hear ; though, at that distance, it would not have boon easily hoard, and being out of sight of tho smoke, too, they would not havo known what to make of it. Having knocked this follow down, the other who pursued him stoi)pcd, as if he had been frightci^od, and I advanced towai-ds him : but as I camo nearer, I perceived presently ho had a bow and arrow, and was fitting it to shoot at me : so I was then obliged to shoot at him fii-st, which I did, and killed him at the first shot. Tho poor savage who Hod, but had stopped, though he saw both his enemies fiiUen and killed, as ho thought^ yet was so frightened with tho fire and noiso of my piece that ho stood stock still, and neither camo forward nor went backward, though ho seemed rather inclined still to (ly than to como on. I hallooed again to him, and made .signs to come fonvard, whiih he civsilv undei-stood, and came a little way ; 136 ' Himfun ^ then stopped agim, and then a httlo faithci, and stopped f^^^M/M again ; and I could then perceive that he stood trembling, as if lie had been taken prisonei-, and had just been to be killed, as his two enemies were. I beckoned to him again to come to me, and gave him all the signs of encouragement that I could think of; and he came nearer and nearer, kneeling down every ten or twelve steps, in token of acknowledg- ment for saving his ife. I smiled at him, and looked pleasantly, and beckoned to him to come still nearer ; at length, he came close to me ; and then he kneeled down again, kissed the ground, and laid his head upon the ground, and, taking me by the foot, set my foot upon his head ; this, it seems, was in token of swear- ing to be my slave for ever. I took him up and made much of him, and encouraged him all I could. But there was more work to do yet; for I per- ceived the savage whom I had knocked down was not killed, but stunned with the blow, and began to come to himself: so I pointed to him, and showed Iiim the savage, that he was not dead ; upon this he spoke some words to me, and tliough I could not understand them, yet I thought they were pleasant to hear; for they were the first sound of a man's voice that I had heard, my own excepted, for above twenty-five years. But there was no time for such reflections '^■vvauow; the savage who was knocked down recovered himself so far as ^ to sit up upon the ground, and I perceived that my savage began to \;':^ be afraid; but when I saw that, I presented my other piece at the ^ man, as if I would shoot him; upon this, my savage, for so I call him now, made a motion to me to lend him my sword, which I hung naked in a belt by my side, which I did. He no sooner had it, but he iims to his enemy, and at one blow a s^^~^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. ctit off liis head as cleverly, no executioner in Gei-many could have done it sooner or better; which I thought very strange fur one who, I had reason to believe, never saw a sword in his life liefore, except their own wooden sword.s: however, it seems, as I leanied afterwards, tliey make their woodeii swords so shai-p, so heavy, and the wooowei'8 eidightcned by the great lamp of in.struction, the Spirit of God, and by the knowledge of his word added to our nndei-standing ; and why it has pleased God to hide tho like saving knowledge from so many millions of souls, who, if I might judge by this poor savage, would make a m\ich better use of it than we did. From hence, I sometimes was led too far, to invade the sovereignty of Provideneo, and, as it were, arraign the justice of so arbitrary a disposition of things, that should hide that ^^^e'. tit ^ ^'.^^ -^^^^^^ T~^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. ^ sight from some, and reveal it to others, and yet expect a like duty from both ; but 1 shut it up, and checked my thoughts with this conclusion : first, That wo ditl not kno .v by wliat light and law these should bo condemned ; but that as God was necessarily, and, by the nature of his being, in^iitely holy and just, so it could not be, but if these creatures were all sontencec^ to absence from himself, it was on account of sinning against that light, which, as tho Scripture says, was a law to themselves, and by such rules as their consciences would acknowledge to be just, though the foundation was not discovered to us ; and, secondly, That sfill, as we are all tho clay in tho hand of the Potter, no vessel could say to Ilim, ""VV^iy ha-st thou formed me thus 1" But to return to my new companion : I was gi-eatly delighted with him, and mado it my business to teach him everything that was proper to make him useful, liandy, and lielpful; but especially to make him speak, and understand me when J spo^c; and he was the aptest scholar that ever was; and particularly was so mciTy, so constantTy diligent, and 30 pleased when ho could but understand me, or make me understand him, that it was very pleasant to me to talk to him. And now my life began to be so easy that I began to say to myself, that could I but have been safe from more savages, I cared not if I was never ^o remove from the place while I lived. After I had been two or thx-eo days returned to my castle, I thought that, in order to >)ring Friday off from his horrid way of feeding, and from tho relish of a cannibal's stomach, I ought to let him tasto other flesh ; so I took him out with mo one morning to tho woods. I went, indeed, intending to kill a kid out of my own flock, and bring it homo and dress it ; but as I was going, I saw a .she-goat lying down in the shade, and two young kids sitting by her. I catchcd hold of Friday ; " Hold," said I, " stand still ; " and made signs to him not to stir : immediately I presented my piece, shot, and killed one of tho kids. Tho i)oor creature, who had, at a distance, indeed, seen me ^iW tho savage, Iiis enemy, but did not know nor could imagine how it wixs- done, was sensibly surpri.sod ; trembled, and shook, and looked so amazed that I thought he would have sunk down. If did not .see tho kid I shot at, or perceive I had killed it, but ripi)ed up his waistcoat, to feel whether ho was not wounded ; and, as I found presently, tliought I M'as resolved to kill him : fur he came and kneeled down to me, and embracing my knees, s;iid a great many things I did not understand ; but I could easily see tho meaning was, to pray mo not to kill him. I soon found a way to convince him that I would do him no harm ; and taking him up by tho hand, laughed at him, and pointing to tho kid wliieh I had killed, beckoned to him to run and fetch it, which ho did : am| while he was wondering, and looking to see how the creature was killed, I loaded my gim again. r.y-and-by I saw a great fowl, like a hawk, sitting upon a tree within shot ; so, to let Friday understand a littlo what I would do, I called him to mo again, pointed at tho fowl, which was indeed a parrot, though I thought it had been a hawk ; I say, pointing to tho parrot, and to my gun, and to tho ground under the parrot, to let him see I would make it fiUl, I made him understand that I would shoot and kill that bird ; accordingly, I fired, and bade him look, and immediately ho saw tho parrot fall. lie stood like one frightened again, notwithstanding all I had said to him ; and | foiiatf ^0 wa.s the moro amazed, because lio did not see mo put anything into tho gun, but thought that there must \>o some wonderful fund of death and ilestruction in that thing, able to kill inan, jjeasJflMrd, or anything near or far ofl'; and the astonishment this created in him was such as could not wear off for a long time ; and, I believe, if I would have let liim, ho would have worshipped mo and my gun. As for the gun itself, lie would not so much as ^ FRIDAY BECOMES USEFUL. toucli it for several days after ; but he woiild sj^eak to it aud talk to it, as if it had uuswered him, when he was by himself; which, as I afterwards learned of him, was to desire it not to kill him. Well, after liis astonishment was a little over at this, I pointed' to him to run and fetch the bird I had shot, which he did, but stayed some time ; for the i^ai-rot, not being quite dead, had fluttered away a good distance from the place where she fell : however, he found her, took her up, and brought her to mc ; and as I had perceived liis ignorance about the gun before, I took this advantage to charge the gun again, and to let him see me do it, that I might be ready for any other mark that might present ; but nothing more offered at that time : so I brought home the kid, and the same evening I took the skin off, and cut it out as well as I could ; and having a pot fit for that purpose, I boiled or stewed some of the flesh, and made some very good broth. After I had begun to eat some, I gave some to my man, who seemed very glad of it, and liked it very well; but that which was strangest to him was to see me eat salt with it. He made a sign to me that the salt was not good to eat ; and putting a little into his own mouth, he seemed to nauseate it, and would spit and sputter at it, washing his mouth with fresh water after it : on the othei' hand, I took some meat into my mouth without salt, and I pretended to spit and sputter for want of salt, as fast as he had done at the salt ; but it would not do ; he would never care for salt with his meat, or in his broth ; at least, not for a great while, and then but a very little. Having thus fed him with boiled meat and broth, I was resolved to feast him the next day with roasting a piece of the kid : this I did by hanging it before the fire on a string, as I had seen many people do in England, setting two poles up, one on each side of the fire, and one across on the top, and tying the string to the cross stick, letting the meat turn continually. This Friday admired very miich ; but when he came to taste the flesh, he took so many ways to tell me how well he liked it, that I could not but understand him : and at last he told me, as well as he could, he would never eat man's flesh any more, which I was very glad to hear. The next day I set him to work to beating some corn out, and sifting it in the manner I used to do, as I observed before ; and he soon understood how to do it as well as I, especially after he had seen what the meaning of it was, and. that it was to make bread of; for after that, I let him see me make my bread, and bake it, too ; and in a little time, Fi'iday was able to do all the work for me, as well as I could do it myself. I began now to consider, that, having two mouths to feed instead of one, I must provide more ground for my harvest, and plant a larger quantity of corn than I used to I do ; so I marked out a larger piece of land, and began the fence in the same manner as before, in which Friday worked not only very willingly and very hard, but did it very cheerfully : and I told him what it was for ; that it was for corn to make more bread, because he was now with me, and that I might have enough for him and myself too. He appeared very sensible of that part, and let me know that he thought I had much more labour upon me on his account, than I had for myself; and that he would work the harder for me, if I would tell him what to do. This was the pleasantest year of all the life I led in this place, Friday began to talk pretty well, and ixnderstand the names of almost everything I had occasion to call for, and of every place I had to send him to, and talk.a great deal to me ; so that, in short I began now to have some use for my tongue again, which, indeed, I had very little occasion for before ; that is to say about speech. Besides the pleasure of talking to him, I had a singular satisfaction in the fellow himself : his simple, unfeigned honesty appeared 143 :>..%^ ROBIN SOx\ CRUSOE to me more and more cren' day, and I began really to love the creature; and on hLs sido I believe he loved me more than it was possible for him ever to love anything before. I had a mind once to try if he had any hankering inclination to his own country again ; and having taught him English so well that he could answer me almost any question, I asked him whether the nation that he Ijelonged to never conquered in battle. At which he .smiled, and said, " Yes, yes, we always fight the better ;" that is, he meant, always get the better in fight ; and so we began the following discoui-se : — .]fa3(cr. — You always fight the better ; how came you to be taken pri.soncr then, Friday ? Fi-'uhiij. — My nation beat much, for all that. Miukr. — How beat ? If your nation beat them, how came you to be taken ? Friday. — They more many than my nation, in the jdace where me was ; they t;iko one, two, three, and me : my nation over-beat them in the yonder jdace, where me no was ; tliere my nation take one, two, great thousand. Master. — But why did not your .side recover you from the hands of your enemies tiieu ] Friday. — They run, one, two, three, and mo, and make me go in the canoe ; my nation have no canoe that time. Master. — "Well, Friday, and what does your nation do with the men they take ? Po thev carry them away and oat them, as these did ? Friday. — Yes, my nation eat mans too : eat all up. Master. — "Where do they carry them ? Friday. — (Jo to other place, where they think. Muster.— Y)o they come hither? Friday. — Yes, yes, they come hither ; come other else place. Master. — Kavc you been here with tlioni \ Friday. — Yes, I been here (points to the N.^Y. sido of the islaml, which, it seoms was their side.) ]{y this I understood that my man Friday had forniorly V).^en among the savages who tised to come on shore on the farther part of the island, on the said man-eating occasions that he was now brought for : and, some time after, when I took the courage to carry him to that aide, being the same I formerly mentioned, he presently knew the place, and told me he was there once, when they cat up twenty men, two women, ami one child : lie could not tell twenty in English, but he numbered them, by laying so many stones in a row, and ])ointing to mo to tell them over. I have told this pa.s.sage, because it introduces what follows ; that after this discourse I had with him, I a.sked him how far it was from our island to the shore, and wheth< r tlio canoes were not often lost. Ho told mo there was no danger, no canoes ever l(»i ; but that after a little way out to sea, there was a current and wind, always one way i i till' morning, the other in the afternoon. This I undoi-stood to be no more than tli. sets of the tide, as going out or coming in ; but 1 afterwards understood it was occ;i- sioneil by the great draft and rotlux of the mighty river Oroonoko, in the mouth of which river, as 1 thought afterwards, our island lay ; and that this land which I perceive*-! to the W. an.st openness imaginable. I asked hinx the names of the several nations of his sort of people, but could ^oi no other name than Caribs : from whence I easily undoi-stood tf mt P E \ - " m 1 K^ ^^ ^r.^ % ^? if? "^■^wi tliafc these were the Caribbees, which our maps place on the part of America which readies from the mouth of the river Oroonoko to Guiana, and onwards to St. Martha. He told me, that up a great way beyond the moon (that was, beyond the setting of the moon, which must be west from their country), there dwelt white-bearded men, like me, and pointed to my great whiskers, which I mentioned before ; and that they had killed much mans, that was his word : by all which I understood he meant the Spaniards, whose cruelties in America had been spread over the whole country, and were remem- bered by all the nations from father to son. 145 ■^^^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. ( 1 I inquired if he coukl tell rao how I might come from this islaml, and get among tho'o white men : ho told me, " Yes, yes, I might go in two canoe." I could not unilt'i-stund what ho meant by two canoe, till at last, with great difficulty, I found he meant it must be in a largo, gi-eat boat, as big as two canoes. This part of Friday's dLscourso began to reli.sh with mo very well ; and from this time I entertained some liopcs that, one time or other, I might find an opportunity to make my escape from this place, and that this poor savago might be a mcftiui to liolp me to do it Dm-iug the long time that Friday had now been with mo, and that he began to speak to me, and understand mo, I was not wanting to lay a foundation of religious knowledge in his mind ; particularly I asked him one time who made him. The poor creature did not undei-stand me at all, but thought I liad asked him who was his father : but I took it by anothor liandle, and asked him who made the sea, the ground we walked on, and the hilU and woods. He told mo, *• It was one Benamuckee, that lived beyond all;** he could describe nothing of this great person, but that he was very old, *' much older," ho said, *' tluin the soa or the land, than the moon or the stars." I asked him then, if this old person liad mado all thing-s why did not all things worship him ? lie looked very grave, and, with a perfect look of innoccuco, said, "All things s;\id O! to him." I asked him if tlio peojde who die in his country went away anywhere. He said, "Yes; they all wont to Benamuckee." Then I asked him whether those they eat uj) went thither too. He said, " Yes." From these things I bjgan to instruct him in the knowledge of the true God : I told him that the great Maker of all things lived there, pointing up towards heaven ; that he governed the world by the same power and provideuco by which he made it ; that ho was omnipotent, and could do everything for ua, givo everything to us, take everything from us ; and thus, by degrees, I openad hia eyes. He listened with great attention, and received with pleasure the notion of Jesus Christ being sent to redeem us, and of tho manner of making our prayers to God, and his being able to hoar us, even into heaven. Ho told mo one day, that if our God could hear us, up beyond tho sun, he must needs bo a greater God than tlieir Benamuckee, who lived but a little way oir, and yet could not hoar till they went up to the great mountains whore ho dwelt k) speak to him. I asked him if ever he went thither to speak to him. He said, '• No ; they never wont that wore young men ; none went thither but tho old men," whom he called thoir Oowokakee ; that ia, as I mado him explain it to me, their religious, or clergy ; and that they went to sny ! (so ho called saying prayers) and then came back and tol(^ them what Benamuckee said. By this I observed, that there is priestcraft even among tlio most blinded, ignorant pagans in tlio world ; and the policy of making A secret of religion, in order to pi-eserve the veneration of tho people to tho clergy, is not only to bo found in the Roman, but, perhaps among all religions in tho world, oven among tho most brutish and barbarous sjxvages. I endeavoured to clear up this fraud to my man Friday, and told him that tho pre- tcnco of their old men going up to the numntains to say O ! to their god Benamuckee was a cheat ; and their bringing word from thenco what he said was much more so ; that if they met with any answer, or spoke with any one there, it must be with an evil .spirit ; and then I entered into a long di.' coui-so with him about the devil, the original of him, his rebellion against God, his enmity to man, the roixson of it, his setting himself uj^in the dark parts of the world to be worshipped instead of God, and as God, and the many stratagems ho made use of to delude mankind to their ruin; how he had a secret access lo our p;\ssiiiiis an.] '43 Ji m^ ^" t^< '^^ r ^t * >^'' -!_: i :rk^ ^ 1^ ^ \ \ As to tlie disputes, wrangling, strife, and contention wliieli Lave liappened in the world about reli"-ion, whether niceties iu doctrines, or schemes of church government, they were all perfectly useless to us, and, for aiight I can yet see, they have been to the rest of the world. We had the sure guide to heaven, viz., the Word of God j and we had, blessed be God, comfortable views of the Spirit of God teaching and instructing us by His word, leading us into all truth, and making us both willing and obedient to the instruction of His word. And I canuot see the least u.se that the greatest knowledge of the disputed 149 ROBINSON CRUSOE. poiutii of religion, which have made such confusions in the world, would hare been to tiS if we could have obtained it ; but I must go on with the historical part of things, and take cveiy part in its order. After Fiiday and I became more iutimntcly acquainted, and that he could under- stand almost all I .said to him, and speak llucntlr, though in broken English, to me, I acquainted him with my own story, or at least so much of it as related to my coming into this place ; how I had lived there, and how long : I let him into the mystei^, for nch it was to him, of gimpowder and bllllet, and taught him how to shoot. I gave him a knife, with which he was wonderfully deliglitcd ; and I mndo him a belt, with a frog Jianging to it, such as in England we wear hangei-s in ; and in the frog, instead of a hanger, I gave him a hatchet, which was not only iis good a wcflpou in some cases, but much more useful \ipon many occasions. I described to him the countries of Europe, particularly England, which I cnmc from ■ liMW we lived, how we woi-shipi)ed God, how we behaved to one another, and how wc dull'.! in ships to all parts of the world. I gave him an account of the wi-eck which I \fiu\ l)oen on boBtil of, and showed him, as near as I could, the place where she lay : biit ^h.• was idl beaten in pieces long before, and quite gone. I showed him the ruins of cur Ijoat, which we lost when we escaped, and which I could not stir with my whole suvngth then ; but was now -fallen almost all to pieces. Upon seeing this Inrnt^ Friday st I nuLsing a great while, and said nothing. I asked him what it was he studied ui.oii. At last, says he, "Me see such boat like come to place at my nation." I did 11'. t uiuleratand him a gootl while; but, at last., when I had examined further into it, I undt'i-stood by him, that a boat, such as that had 1x?eti, came on shoi-c upon the coimtry V litre he lived ; that is, as he explained it^ wos driven thither by stre.w of weather. I j.nsently imagined that .some European ship mu.st have been cast away upon their coast, and tho boat might get loose and drive ashore; but was so dull thai I never once tli< night of men making their escape fkDm a wreck thither, much lees whence Ihoy might cuu' : so I only inquii-ed after the description of the Wat. Friday desciibed the boat to mc well enough ; but brought me better to understand him when he added with some warmtli, " We save the white mans from dixiwn." Then I presently asked if thei-e were any white mans, as ho called them, in the boat. *' Yes," he said ; " the boat fvdl of white man.^." I aslced him how many. He told ui)on his iiiigers seventeen. 1 a.sked him tlicn whivt became of thcin. lie told mo, "They live, they dwell at my nation." This put new thoughts into my head ; for I presently imagined that the.'^e might bo i the men belonging to the ship that was cast away in the sight of my island, as 1 now called it ; and wlio, after tho alup was struck on the rock and they .saw her inevitably lost, had sjived theiuselves in their boat, and were landed ujiou that wild shore among the savages. Upon this I iiupiired of him nun-e critically what was become of them. He assured mc they lived still there ; that they hail been there about four yeai-s ; that the savages left them alone, and gave them victuals to live. I asked him how it came to pass that they did not kill them and eat then^ Ke said, " No, they make brother with them ;" that is, as I undei-stood him, a truce ; and then ho added, "They no cat mans but when nuiko the war fight;" that is to sj\y, they never eat any men but such ;!-< come to (Iglut with them, and are taken in battle. It was after this some considerable time, that beiirg ujion the top of the) hill, at (he east side of the island, from whence, as I have 8i\id, I had, in a clear day, discovered the main or emititiont r.f America, Friday, the weather being very .^erene, looks veiy 150 ^ CRUSOE liXDULGES IN GROUNDLESS JEALOUSY, eaniestly towards tlie main land, and, in a kind of surprise, Mis a-jumping and dancin'^, and calls out to me, for I was at some distance from liim. I asked liirn what was the matter. " Ob, joy ! " says he ; "oh, glad ! there see my country, there my nation ! " I observed an extraordinary sense of pleasure appeared in his face, and his eyes sparkled, and his countenance discovered a strange eagerness, as if ho had a mind to be in Lis own country again. This observation of mine put a great many thoughts into me, which made me, at first, not so easy about my new man Friday as I was before ; and I made no doubt but that, if Friday could get back to his OAvn nation again, he would not only forget all his religion, but all his obligation to me, and would be forward enough to o-lvc his countrymen an account of me, and come back, perhaps, with a hundred or two of them, and make a feast upon me, at which he might be as merry as he used to be with those of his enemies, when they were taken in war. But I wronged the poor honest creature very much, for which I was very sorry afterwards. However, as my jealousy increased,' and held me some weeks, I was a little more circumspect, and not so fiimili ir and kind to him as before : in which I was certainly in the wron whole, I was by this time so fixed upon my design of going over with him to the continent, that I told him wo would go and make one a.s big as that, and lu> .-lioidd go ht>me in it. IFe answered not one word, but looked very grave and .sad. 1 a>ked him what was the matter with him. He asked mc again, " Why you angry mad with Friday ? — what me done ? " I a.sked him what he meant. I told him I was nut angry with him at all. " No angry ! " .says he, repeating the words sevei^al times ; " why send Friday home away to my nation ? " "Why," says I, " Friday, did not you say you M-ished you were there/" ''Yes, yes," .says he, " wish we both there ; uo wish Fritlay there, no master there." In a word, he would not think of going there without me. '-I go th«-re, Friday '." .siiys I ; "what .shall I do there?" He turned very quick ujion me at this, " You do great deal much g'^od," sjiys he ; " you teach wild mans lie goml, .sober, tame mans ; you tt-ll them know Cu»d, pray God, and live new life," " Alas, Friday !" .say.s J, " thou knowest nob what thou .sayest ; I am but an ignorant man myself." "Yes, ye.s," says he, "you teachee me good, you teachee them good." "No, no, Friday," .says I, "you shall go without me; leave me here to live by myself, as I did before." Ho looked eonfiised again at that word ; and running to one of tli.> hatchets which he u.sed to wear, he takes it up hastily, and gives it to me. " What mu>t I do with this/" says I to liini. "You take kill Friday,' .says he. " What must 1 kill you for /" .said I again, lie returns very quick — "What you send Friday away for? Take kill Friday, no .send Friday away." This lie .spoke .so earnestly that I .■-aw teai-s .stand in his eyes. In a word, I so i)lainly di.scovered the utmost alfeetiuu in him to mo, and a iirra resolution in him, that I told him then, and often after, that I would never stmd him away from me, if iu' was willing to stay \vith me. Upon the whole, as I found by all his discourse a .settled aflection to me, and that nothing could ]>art him from me, .so I found all the foundation of his desire to go to his own country was laid in his ardent affection to the peojile, and his hopes of my doing them good ; a thing which, as 1 had no notion of myself, .so I had not the leiust thought or intention, or desire of undertaking it. But still I lound a strong inclination to my attenq»ting nn escape, fouiuled on tlio supposition gathered from the former discourse, tliat there were seventeen bearded nu-n tlu're ; nntl therefore, without any more delay, I went to work with Friday to find out a great tree proper to fell, aiul make a largo poriagua, or canoe, to undertake the Voyage. •There were trees enough in the island to h;vvo built a little lleet, not of i)eriagu!us or canoes, but even of good largo ves-sels ; but the main thing I looked at Wiis, to get one so near tho water that we might launch it when it wa.s made, to avoid tho mist^ike I committed at first. At huit, Friday pitched upon a tree; for I found ho know nuu-h Ix'tter than 1 what kind of wood was fittest for ROBINSON CRUSOE. I i t • nor can I tell, to thus day, what wood to call the tree we cut down, except that it was very like the tree we call fustic, or between that and the Nicaragua wood, for it was much of the sjimo colour and .smell. Friday was for burning the hollow or ca\'ity of this tree out, to make it into a boat, but I showed him how rather to cut it with tools ; which, afler I had showtd him how to use, he did very handily; and in about a month's hard labour, we finished it and made it very handsome ; especially, when, with our axes, which I showed him how to handle, we cut and hewed the outside into the tnie shape of a boat. After this, however, it cost us near a fortnight's time to get her along, as it were, inch by inch, upon gi-eat rollei-s into the water ; but when she wa.s in, she would liave carried twenty men with great ca.sc. When she was in the water, though .she was so big, it amazed me to see with what dexterity and how swift my man Friday could manage her, turn her, and paddle her along. So I a.sked him if wc would, and if we might venture over in her. " Yes," ho paid ; " we venture over in her vcr}' well, though great blow wind." However, I had a farther design that he knew nothing of, and that was to make a mast and a sail, and to fit her with an anchor and cable. As to a mast, that was easy enough to get ; so I pitched upon a straight young cedar-tree, which I found near the place, and which there was great plenty of in the island, and I set Friday to work to cut it down, and gave him directions how to .shape- and order it. But as to the sail, that was my particular care. I knew I had old sails, or rather pieces of old sails, enough ; but as I had had them now six-and-twenty years by me, and had not been very careful to preserve thorn, not imagining that I should ever have this kind of use for them, I did not doubt but they were all rotten ; and, indeed, most of them were so. However, I found two pieces^ which appeared jjretty good, and with these I went to work ; and with a gi'eat deal of pains, and awkward, tedious stitching, you may be sure, for want of needle«, I at length made a three-cornered ugly thing, like what we call in England a shoulder-of-mutton sail, to go with a boom at bottom, and a little short sprit at the top, such as usually our sliips' long-boats sail with, and such as I best knew how to manage, because it was such a one as I used in the boat in which I made my escape from Barbary, as related in the first part of my story. I was near two months performing this last woi-k — viz., rigging and fitting my mast and .sails ; for I fiui.shed them very complete, making a small stuy, and a sail or foresail to it, to assist if we shouUl turn to windward ; and, which was more than all, I fixed a rudder to the stern of her to steer with. And though I was but a bungling shipwright^ yet as I know the usofulnes-s, and even the necessity of such a thing, I applied myself with .so much jmins to do it, that at last I brought it to p-oss ; though, considering tho many dull contrivances 1 had for it that failed, I think it co.st me almost as much liibour as making tho boat. After all this was done, I had my man Friilay to teach as to what belonged to the navigation of my boat ; for, though he knew very well how to paddle the canoe, he knew untiling of what belonged to a .sail and a rudder ; and was the most amazed when he saw mo work the boat to and again in the sea by tlio rudder, and how the sail gibbod, and lillod this way or that way, as the courao wo sailed changed ; I .say, when he saw this, he stood like one astonished and amazed. However, with a little use, I made all tlicse things faniiliar to him, and he became an expert sailor, except that as to tlie compass I cuvdd make him undei-stand very little of that. On tho other hand, as there was very little cloudy weather, and seldom or never any fogs in those parts, there was the less ocrnxion for the compass, seeing tho stars were always t'-» bo soon l»v night, and the shore '51 r^^'it *^.d'.. by day, except in tlie rainy seasons, and then nobody caved to stir abi'oad either by land or sea. I was now entered on the seven-and- twentieth year of my captivity in this place ; though the three last years that I had this creature with me ought rather to be left out of the account, my habitation being quite of another kind than in all the rest of my time. I kej)t the anniversary of my landing here with the same thankfulness to God for his mercies as at first : and if I had such cause of acknowledgment at first, I had much more so now, having such additional testimonies of the care of Providence over mc, and the great hopes I had of being efiectually and speedily delivered j for I had an invincible impression upon my thoughts that my delivei'ance was at hand, and that I should not be another year in this place. However, I went on with my husbandry ; digging, planting, and fencing, as usual. I gathered and cured my grapes, and dil every necessary thing as before. The rainy season was, in the meantime upon me, when I kept more within doors than at other times. I had stowed our new vessel as secure as we could, bringing her up into the creek, where, as I said in the beginning, I landed my rafts from the ship ; and hauling her up to the shore at high- water mark, I made my man Friday dig a little dock, just big enough to hold her, and just deep enough to give her water enough to float in ; and then, when the tide was out, we made a strong dam across the end of it, to keep the water out ; and so she lay dry as to the tide from the sea : and to keep the rain ofi^, we laid a great many boughs of trees, so thick that she was as well thatched as a house ; and thus we waited for the months of November and December, in which I designed to make my adventure. When the settled season began to come in, as the thought of my design returned with the fair weather, I was prepar'ing daily for the voyage. And the first thing I did was to lay by a certain quantity of provisions, being the stores* for oitr voyage ; and intended, in a week or a fortnight's time, to open the dock, and launch out our boat. I was busy one morning upon something of this kind, when I called to Friday, and bid him go to the sea-shore, and see if he could find a turtle or tortoise, a thing which wo generally got once a vv^eek, for the sake of the eggs, as well as the flesh. Friday had not been gone long when he came running back, and flew over my outer wall, or fence, like one that felt not the ground, or the steps he set his feet on ; and before I had time to speak to him, he cries out to me, "0 master! O master! O sorrow! bad!" '' What's the matter, Friday ? " said I. " Oh ! yonder, there," says he 5 " one, two, threo Lanoes; one two, three !" By this way of speaking, I concluded there were six; but on inquiry I found there were but three. "Well, Friday," says I, "do not bo frightened." So I heartened him up as well as I could. However, I saw the poor fellow was most terribly scared, for nothing ran in his head but that they were come back to look for him, and would cut him in pieces and eat him ; and the poor fellow trembled so that I scarcely knew what to do with him. I comforted him as well as I could, and told him I was in as much danger as he, and th&t they would eat me as well as him. " But,'* said I, *' Friday, we must resolve to fight them. Can you fight, Friday 1 " "Me .shoot," says he; "but thero come many great numbei'." "No matter for that, said I, again ; " our guns will fright them that we do not kill." So I asked huu whether, if I resolved to defend him, hewordd defend me, and stand by me, and do jus's as I bid him. He said, "Me die, when you bid die, master." So I went and fetched a good dram of rum and gave him ; for I had been so good a husband of my rum, that I had a great deal left. When he had drunk it, I made him take the two :-^=^^^&<^^^^.l!- ROBINSON CRUSOE. fowling-pieoca, which wc always earned, and load them with large swan-shot, as big HH Hmall pistol-bullets. Then I took four muskets, and loaded them with two sluu^*, and five small bullets each ; and my two pistols I loaded with a brace of bullets each. r hung my great sword, as usual, naked by my side, and gave Friday his hatchet. "W'lien I had thus prepared myself, I took my perspective-glass, and went uj) to the side of the hill, to see what I could discover; and I found quickly by my gla-ss, that there were oue-and-twenty savages, three prisonei-s, and three canoes ; and tliat their whole busines.s seemed to be the triumphant banquet upon these three human bodies ; a barbarous feast indeed, but nothing more than, as I had observed, was usual with them. I obserA-ed also that they landed, not where they had done when Friday made his csca])e, but nearer to my creek, where the shore was low, and where a thick wood came close almost down to the sea. This, with the abhorrence of the inhuman eiTand these wretches came about, filled me with such indignation that I canie down again to Friday, and told him I Mas resolved to go down to them, and kill them all ; and asked him if he would stand by mc. He had now got over his fright, and his spirits being a little raised with the dram I had given him, he was veiy cheerful, and told mc, as before, he would die when I bid die. In this fit of fury I took fii-st and divided the arms which I had charged, as before, between us ; I gave Friday one pistol to stick in his girdle, and three guns upon his shoulder, and I took one pistol and the other three mysolf ; and in this jmsture we marched out. I took a small bottle of nimjn my pocket, and gave Friday a large bag with more powder and bullets; and as to orders,.! charged him to keep close behind me, and not to stir, or shoot,' or do anything till 1 bid him, and in the mean- time not to speak a wonL In this posture I fetched a compass to my right hand of near a mile, as well to get over the creek as to get into the wood, so that I might come within shot of them before I should bo discovered, Avhich 1 had seen by my ghiss it was ca.sy to do. AVhilc I M-as making this march, my former thoughts returning, I began to abate my resolution — I do not mean that I cntei-tained any fear of their number, for, as they were naked, unarmed wretches, it is certain I Avas superior to them — nay, though I had been alone. 13ut it occurred to my thoughts, what call, what occasion, much less what necessity, I was in to go and dip* my hands in blood, to attack people who had neither done or intended mo any wrong? — who, as to me, were innocent, and whoso barbarous customs were their own dis;xster, being in them a tr us that wo did not, for it blew so hard within two hours after, ami before thoy could bo got a quarter of their way, and er sure never man or horao ran like him ; and he had the other canoe in the ere* i- almost as soon as I got to it by land ; so ho wafted me over, and then went to help om now guests out of the boat, which he did ; but they wore neither of them ahlo to wall; BO that poor I'liday know not what to do. To roincdy this, I went to work in my thought, and calling to Friday to bid them sit down on the bank while he came to me, I soon made a kind of hand-baiTow to lay them on, and Friday and I carried them up both together upon it between lis. But when wo got them to the outside of our wall, or fortification, we were at a worse loss than before, for it was impossible to got them over, and I was resolved not to brtuk it down ; so I sot to work again, and Friday and I, in about two hours' time, made a very handsome tent, covered with old sails, and above that with bough? of trees, being in the sp.-ico without our outward fence, and botwoon that and the grove of young 162 CRUSOE CONVERSES WITH HIS SUBJECTS. wood wliicli I had planted ; aud here we made them two beds of such things as I had, viz., of good rice-straw, Avith blankets laid upon it, to lie on, and another to cover them, on each bed. My island was now peopled, and I thought myself very rich in subjects j and it was a merry reflectfon, which I frequently made, how like a king I looked; First of all, the whole country was my own mere property, so that I had an undoubted right of dominion. Secondly, my people were perfectly subjected : I was absolutely lord and lawgiver : they all owed tlieir lives to me, and were ready to lay down their lives, if there had been occasion for it, for me. It was remarkable, too, I had but three subjects, and they were of three different religions : my man Friday was a Protestant, his father was a Pag:i'i and a cannibal, and the Spaniard was a Papist. However, I allowed libex-ty of conscience throughout my dominions : — But this is by the way. As soon as I had secured my two weak rescued prisoners, and given them shelter, and a place to rest them upon, I began to think of making some provision for them ; and the first thing I did, I ordered Friday to take a yearling goat, betwixt a kid and a goat, out of my particular flock, to be killed ; when I cut off the hinder quarter, and chopping it into small pieces, I set Friday to work to boiling and stewing, and made them a very good dish, I assure you, of flesh and broth, having put some barley and rice also into the broth ; and as I cooked it without- doors, for I made no fire within my inner wall, so I carried -it all into the new tent, and having set a table there for them, I sat down, and ate my own dinner also with them, and, as well as I could, cheered them and eucoui'aged them. Friday was my interpreter, especially to his father, and, indeed, to the Spaniard too ; for the Spaniard spoke the language of the savages pretty Avell. After we had dined, or rather supped, I ordered Friday to take one of the canoes and go and fetch our muskets and other fire-arms, which, for want of time, we had lefb upon the place of battle ; and, the next day, I ordered him to go and bury the dead bodies of the savages, which lay open to the sun, and would presently bo oftensive. I also ordered him to bury the horrid remains of their barbarous feast, which I could not think of doing myself : nay, I could not bear to see them, if I went that way ; iV. which he punctually perfonned, and defaced the very appearance of the savages be; there ; so that when I went again, I could scarce know where it was, otherwise than i 'V the corner of the wood pouiting to the place. I then began to enter into a little conversation with my two new subjects ; and, first, I set Friday to inquire of his father what he thought of the escape of the savages in that canoe, and whether we might expect a return of them, with a power too great for us to resist. His first opiiaon was, that the savages in the boat never could live out the storm which blew that night they went off, but must, of necessity, be drov/ned, or di-iven south to those other shores, where they were as sui-e to be devoured as they were tobe drowned if they were cast away; but, as to what they would do if they came safe on shore, he said he knew not ; but it was his opinion, that tbiey were so dreadfully frightened with the manner of their being attacked, the noise, and the fire, tliat he believed they would tell the people they were all killed by thunder and lightning, not by the hand of man ; and that the two which appeared, viz., Friday an^d I, were two heavenly spirits, or furies, come down to destroy them, and not men with ■'ureapons. This he said he knew, because he heard them all cxy out so, in their language, one to another ; for it was impossible for them to conceive that a man could dart fire, and speak thunder, and kill at a distance, without lifting up the hand, as was done now : and this old savage was in the right 3 for, as I imderstood since, by other hands, the savages "-?""■' f.+^ompted to ^^-.^--^^ 163 m k ROBINSON CRUSOE. f,'o over to the island afterwards ; tlifv were so terrified with the accounts given by tho^^c four men (for it seems they did escape the sea), that they believed whoever went to that lucliantod island would be destroyed with fire from the gods. This, however, I knew not ; and therefore was under continual apprehensions for a good while, and kept always upon my guard, I and all my army : for, as we were now four of us, I would have ventured upon a hundred of them, fairly in the open field, at any time. In a little time, however, no more canoes appearing, the fear of their coming M-ore nfl' : and I began to take my former thoughts of a voyage to the main into consideration ; being likewise assured, ])y Fnday'.s father, that I might depend upon good usage from their nation, on his account, if I would go. But my thoughts were a*little stispendcrl when I had a serious discourse with the Spaniard, and when T understood that there were sixteen more of hid countrymen and Portuguese, who having been cast away and made their escaj)e to that side, lived there at peace, indeed, with the savage--^, but were very sore put to it fm- necessaries, and, indeed, for life. I :i.skcway, either to the Bmzil^south- ■ward, or to the i.shmds or Spanish coast northward ; b\it that if, in requital, they should, when 1 had put weaiK)ns into their hands caiTy me by force among their own peoj>le, 1 might be ill used for iny kindness to them, and make my case woi-se than it was before. He answered, with u great deal of candour and ingenuousness, that their condition was .so miserable, and that they were so sensible of it, that he believed they would abhor the thought of using an^T man unkindly that .should contribute to their deliverance ; and that.ifl pleased, he wonW go to them,-\Wth the old man, and discourse with iheni about it and return .ncrain, nnd. I.rintr me their answer : that he would make conditions with <nulenco in it on one hand, and so much sincerity on the other hand, that I could not but be very well .satisfied in it ; and, by his advice, put oft" the deliverance of his comrades for at least half a year. The case was thus : he had been with us now about a month, during which time I had let him sec in what manner I had provided, with the assistance of Providence, for my support ; and he saw evidently what stock of corn and rice I had laid up ; which, though it was more than sufficient for myself, yet it was not sufficient, without good husbandly, for my family, now it was increased to four ; but much less would it be sufficient if his countrymen, who were, as he said, foui-teen, still alive, should come over ; and, least of all, would it be sufficient to victual our vessel, if we should build one, for a voyage to any of the Christian colonies of America ; so he told me he thought it would be more advisable to lot him and the other two dig and cultivate some more land, as much as I could spare seed to sow, and that we should wait another harvest^ that we might have a supply of corn for his countrymen, when they should come ; for want might bo a temptation to them to disagree, or not to think themselves delivered, otherwi.se than out of one difficulty into another. "You know," says he, "the children of Israel, though they rcjcjiced at first for their being delivered out of Egypt, yet rebelled oven against (Jod himself, that delivered them, when they came to want bread in the wilderness." His caution was .so .seasonable, and his advice so good, that 1 could not but bo very well plea.sed with his proposal, as well as I was satisfied with his lldelity ; so we fell to *''Sg'"g. 'ill four of u.H, ns well as the wooden tools wo were furni.shed with permitted ; and in ahout a month's time, by the end of which it wtis .seed-time, we had got as much land cured and trimmed up, as wo sowed two-and-twenty bushels of barley on, and si.xteen jars of rice, which was, in .short, all the seed we had to sj)are ; indeed, wo left ourselves barely sufficient for our own food for the six months that we had to expect our crop ; that is to say, reckoning from the time wo set our seed aside for sowing ; for it is not to bo supi)o.sed it Is six months in the ground in that country. Having now society enough, and our number being sufficient to put us out of fear of the savuyes, if they had come, unless their number had been very groat, we went fively all over tho isluud, whenever we found occa.sion ; and as wo had our escape or dclivcr- anco upon our thought.s, it was impossible, ut least for me, to have tho means of it out ol mine. For this purpose, I marked out sovei-al trees, which I thought fit fur our >>., ^-zs.«^..^_ i66 MM ■■ _: A CHARITABLE MISSION. work, and I set Fi'iday and his father to cut them down ; and then I caused the Spaniard, Im to wliom I imparted my thoughts on that affair, to ovei-see and direct their work. I 1 showed them witli what indefatigable pains I liad hewed a h\rge tree into single j^ jdanks, and I caused them to do the like, till they had made about a dozen large planks \ of good oak, near two feet broad, thirty-five feet long, and from two inches to four cS inches thick : Avhat prodigious labour it took up, any one may imagine. w At the same time, I contrived to increase my little stock of tame goats as much as I | could ) and for this purpose I made Friday and the Spaniard go out one day, and ] myself with Fi'iday the next day (for we took ou.r turns), and by this means we got f^ about twenty young kids to breed up with the rest j for whenever we shot the dam, we saved the kids, and added them to our flock. But, above all, the season for curing the grapes coming on, I caused such a prodigious quantity to be hung up in the sun, that, I P| believe, had we been at Alicant, where the raisins of the sun are cured, we could have filled sixty or eighty barrels ; and these, with our bread, formed a great part of our food — very good living too, I assure you, for they are exceeding nourishing. . It was now harvest, and our crop in good order; it was not the most plentiful i increase I had seen in the island, but, however, it was enough to answer our end; for, j from twenty-two bushels of barley, we brought in and thrashed out above two hundred and twenty bushels ; and the like in proportion of the rice ; which was store enough for our food to the next harvest, though all the sixteen- Spaniai'ds had been on shore t with me ; or, if we had been ready for a voyage, it woiild very plentifully have victualled our ship to have carried us to any part of the world, that is to say, of ^ America. When we had thus housed and secured our magazine of corn, we fell to work i to make more wicker-work, viz., great baskets, in which we kept it ; and the Spaniard r was very handy and dexterous at this part, and often blamed me that I did not make some things for defence of this kind of work ; but I saw no need of it. And now, having a full .supply of food for all the guests expected, I gave the ' Spaniard leave to go over the main, to see what he could do with those he had left ^ beliind him there. I gave him a strict charge not to bring any man with him who would not first swear, in the presence of himself and the old savage, that he would no way injure, fight with, or attack the person he should find in the island, who was so I kind as to send for them in order to their deliverance ; but that tbey would stand by him and defend him against all such attempts, and wherever they went, would be entirely under and subjected to his command ; and that this should be put in writing, J and signed with theft' hands. How they were to have done this, when I knew they had i neither pen nor ink — that, indeed, was a question which we never asked. Under these instructions, the Spaniard and the old savage, the father of Friday, went away in one of the canoes which they might be said to have come in, or rather were brought in, when ' they came as prisoners to be devoured by the savages. I gave each of them a musket, l with a fire-lock on it, and about eight charges of powder and ball, charging them to be very good husbands of both, and not to u.se either of them but upon urgent occasion. This was a cheerful work, being the first measures used by me, in view of mv deliverance, for now twenty-seven years and some days. I gave them provisions of bread, and of dried gi'apes, sufficient for themselves for many days, and sufficient for all the Spaniards for about eight days' time ; and wishing them a good voyage, I saw them f\ go, agreeing with them about a signal they should hang out at their return, by which I n| should know them again, when they came back, at a distance, before they came on \ shore. Thev went awav, v.'ith a fair gale, on the dav the moon was at full, bv my 167 ^^^ ^s^ r^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. 'f account in the month of October; but as for an exact leckoniuf; of days ^ftev I had oncf' h).st it, I could never recover it again ; nor had 1 kept even the numWr of years .) punctually as to be sure I was right ; thougli, as it proved, wlien I afterwards ( xamined my account, I fomul I had kei»t a true reckojiing of years. It was uo less tlian eight days I had waited for them, when a strange and unforeseen accident intervened, of which the like has not, jiorhaps, been hoard of in history. I was last a«leep in my hutch one morning, when my man Friday came running in to me, and f idled aloud, "Master, master, they are come, they are come:" I jumped up, and, icardless of danger, I went out as soon as I could get my clothes on, through my little grove, which, by the way, was by this time grown to be a veiy thick wot>d ; I say, ngardk'ss of danger, I went without my arms, which was not my custom to do : but I was surprised, when, turning my eyes to the sea, I presently saw a boat at about a league iuiil a half distance, standing in for the shore, with a shoulder-of-mutton sail, as they rail it, and the wind bhfwing pretty fair to bring them in : also I obser\-cd, presently, that they ditl not come from that side which the .shore lay on, but from the southern- most end of the island. Upon this I called Friday in, and l)ade him lie close, for these were not the people we looked for, and that we might not knoAv yet whether they were ! it-nds or enemies. In the next jdace, I went in to fetch my perspective-glass, to see hat T coidd make of them ; and, having taken the ladder out, I climbed up to the top of the hill, as I used to do when I Wivs apprehensive of anything, and to take my view plainer, without being discovered. I had scarce set my foot upon the hill, when my eyo plainly discovered a ship lying at an anchor, at about two leagiies and a half distance from me, S.S.K., lait not above a league and a half from the shore. By my observation, it appeared ]tlainly to be an English ship, and the boat ajipearcd to be an English long- boat. I cannot express the confusion I was in, though the joy of seeing a ship, and one that I had reason to believe was manned by my own countrymen, and consequently friends, was such as I cannot describe ; but yet I had some secret doubts hung about me — I cannot tell from whence they cauae — bidding me keep upon my guard. In the lii-st place, it occurred to me to consider what business an English ship could have in that part of the world, since it was not the way to or from any part of the world where the English had any traffic; and I knew there had been no storms to drive them in there, in di.stre.ss ; and that if they were really English, it was most probable that they were here upon no good design ; and that 1 had better continue as I was than fall into till' hands of thieves and murderei-s. i,ot no man despi.sc the secret hints and notices of danger which sometimes are given him when he may think there is no possil>iUty of its being real. That such hint.s and notices are given u.s, I believe few that have made any observations of things can deny ; that they are certain discoveries of an invisible worUl, and a converae of .spirits, wo cannot doiibt ; and if the tendency of them .seems to be to warn us of danger, why should we not suppo.so they are from .some friendly agent (whether supreme, or inferior and subordinate, is not the question), and that they are given for our good i The present question abundantly confirms me in the justice of this reasoning; for had I not been nuule catitious by this secret admonition, come it from whence it will, 1 had been undone inevitably, and in a far worse condition tlmu before, as you will se.' l)re.scntly. 1 had not kept my.'-elf long in this jwstiire, till I saw the boat dmw near the >hore, as if they looked for a creek to thrust in at, for the convenience of landing ; how- .•er, as they did not come (juite far enough, thev did not see thr> littlo inlet where I ROBINSON CRUSOE. '1^ ^ 1 ^ J { formerly landed my raftn, but i-an their boat on shore upon the beach, at about Imlf a mile from mo ; -which was very happy for mc j for otherwise they wouUl have lauded just at my door, as I may say, and would boou have beaten mo out of my castle, and perhaps have phuidorcd me of uU I had. When they were on shore, I was fully s;itisfied tliey were Englishmen, at least mo.st of them j one or two I thought were Dutch, but it did nob provo bo; thc-ro were in all eleven men, whereof three of them I found were iniarmod, and, as I thought, bound ; and when the first f )ur or five of them were jumped on .shore, Ihoy took those three out of the boat, as prisoners : one of the three I could ]»crccivo using the most passionate gestures of entreiity, affliction, and despair, even to a kind of extravagance ; tlie other two, I could percuivo, lifted up their hand sometimes, and api)eared concerned, indeed, but not to such a dogi-eo as the first. I was jjcrfectly confomulcd at the sight, and know not what the meaning of it should be. Friday called out to mo in English, as well as he could, '• O master ! you sec English mans eat jirisoni r as well as savage mans." " AVhy, Friday," says I, " do you think they arc going to eat them, then ?" — "Yes," says Friday, "they will cat them." — "No, no,-' .says T, "Friday ; I am afraid they will murder them, indeed ; but you may bo sure they will not cat them." All this while I had no thought of what the matter really was, but stood trembling with the horror of the sight, expecting every moment when the three prisoners should be killed ; nay, once I naw omo of the villains lift up his arm with a great cutlass, as the seamen call it, or sword, to strike one of the jtoor men ; and I expected to see him fall every moment ; at which all the blood in my body seemed to run chill in my veins. I wished heartily now for my Spaniard, and the savage that was gone with him, or that I had any way to have come undiscovered within .shot of them, that I might have secured the three men, for I saw no fire-arms they had among them j but it fell out to my mind another way. After I had obsen'od the outrageous usage of the three men by the insolent seamen, I observed the fellows nin scattering about the land, as if they wanted to see the country. I observed also that the three other men had liberty to go where they pleased ; but they sat down all three upon the ground, very pensive, and looked like men in despair. This put mo in mind of the first time when I came on shore, and began to look about mo j how I gave myself over for lost ; how wildly I looked round me ; what dreadful apprehensions I had ; and how I lodged in the tree all night, for fear of being devoured by wild boasts. As I know nothing, that night, of tho sii)>ply I was to receive by tho providential drivhig of tho ship nearer the land by tho sti.niis and tide, by which I have since been so long nourished and sui>ported ; so these throo poor desolato men know nothing how certain of deliveniuco and supply they were, how near it was to them, and how clTeetually and really they were in a condition of .•afi'ty, at tho Bamo time the}- thought themselves lost, and their case desperate. So liillo do wo see bofuro us in the world, and so much reason have we to depend cheerfully npna the great Aluker of Iho world, that Ho does not lAivo His creatures so absolutely (Kstiluto, but that, in tho worst circumstances, they have always .something to be th:inkful for, and sometimes aro nearer their dclivoranco than they imagine; nay, arc ■ veil brought to their deliverance by tho means by which they seem to bo brought to tiicir destruction. It was just at tho top of high water wlien these people came on shore ; and while they i rambled al)out to .see what kind of a ])lace they were in, they had carelessly stayed till tlio s tiilo was spent^ and tlie water was ebbed considerably away, leaving their boat aground. ' They had left two men in the bo At, who, as I found afterwards, having drunk a little too > 170 Ji c^"^ '^^.^^. DELIVERANCE IN AN UNCOUTH FORAI. / much brandy, fell asleep ; however, one of them waking a little sooner than the other, and finding the boat too fast aground for him to stir ifc, hallooed oub fijr the rest, who were straggling about ; xx^on which they all soon came to the boat ; but ifc was past all their strength to launch her, the boat being very heavy, and the shore on that side being a soft oozy sand, almost like a quicksand. In this condition, like true seamen, who are, perhaps, the least of all mankind given to forethought, they gave it over, and away they strolled about the country again ; and I heard one of them say aloud to another, calling them off from the boat, "Why, let her alone. Jack, can't you 1 she'll float next tide ; " by which I was fully confirmed in the main inquiry of what country- men they were. All this while I kept myself close, not once daring to stir out of my castle, any farther than to my place of observation, near the top of the hill ; and very glad I was to think how well it was fortified. I knew it was no less than ten hours before the boat could float again, and by that time it would be dark, and I might be at more liberty to see their motions, and to hear their discourse, if they had any. In the meantime, I fitted myself up for a battle, as before, though with more caution, knowing I had to do with another kind of enemy than I had at first. I ordered Friday also, whom I had made an excellent marksman with his gun, to load himself with arms. I took myself two fowling-pieces, and I gave him three muskets. My figure, indeed, was ^-cry fierce ; I had my formidable goat-skin coat on, with the great cap I have mentioned? a naked sword, two pistols in my belt, and a gun upon each shoulder, Ifc Avas my design, as I said above, not to have made any attempt till it was dark ; btifc about two o'clock, being the heat of the day, I found, in short, they were all gone straggling into the woods, and, as I thought, were all laid down to sleep. The three poor distressed men, too anxious for their condition to get any sleep, had, however, sat down under the shelter of a great tree, at about a quarter of a mile from me, and, as I thought; out of sight of any of the rest. Upon this I resolved to discover myself to them, and learn something of their condition j immediately I marched as above, my man Friday at a good distance behind me, as formidable for his arms as I, but not making quite so staring a spectre-like figure as I did. I came as near them undiscovered as I could, and then, before any of them saw me, I called aloud to them in Spanish, " What are ye, gentle- men ? " They started w^ at the noise, but were ten times more confounded when they saw me, and the uncouth figure that I made. They made no answer at all, but I thought I perceived them just going to fly from me, when I spoke to them in English : " Gentlemen," said I, "do not be surprised at me : perhaps you may have a friend near, when you did not expect it." "He*must be sent directly from heaven, then," said one of them very gravely to me, and pulling oflf his hat at the same time ; " for our condition is past the help of man." "All help is from heaven, sir," said I : "but can yo\i put a stranger in the way to help you ? for you seem to be in some great distress. I saw you when you landed ; and when you seemed to make application to the brutes that came with you, I saw one of them lift up his sword to kill you." The poor man, with tears running do^vn his face, and trembling, looked like one astonished, returned, " Am I talking to God, or man 1 Is it a real man, or an angel ? " — " Ee in no fear about that, sir," said I ; "if God had sent an angel to relieve you, ho would have come better clothed, and armed after another manner than you see me in ; pray lay aside yoiir fears ; I am a man, an Englishman, and disj)osed to assist you ; you sec I have one servant only ; we have arms and ammunition ; tell ,ua freely, can we serve you ? What is your case ? " " Our case, sir," said he, " is too long to tell you, while our murdei-ers are so near us; but, in short, sir, I was commander of \h-"^ "h^';^ ; my men 171 lit ^A\ ROBINSON CRUSOE. ^Mh^i^^^^^^fHi^ have mutinied ftgainst me ; they have been hardly prevailed on not to murder me, and, at last, liave sot me on shore in this desolate place, with these two men with me — one my mate, the other a passenger, where we expected to perish, believing the place to be uninhabited, and know not yet what to think of it." " ^^^^ere are these brutes, your enemies ? " said I ; " do you know where they are gone ? " " There they lie, sir," said he, pointing to a thicket of trees ; " my heart trembles for fear they have seen us, and heard yo»i speak; if they have, they will certainly murder us all." "Have they any lire arms ? " saiil I. He answered, " They had only two pieces, one of which they kft in the boat" " Well then," .«5aid I, " leave the rest to me ; I see they are all asleep ; it is an easy thing to kill them all ; but shall we rather take them prisoners ? " He told me there were two desperate villains among them that it was scarce safe to show any mercy to ; but if they were secured, he believed all the rest would return to their duty. I a.skcd him which they were. He told me he could not at that distance distinguish them, but he would obey my orders in anything I would direct. "Well," says I, "let us retreat out of their view or hearing, lest they awake, and we will resolve further." So they willingly went back with me, till the woods covered us from them. " Look you, sir," said I ; " if I venture upon your deliverance, are you willing to make two conditions with me ? " He anticipated my proposals by telling me that both he and the ship, if f ecovercd, should be wholly directed and commanded by me in everything ; and if the ship was not recovered, he would live and die with me in what pai-t of the world soever I would send him ; and the two other men said the same. " Well," s;ud I, " my conditions arc but two ; first, — that while you stay on this island with me, you will not pretend to any authority here ; and if I put arms in your hands, you will, upon all occasions, give them up to me, and do no prejudice to me or mine upon this island, and in the meantime be governed by my orders ; secondly, — that if the ship is or may be recovered, you will cany me and my man to England passage free." He gave me all the assurance that the invention and faith of a man could devise that he would comj)ly with these most reasonable demands, and besides would owe his life to me, and acknowledge it upon all occasions as long as he lived " Well, then," sjiid I, " here arc three muskets for you, with powder and ball ; tell me next what you think is proper to be done." He showed all the testimony of his gratitude that he was able, but offered to be wholly guided by me. I told him I thought it was hard venturing anything ; but the best method I could think of w:\s to fire on them at once as they lay, and if any were not killed at the first volley, and offered to submit, wo might save them, and so put it wholly upon God's jn-ovidence to direct the shot. He Siiid, very modestly, that he was loth to kill them, if he could help it ; but that those two wei-e incorrigible villains, and had been the authors of all the mutiny in the ship, and if they escaped, we slmuld be undone still, for they would go on board and bring the whole ship's company, and destroy us all. " Well, then," says I, " necessity legitimates my advice, for it is the • 'lily way to sjive our lives." However, seeing him still cautious of .shedding blood, I told him they should go themselves, and manage as they found convenient. In the middle of this discourse we hciird some of them awake, and soon after we saw two of them on their feet. 1 asked him if either of them were the men who he had said Wire the heads of the mutiny ? He said, "No." " Well, then," said I, "you may let them escape ; and Providence seems to have awakened them on purpose to save them- selves. Now," .vnys I, " if the rest escape you, it is your fault." Animated with this, he took the iiuiskft I hal given him in his hand, and a pistol in his lult, and his two cora- r.ides with him, with each man a 2>iece in his hand; the two men who were with him going 1 72 ^J ?5i==:^^=:ie IBf" '^ T/'z. lr»y- "yS.^ ,^.^£ 1^ tx tT^^^ first made some noise, at which one of the seamen, who was awake, turned about, and seeing them coming, cried out to the rest ; but it was too late then, for the moment he cried out they fired — I mean the two men, the captain wisely reserving his own piece. They had so well aimed their shot at the men they knew, that one of them was killed on the spot, and the other very much wounded ; but not being dead, he started up on his feet, and called eagerly for help to the other ; but the captain, stepping to him, told him it was too late to cry for help, he should call upon God to forgive his villany, and with that word knocked him down with the stock of his musket, so that he never s2:)oke more : there were three more in the company, and one of them was slightly wounded. By this time I was come ; anfl when they saw their danger, and that it was in vain to resist, they begged for mercy. The captain told them he would spare their lives if they would give him an assurance of their abhorrence of the treachery they had been guilty of, and wou.ld swear to be faithful to him in recovering the ship, and afterwards in carrying her back to .Jamaica, from whence they came. They gave him all the protestations of their sincerity that could be desired ; and he was willing to believe them, and spare their lives, which I was not against, only I obliged him to keep them bound hand and foot while they were upon the island. While this was doing, I sent Friday with the captain's mate to the boat, with orders to secure her, and bring away the oars and sails, which they did ; and by-and-by three straggling men, that were (happily for them) parted from the rest, came back upon hearing the guns fired; and seeing the captain, who before was their prisoner, now their conqueror, they submitted to be bound also ; and so our victory was complete. ^73 ./^^> ..s^^. -2^^:^ It now rcmaiiifid that tlie onptain and I should inquire into one another's ciivr, wtfinces. I began first, nnd told him my whole histoiy, which he heard with an attcnt: even to ainazcment, — and particularly at the wonderful manner of my being furnishc-.i with provisions and ammunition ; and, indeed, as my story is a whole collection of wonders, it affected him deeply. But when he reflected from thence upon himself, and liow I seemed to have been preserved there on puqiose to save his life, the tears i-an down his face, and he could not Bi»eak a word more. After this communication was at an end, I earned l»im and his two men into my apai-tments, leading them in just where I came out, viz., at the top of the house, where I refreshed him with such pi-ovision as I had, and showed them all the contrivances I had made during my long, long inha- biting that place. All I .showe 1 tliem, all I said to them, was perfectly amazing ; but above all, the captain admired my fortification, and how perfectly I had concealed my retreat with a grove of trees, which, having been now planted near twenty year.s, and the trees growing much faster than in England, was become a little wood, so thick that it was impa.'^sablc in any part of it but at that one side where I had reserved my little winding ])assago into it. I told him this was niy castle and my residence, but that I had a seat in the countiy, as most princes have, whither I could retreat upon occasion, and I would show him that too anotlier time ; but at present our business was to consider how to recover the ship, lie agi'eed with me as to that, but told me he was pci-fectly at a loss what measures to take, for that there were still six-and-twenty hands on board, who, having entered into a cursed conspiracy, by which they had all forfeited their lives to the law, would bo hardened in it now by desperation, and would carry it on, knowing that it they were subdued they should 1)e brought to the gallows as soon as they came to England, or to any of the English colonies, and that, therefore, there would lie no attacking them with so small a number as wo were. .1 mused for some time upon what he had said, and found it was a very rational con- clusion, and that therefore something was to be resolved on very speedily, as well to draw the men on board into some snare for their surj)risc, as to prevent their landing upon us, anf brandy, and another of nun, a few biscuit-cakes, a horn of powder, and a great lump of sugar in a jiiccc of canvas (the sugar was five or six i>r)nnds) ; all which was very welcome to mc, especially the brandy and sugar, of which I had had none left for many vrars. When we had carried all these things on .shore (the oars, ma.st, sail, and rudder of the lioiit were carried away before), avo knockcil n great hole in her bottom, that if 1 hoy had conic Htrong enough to niaster us, yet they co\dd not c;UTy olF the boat. Indeed, it was not much in my thoughts that wo could be able to recover the ship ; but my view wa^^, that if they went away without the boat, f tliil not Uiuch question to make her again fit to carry us to the Leeward Islands,. ami call upon our friends the Spatn'anls in my way, for T had them still in my thoughts. »74 ^ "While we were thus in-eparing our designs, and had first, by main strength, heaved the boat upon the beach, so high that the tide would not lloafc her off at high- water mark, and besides, had broken a hole in her bottom too big to be quickly stopped, and wea-e sat down musing what we should do, we heard the ship fire a gun, and make a waft with her ensign as a signal for the boat to come on board : but no boat stirred ; and they fired several times, making other signals for the boat. At last, when all their signals and firing proved fruitless, and they found the boat did not stir, we saw them, l)y the help of my glasses, hoist another boat out, and row towards the shore ; and we found, as they approached, that there were no less than ten men in her, and that they had fii-e-arms with them. As the ship lay almost two leagues from the shore, we had a full view of them as they came, and a plain sight even of their faces; because the tide having set them a little to the east of the other boat, they rowed up under shore, to come to the same place where the other had lauded, and where the boat lay ; by this means I say, we had a full view of them, and the captain knew the persons and characters of all the men in the boat, of whom, he said, there were three very honest fellows, who, he was sure, were led into this conspiracy by the rest, being ovei-powered and frightened ; but that as for the boatswain, who it seems was the chief officer among them, and all the rest, they were as outrageous as any of the ship's crew, and were no doubt made desperate in their new enterprise ; and terribly apprehensive he was that they would be too powerful for us. I smiled at him, and told him that men in our circumstances were past the operation of fear ; that seeing almost every condition that could be was better than that which we were supposed to be in, we ought to expect that the consequence, whether death or Ufe, would be sure to be a deliverance. I asked him what he thought of the cu'cumstances of my life, and whether a deliverance were not worth venturing for. " And where, sir," said I, " is your belief of my being preserved here on purpose to save your life, which elevated you a little while ago ? For my part," said I, " there seems to be but one thing amiss in all the prospect of it." " What is that '?" says he. " AVhy, said I, '-it is, that as you say there are three or four honest fellows among them, which should be spared, had they been all of the wicked pai't of the crew, I should have thought God's providence had singled them out to deliver them into your hands ; for depend iq)on it, every man that comes ashore is our own, and shall die or live as they behave to us." As I spoke this with a raised voice and cheerful countenance, I found it greatly encouraged, him ; so we set vigoi'ously to our business. "We had, upon the fii'st appearance of the boats coming from the ship, considered of separating our prisoners ; and had, indeed, secured them efiectually. Two of them, of whom the captain was less assured than ordinary, I sent with Friday, and one of the three delivered men to my cave, where they were remote enough, and out of danger of being heard or discovered, or of finding their way out of the woods, if they could have delivered themselves ; here they left them bound, but gave them provisions ; and promised them, if they continued there quietly, to give them their liberty in a day or two ; but that if they attempted their escape, they should be put to death without mercy. They promised faithfully to bear their confijiement with i:)atience, and wei-e very thankful that they had such good usage as to have provisions and a light left them : for Friday gave them candles (such as we made om-selves) for their comfort ; and they did not know but that he stood sentinel over them at the entrance. The other prisoners had better usage ; two of them were kept pinioned, indeed, because the captain was not free to trust them ; but the other two were taken into my /s ,( pervice, upon the captain's recommendation, and upon their solemnly engaging to live and die with ns ; .so with them and the three honest men ■\ve were seven men, well nrmcd ; and I made no doubt ^ve should be able to deal well enough with the ten that wfio coming, considering that the captain had said there were three or four honest nun niiion" them also. As soon as they got to the jjlace where their otlMir boat lay, they ran tlieir boat into the beach and came all on shore, hauling the boat up after them, which I wa.s glad to see, for I was afraid they would rather luive left the boat at an anchor .si.mo distance from the shore, -with Bome hands in. her, to guard her, and .'^o we .should not be able to seize the boat. Being on shore, the first thing they did, they i-an all to their other boat ; and it was easy to si-e they were under a great surprise to find her Ktripi)cd, a<* alwre, of all that was in her, and a great hole in her bottom. After they had mu-sed awhile uj)on this, they set up two or three great shouts, hallooing with all their might, to try if they could make their companions hear ; but all was to no purpose : then they came all close in a ring, and fired a volley of their small arms, which, indeed, we heard, and the echoes made the woods ring ; but it was all one ; those in the cave, we were sure, could not hear ; and those in our keeping, though they heard it well euough, yet durst give no answer to them. They were so astonished at the surprise of this, that, as they told us afterwards, tliey resolved to go all on board again to their .ship, and let them know that the men were all murdered, and the long-boat staved ; accordingly, they immediately launched their boat again, and got all of them on board. Tlie captain was terribly amazed, and even confounded, at this, believing they would go on board the ship again, and set .sail, giving their comrades over for lost, and so he should still lose the shij), which he was in hopes we .should have recovered ; but he was quickly as much frightened the other way. They lia a good way into tho creek, and, as it were, in a harbour within the land, they took one of the throe men out of her, to go along with them, and left only two in the boat, having fastened her to tho stump of a little tree on the alioro. This was what I wished for ; and immediately leaving Friday and tho captain's mate to their business, I took the rest with mc, and crossing tho creek out of their sight, we surprised tho two men before they were aware ; one of them lying on tho .shore, ami tho other being in the boat. The fellow on shore was between sleeping and waking, and going to start \ip ; tho captain, who was foremost, ran in upon him, and knocked him down ; and then called out to him in the boat to yield, or he was a dead man. There needed very few argumentjj to j^rsuade a .'f their practices with him, and upon the further wickedness of their design, and how certiiinly it must bring them to misery and distress in the end, and perhaps to the gallows. They all appeared very penitent, and begged hard for their lives. As for that, he told them they were none of his prisoners, but the commander's of the i-sland ; that they thought they had set him on shore in a l)arren, uninhabited island; but it had pleased God so to direct them, that it was inhabited, and that the governor wa.s an Englishman ; that ho might hang them all there, if he i)leased ; but as he had given thcni all quarter, he suppo.sed he would .send them to England, to be dealt with there as justice required, except Atkins, whom ho was commanded by the governor to advise to prepare for death, for that he woidd be hanged in the morning. Though this was all a fiction of his own, yet it had its desired ellect ; Atkins fell upon lii^ knees, to l)eg the captain to intercede with the governor for his life ; and all the rest begged of him, for God's sake, that they might not bo sent to England. It now occurred to me, that the time of our deliverance was come, and that it would bn a most easy thing to bring these fellows in to bo hearty in getting possession of t' ■ fillip ; so T retired in the dark from them, th.at they might not seo what kind of a gover thoy h.id, and called the captain to me ; when I called, .as at a good distance, oncof the ni< m was ordered to speak again, and say to the captain, " Captain, tho commander calls for you;" and presently the captain rejilied, "Tell his E.xcellency, I am just comin " This more perfectly amazed them, and they all believed that the commander was just ' with his fifty men. Upon tho capti\in coming to me, I told him my project for .seizing tho ship, which he liked wonderfully well, and resolved to put it in execution next morning. But, in onler to execute it with more art, and to be secure of succes.s, I told him wo njust divitle the prisoners, and that he should go anil take Atkin.s, and two more of tho worst of them, and .send them pinioneil to the cave where tho others lay. This was committed to Friday an fa»h«>r tA them ?. ■ \. '• Wc'l." savs the captain, *^l m-.ut and • y oa say, arid see ' ' '» to bring him to consent to i ■ So i :.t of the temper "i a in, and that he verily l>c!icv they wuuid be faitiifnL However, that we might be tctt secure, I told him he sli.wl l go back again and choo?e out fire of them, and tell them that they nright sec that he did not want men, that he would ttke out those five to be his assistants, and that the governor would keep the other two and the three that were sent prisoners to the castle (my cave), as hostages for the fidelity of those five ; and that if they proved unfidthful in the execution, the five hostages should be hanged in chains alive on the shore. This looked severe, and convincetl them that the governor was in earnest ; however, they had no way left them but to accept it ; and it was now the bnsiness of the prisoners, as much as of the captain, to persuade the other five to do their duty. Onr .T-.. ,rrr>, •^pas HOW thus Ordered for the expedition : first, the captain, his mate, and ■ -^ond, then the two prisoners of the first gang, to whom, having their char... ... .. ... UiC captain, I had given their liberty, and trusted them with arms ; thinl, the other two whom I had kept till now in my bower pinioned, but, ujion the captain's motion, had now released ; fourth, these five released at last : so that they were twelve in all, besides five we kept prisoners in the cave for hostages, I asked the captain if he was willing to venture with these hands on Ixxinl the ship ; for as for me an 1 my man Friday, I did not think it w.ns proper for us to stir, ha^-ing seven men left behind ; and it was cmploNTnent enough for us to keep them asunder, and supply them with victuals. As to the five in the cave, I resolved to keep them went in twice a day to them, to supply them with necessaries ; and T I wo carry proviidons to a certain distance, where Friday was to take it. Ikh I ihowcd myself to the two hostages, it was with the captain, who told thoni V the person the governor ha.l onlercd to look after them ; and that it T-n- \]:<- {j^vcmor's pleasure they should not stir anywhere butby my direction ; that if they would be fetched into the castle, and be laid in irons : so that as we neve: them to Fee mo as governor, I now apjx-arctl as another person, and ^poke of the governor, the garrison, the castle, and the like, upon all occasions. The captain now had no difilculty before him, but to furnisli his two boats, Ftop tl: breach of one, and man them. He made his jKossenger caj^tain of one, \*-ith four oth. r mm; and himstlf, his mate, and five more, went in the other; and they contri. t^' ir business very well, for they came up to the ship about midnight. As soon as tl. within call of the .'vhip, he made Piobin.'^n hail them, and tell them they had broii, a mm and the boat, but that it was n long time before thoy had found them, ; tlu; like ; holding tliem in a ch.nt till they came to the ship's side ; when the capt and the mate entering first with their arms, immediately knocketl down the second n.: and carixntcr with the bu^t-end of their muskets, being very faitlifully seconded I. ir 1 .. :i : they secured all the re^t that were upon the main and -■■■• ■■■ ■ " began to fasten the hatches, to keep them down that were below ; when the other boat and their men, entering at the fore-chains, secured the forecastle of the ship, and the scuttle which went down into the cook-room, making three men they found there prisoners. When this was done, and all safe upon deck, the captain ordered the mate, with three men, to break into the round-house, where the new rebel cap Lain lay, who, Juiving taken the alarm, had got up, and with two men and a boy had got fire-arms in their hands j and when the mate, with a crow, split open the door, the new captain and liis men fii-ed boldly among them, and wounded the mate with a musket-ball, which broke his arm, and wounded two more of the men, but killed nobody. The mate, calling for help, rushed, however, into the round-house, wounded as he Avas, and, with his pistol, shot the new captain thi'ough the head, the bullet entering at his mouth, cominr' out again behind one of his ears, so that he never spoke a word more : upon which the rest yielded, and the ship was taken effectually, without any more lives lost. As soon as the ship was thus secured, the cajDtain ordered seven guns to be fired, which was the signal agreed upon with me to give me notice of his success, which, you may be sure, I was very glad to hear, having sat watching upon the shore for it till near two o'clock in the morning. Having thus heard the signal plainly, I laid me down ; and it having been a day of gi-eat fatigue to me, I slept very sound, till I was something surprised with the noise of a gun ; and presently starting up, I heard a man calling me by the name of " Governor ! Governor ! " and presently I knew the captain's voice ; when climbing up to the top of the hill, there he stood, and, pointing to the ship, he embraced nie in his arms. " My dear friend and deliverer," says he, " there's your ship ; for she is all yours, and so are we, and all that belongs to her." I cast my eyes to the ship, and there she rode, within little more than half a mile of the shore ; for they had^weighed hor anchor as soon as they were masters of her, and, the weather being fair, had brouglit her to an anchor just against the mouth of the little creek ; and, the tide being up, the captain had brought the pinnace in near the place where I first landed my rafts, so landed just at my door. I was at first ready to sink doAvn with the surprise ; for I saw my deliverance, indeed, visibly ])\xt into my hands, all things easy, and a large ship just ready to carry me away whither T pleased to go. At first, for some time, I was not able to answer one word ; but as he had taken me in his arms, I held fast by him, or I should have fallen to the ground. He perceived the surprise, and immediately pulled a bottle out of his pocket, and gave me a dram of cordial, which he had brought on purpose for me. After I had drunk it, I sat down upon the ground ; and though i t brought me to myself, yet it was a good while before I could speak a word to him. All this while the poor man was in as great an ecstacy as I, only not under any surprise as I was; and he said a thousand kind and tender things to me, to compose and bring me to myself; but such was the flood of joy in my breast, that it put all my spirits into con- fusion : at last it broke into tears ; and, in a little while aftex-, I recovered my speech ; then I took my turn, and embraced him as my deliverer, and we rejoiced together. I told him I looked upon him as a man sent from heaven to deliver me, and that the whole trans- action seemed to be a chain of wonders ; that such things as these vrei'e the testimonies we had of a secret hand of Providence govex-ning the world, and an evidence that the eye of an Infinite Power could search into the remotest corner of the world, and send help to the miserable whenever He pleased, I forgot not to lift up my heart ixx thankfulness to Heaven ; and what heart could forbear to bless Him, who had not only ixx a miracu- lous manner provided for one in such a wilderness, and in such a desolate condition, but froxn whom every delivei'ance must always be acknowledged to proceed ? v J Im ^. \^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. When we had talked a while, the captain told me he had brought me some little refreshments such as the ship afforded, and such as tlie wretches that had been so long Ilia masters had not jjluudered him of. Upon tliis, he called aloud to the boat, and bade his men bring the things ashore that wei-e for the governor ; and, indeed, it wa-s a i)resent as if I had been one that was not to bo carried away along with them, but as if 1 had been to dwell upon the i-sland still, and they were to go without me. First, he had In-ought me a ca.se of bottles full of excellent cordial watei-s, nix. largo bottles of Madeira wiue (the bottles held two quarts each), two pounds of excellent good tobacco, twelve good pieces of the shijj's beef, and six pieces of pork, with a bag of peas, and about a luindredweight of biscuit j he also brought me a box of sugar, a box of flour, a bag full of lemons, and two bottles of lime-juice, and abundance of other things. But besides these, and what was a thou.sand times more useful, he brought mo six now clean shirts, six very good neckcloths, two pair nf gloves, one pair of shoes, a hat, and one pair of stockings, and a very good suit of clothes of his own, which had been worn but very little : in a word, he clothed mo from head to foot. It was a very kind and agreeable present, as any ono may iinaf'ine, to one in my circumstances ; but never was anything in the world of that kiiul .so uni)lea.sant, awkward, and uneasy as it wa.s to me to wear siich clothes at their fii-at putting on. After these ceremonies were past, and after all his good things were brought into my little apartment, wo began to consult what was to be done with the j)risoners we had ; for it was worth considering whether we might venture to take them away with us or no, especially two of them, whom he knew to be incorrigible and refractory to the last degree ; and the captain said he knew they were such rogues that there was no obliging them, antl if he did carry them away, it must be in irons, as malefactoi-s, to be delivered over to justice at the lir.st English colony he could come at ; and I found that the capUiin himself whs very anxious about it. Upon this, I told him that, if he desired it, 1 would midertuke to bring the two men he spoke of to make it their own request that he should leave them upon the island. " I should be very glad of that," says the captain, "with all my heart." " Well," says I, " 1 will send for them up, and talk with thom for you." So I caused Friday and the two hostages, for they were now discharged, their comrades having performed their pi'omise ; I say, I caused them to go to the cave, and bring up the five njcn, pinioned a.s they were, to the bower, and keep them there till I came. After some time, I camo thither dressed in my new habit ; and now I was called govenjor again. Being all met, and the captain with mo, I caused the men to be l)ioui,'lit before me, and 1 told them I had got a full account of their villanous behaviour to tlie captain, and how they had run away with the ship, and were preparing to commit further robberies, but that rrovidenco had ensnared them in their own ways, and that they were fiiilen into the i>it which they had dug for otheix 1 let them know that by my direction the ship had been seized ; that sho lay now in the road ; and they might see by-aud l)yo that their new captain had received the reward of his villany, for that they might aeo him hanging at the yard-arm ; that, as to them, I wanted to know what they hud to aay why I should not execute them as jiirates, taken in the fact, as by my commission they could not doubt but I had authority to do. Ono of them answered in the name of the rest, that they had nothing to say but this, that when they were taken, the captain promised them their lives, and they humbly impltned my mercy. But I told them I knew not what mercy to show them ; for as for myself I had resolved to quit the island with all my men, and had taken i)assagc 184 m CAPTAiW HUNG AT TtiS YARD-ARM. ""^^^^"J^ with the captaiu to go for Eiiglantl ; and as for the captain, ho ihl not carry them to England, other than as prisoners in irons, to be tried for mutiny, and running away with the ship ; the consequence of which, they must needs know, would be the gallows ; so that I could not tell what was th'j best for them, unless they had a mind to take their fate in the island. If they desired that, I did not care, as I had liberty to leave it, I had some inclination to give them their lives if they thought they could shift on shore. They seemed very thankful for it, and said they would much rather venture to stay there than be carried to England to be hanged. ^ So I left it on that issue. However, the captain seemed to make some difficulty of it, as if he durst not leave them there. Upon this I seemed a little angry with the captain, and told him that they were my prisoners not his ; and, that seeing I had offered them so much favour, I would be as good as my word ; and that if he did not think fit to consent to it, I would set them at liberty, as I found them ; and if ho did not like it, he might take them again if he could catch them. Upon this, they appeared very thankful, and I accordingly set them at liberty, ami bade them retire into the woods, to the place whence they came, and I w«uld mw^.. 1^ I ivc thorn some fire-arms, some ammiuiition, and some directions how they shoidd live very wcU, if tlicy thought fit Upon this I prepared to go on board the ship ; but told tho captain I would stay that night to prepare my things and desired him to go on board in the moan time, and kcci) all right in tho ship, and send tho boat on shore next day for me ; ordering him, in tho mean time, to cause the new captain, Avho was killed, to bo hanged at tho yard-arm, that these men might see him. "When the captain was gone, 1 sent for the. men up to mo in my apartment, and entered seriously into discourse trith them of their circumstances. I told them I thought thov had made a l-iglit choice ; but if tho captain had carried them away, tlioy would certainly be hanged. I showed them the new cai»tain hanging at the yard-ariu of the.ship, and told them they had nothing less to expect. When they had all declared their willingness to stay, I told them I would lot them into tho story of my living there, and \nii them into the way of making it easy to them. Accordingly, T gave them the whole history of the place, and of my coming to it ; showed thcni my fortifications, tho way I made my bread, planted my corn, cured my grajjcs ; and, in a word, all that was neCessat-y to make them easy. I told them tho story also of tho sixteen Spaniards, that were to be expected, for whom I left a letter, :iiid made them i)romiso to treat them in coliimon with themselves. I loft them my fire-ai-pis, viz., five muskets, three fowling-pieces, and three swords. I had above a barrel and a half of powder left ; for after the first year or two I used but little, and wasted none, t gjlto them a description of the way I managed the goat^s, and directions to milk and fatten them, and to make both butter and cheese. In ^ word, I gave them every part of my story j and told them I .should prevail witli tliB'captain to leave them two barrels of gunpowder more, and some garden-.seed.'*, -frhieh 1 toldlliem 1 would liavc been very glad of Also, I gave them the bag of peas which tho captain liad brought me to eat, and bade them be sure to sow and increase them. Having done all this, I left the next day, and went on board the ship. "We ]>ropared immediately to sail, but did not weigh that night. The next morning early, two of tho five men camo swimming to the ship'.s side, and made tho most lamentable complaint of the other throe, begged to be taken into the .ship for CioJ's sake, for tliey .should 1)0 murdered, and begged tho captain to take them on board, though he hanged llioin immediaftily. Upon thi-s, the captain i)rotcnded to have no power without mo ; but after somodilHoulty, and after their solemn promises of anicndment, they were taken on board, and were, .somo time afWr, soundly whipped and pickled ; after which they proved very honest and rpiiet follows. Somo limo after this, I went with tlie boat on shore, the tide being up, with tlio things promised to the men ; to which tho captain, at my intercession, caused their chests and clothes to bo added, which they took, and were very thankful for. I also ciu-ouragod them, by telling them, that if it Lay in my way to send any vessel to take tluni in, I woidd not forget them. When I took leave of this island, T carried on board, for relique.<», the gi-eat goat-skin r:ip 1 had made, my umbrella, and one of my parrots ; also I forgot not to take the money 1 foinii-rly mentioned, which had lain by me so long useless that it was grown rusty or tarnished, and could hardly pass for .silver till it had been a little rubbed and handled, and also tho money I found in the wreck of tho Spani.sh ship. And thus I left the island, tho 10th of December, as I found by tho ship's account, in the year 1G8G, after I had been upon it eight-and-twcnty yeai"s, two months, and nineteen days ; being delivered ft'om (hi-i scoond r:)]iti\itv ll,.- v;,in,. ,1 )v of the month thnt I io-^f made my esnino in tho HE RETURNS TO ENGLAND. i lavco loiigo fl-om among the ]\f oors of Sallee. In this vessel, after a long voyage, I arri\e 1 in England the lltli of June, in tlie year 1GS7, having been thirty-five years absent. "When I came to England, I -u-as a perfect stranger to all the world, as if I had never been known there. Sly benefactor and fliithful steward, whom I had left my money in trust with, was alive, but had had great misfortunes in the world ; was become a widow the second time, and very low in the world. I made her easy as to what she o-! it ; anil that, to the best of his remembrance, he had heard that the king's third of my part, which was, it seems, granted away to some other monastery or religious house, amounted to above two liundred moidores a year : that as to my being restored to a quiet possession of it, there was no question to be made of that, my i)artner being alive to witness my title, and my name being also enrolled in the register of the country ; also ho told mc that the survivors of my two trustees were very fair, honest people, and very wealthy ; and lie believoing the works, building an ingenio, and buying .slaves, it «lid not amount to near no much as afterwards it produced : however," .s;iys the old man, "I shall give you a true account of what I have received in all, and how I have di.spo,sed of it." After a few days' further conference with this ancient friend, ho brought me an account of the first .six yeai-s' income of my plantation, signed by my partner and the merchant-trustees, being always delivered in goods, viz., tobacco in roll, and sugar in chest.s, besides rum, mohvs.sc.s, itc, which is the conseqiienco of a sugar-work; and 1 found by thi.i accovnit, that every year the income considerably increased ; but, i\s above, the disbursements being large, the sum at fii-st was small ; however, the old man let me see that he was debtor to mo four hundreil and seventy moidores of gold, besides .sixty chests of sugar, and fifteen double rolls of tobacco, which were lost in his ship ; he having been .shipwrecketl coming homo to Lisbon, about eleven ycai-s after my leaWng the jtlace. The good man then began to complain of his misfortunes, and how he h.id been obliged to make use of my money to recover his losses, and biiy him a share in a new ship. " However. ni\ old friend," says he, "yon shall not want a sui>ply in your necessity; iS8 fi and as soon as my sou returns, you .sluiU be fully «itLificcl.' Uj»ou this he pulls out un old iM)ucl), luul gives nic one luiuclred and sixty Portugal nioidorcii iu gold ; and giving mo the writings of his title to the ship, which his sou >vits gone to the Bi-azils in, of which he was quarter-part owner, and his sou another, he puts them both in my hands for security of the rest. I was too much moved with the honesty and kindness of the poor niiui to be able to liCixr this ; and remembering what he had done for me, how ho had taken me lip at sea, and how generously he had used me on all occasions, and particularly how sincere a friend he was now to me, J could hardly refrain wcei)iug at what he had said to me; therefore, first, I asked him if his circumstances admitted him to spare so much money at that time, and if it would not straiten him ? lie told me he could not say but it might straiten him a little ; but, however, it was my money, aud I might want it more than he. Everything the good man said was full of affection, and I could hardly rclV.iin from tears while he spoke ; in short, I took one hundred of the moidores, and called for a pen and ink to give him a receipt for them ; then I returned him the rest, and told him it" ever I had possession of the plantation I would return the other to him also (as, indeed, I afterwards did); and that as to the bill of sale of his part in his son's ship, I would not take it by any means ; but that if I wanted the money, 1 found he wivs honest enough to pay me ; and if I did not, burcamo to rcceiNC what he gave me reason to exiJect, 1 would never have a penny more from liim. When this was past, the old man began to ask me if he should put me into a method to make my claim to my plantation. I told him I thought to go over to it myself. He said I might do so if 1 jilcased ; but that, if I did not, there M'ere wajs enough to secure my right, and inmicdiately to ai)propriato the profits to my use : and as then- were shijts in the river of Lisbon just ready to go away to Brazil, he made me enter my name in a public register, with his aflidavit, affirming, upon oath, that 1 was alive, and that I was tho same person who took up the land for the planting the said plantation at first. Tliis being regularly attested by a notaiy, and a i)roeuratiou affixed, he directed mo to send it, with a letter of his writing, to a merchant of his anpiainfaucr ut the place; ami then proposed my staying with him till an account came of tlu return. Never was anything more honourable than the procecdiiigs upon this procuration ; for in less than seven months I received a krgc i)acket from the survivors of my trastces the na-rehants, for whoso account I went to sea, in which wcix* tiie following particiUar letters and i)apers inclosed.. First, there ww the account-current of the produce of my iUrm or plantation, from tho year when their father had balanced with my old Portugal captain, being for six ycai-s ; the balance ajipeareil to be ono thousivnd one hundred and seventy-four moidores in my favour. Secondly, there Wjuh the account of four years more, while they kept the ellects in tiieir hanils, belbro the government ehiimed the administration, as being the etlccta of a person not to hu found, which they called civil death ; and tho balance of this, the value t»f the i.lauUtion increasing, amounted to iiineteei#thousand four hundred and forty-.-iv crus;uloe.s U-ing about threo thousand tW(j hundred and forty moidores. riurvlly, there wjw the Trior of tin; Augiustines' account, who had ixceivcd the \n'o(iii for ubo^ o fourteen years ; but not befng to account for what was di.si)osed of by tho hos])it,'iI, veiy hnne.itly deelanjd ho had eight huniked and seventy-two moidores not '90 ^^^^i-^r^^ _^ 1^ NEWS FRO}, I THE r>RAZILS. distributed, wliich l:e acknowledged to my account : as to the king's part, that refunded nothing. Tliero was clzo a letter of my partner's, congratulating me very afTcctionatcly upon my Ijcing alive, giving me an account how the estate was improved, and what it produced a year; with the particulars of tho number of squares or acres that it contained, how planted, how many slaves there were upon it : and making two-and-twenty crosses for lilcssings, told me ho had said so many Ave Marias to thank the Blessed Vir<^in that I was alive ; inviting me very passionately to come over and take possession of my own ; and, in the mean time, to give him orders to whom he should deliver my effects, if I did not come, myself; concluding with a hearty tender of his friendship, and that of hisfomily ; and sent me, as a present, seven fine leopards' skins, which he had, it seems, received from Africa, by some other ship that he had sent thither, and which, it seems, had made a better voyage than I. He sent me also five chests of excellent sweetmeats, and a hundred pieces of gold uncoined, not quite so large as moidores. By the same fleet, my two merchant-trustees shipped me one thousand two hundred chests of suf^ar ei^-ht hundred rolls of tobacco, and the rest of the whole account in gold. I might well say now, indeed, that the latter end of Job was better than the be^'in- ning. It is impossible to express the flutterings of my very heart when I looked over tiiese letters, and especially when I found all my wealth about me ; for as the Brazil ships come all in fleets, the same ships which brought my letters brou^-ht my o-oods : and the effects were safe in the river before the letters came to my hand. In a word, I turned pale, and grew sick ; and, had not the old man run and fetched me a cordial, I believe the sudden surprise of joy had overset nature, and I had died upon the spot : nay, after that, I eontimied very ill, and was so some hours, till a physician being sent for, and something of the real cause of my illness being known, he ordered me to let blood ; after which I had relief, and grew well : but I verily believe, if I had not been eased by the vent given in that manner to the spirits, I should have died. I was now master, all on a sudden, of above fifty thousand pounds sterling in money, and had an estate, as I might well call it, in the Brazils, of above a thousand pounds a year, as sure as an estate of lands in England : and, in a word, I Wiis in a condition which I scarce knew how to understand, or how to compose myself for the enjoyment of The first thing I did was to recompense my original benefactor, my good old captain, who had been first charitable to me in my distress, kind to me in the beginning, and honest to me at the end. I showed him all that was sent to me ; I told him that, next to the providence of Heaven, which disposes all things, it was owing to him ; and that it now lay on me to reward him, which I would do a hundred-fold : so I first returned to him the hundred moidores I had received of him ; then I sent for a notary and caused him to draw up a general release or discharge from the four hundred and seventy moidores, which he had acknowledged he owed me, in the fullest and firmest manner possible. After which, I caused a procui-ation to be drawn, empowering him to be the receiver of the annual profits of my plantation ; and appointing my partner to account him, and make the returns, by the usual fleets, to him in my name ; and by a clause in the end, made a grant of one hundi-ed moidores a year to him during his life, out of the effects, and fifty moidores a year to his son after him, for his life : and thus I requited my old man. I had now to consider which way to steer my course next, and what to do with the estate that Pro\ddence had thus put into my hands ; and indeed, I had more care upon my head now than I had in my silent state of life in the island, where I Avanted nothing 191 f ii^^gr ^iP^ RODIXSON CRUSOE. but wlmt I liad, and lunl notliing but what I wanted ; wliereas I had now a great charge upon me, and my business was how to secure it. I had not a cave now to hide my money in, or a phico wliere it might lie without lock or key, till it grew mouldy and tarnished before anybody would meddle with it ; on the contrary, I knew not where to put it, or whom to trust with it. My old patron, the captain, indeed, was honest, and that was the only refugo I Iiad. In the next place, my interest in the Bi-azils seemed to summon mo thither; but now I could not tell how to think of going thither till I had settled my affairs, and left my effects in some safe hands behind me. At first I thought of my old friend the widow, who I knew was honest, and would be just to me ; but then she was in years, and but poor, and, for aught I knew, might be in debt ; so that, in a word, I had no way but to go back to England myself, and take my effects with me. It was .some months, however, before I resolved upon this ; and therefore, as I had rewarded the old captain fully, and to his satisfaction, who had been my former bene- factor, «o I began to think of my poor widow, whose husband had been my first bene- factor, and she, while it was in her power, my faithful steward and instructor. So, the first thing I did, I got a merchant in Lisbon to write to his correspondent in London, not only to pay a bill, but to go find her out, and cany her, in money, a hundred pounds from rae, and to talk with her, and comfort her in her poverty, by telling her she .should, if T lived, have a further supply : at the same time, I sent my two sisters in the country !i liundred pounds each, they being, though not in want, yet not in very good circum- stances ; one having been married and left a widow ; and the other having a husband not so kind to lier as ho should be. But, among all my relations or acquaintances, I could not yet pitch u]»on one to whom I durst commit the gro.ss of my stock, that I might go away to the Brazils, and leave things safe behind me ; and this greatly per- plexed nie. I had once a mind to have gone to the Jh-azils, and have settled my.self there, for I was, as it were, naturalised to the place ; but I had some little scruple in my mind about rfligion, which insensibly drew mo back, of which I shall say more presently. How- ever, it was not religion that kept me from going there for the j^rc'sent ; and as I had j made no scniplo of being openly of the religion of the country all the while I was ^ among them, so neither did I yet ; only that, now and then, having of late thought more of it than formerly, when I ])egan to think of living and dying among thorn, I began to regret my having ]trofessed my.self a Papist, and thought it niiglit not In- the best religion to die with. I'.ut, as 1 have said, this vrns not the main thing that kept me from going to the I'.ra/.ils, l)ut that really I did not know with whom to leave my effects behind mo ; .<;o I resolved at last to go to England with them, where, if I arrived, I concluded I .should make .some ac(juaintance, or find some relations, that would be faithful to me ; and, accordingly, 1 prejiared to go to England with all my wealth. In order to j)repare things for my going liome, 1 first (the Brazil fleet being just going away) resolved to give answei-s suitable to the just and faithful account of things I had from thence ; and, first, to tlio Prior of St, Augustine, I wrote a letter full of thanks for his just dealing.s, and tho offer of the eight hundred and seventy-two moi- dores which were undisposed of, which I desired might bo given, five Inmdrcd to the monaster}', and throe hundred and Hoventy-two to the poor, as the i)rior .should dinct ; desiring tho good jiadre's pi-ayei-s for me, and th(> like. I wrote next a letter of tlianks to my two trustees, with all the acknowleleasant and fruitful provinces of Languedoc and Gascouy, all green and v-;iy to pass still. We were a little uneasy, however, when wc found it snowed one whole day and a iii;3'ht so fast that wo could not travel ; but he bid us be easy ; we should soon be past it all : wo found, indeed, that wo began to descend every day, and to come more north than before ; and so, depending upon our guide, we went on. It was about two hours before night, when, our guide behig .something before us, and nut just in sight, out rushed three monstrous wolves, and after them a bear, from a hollow way adjoining to a thick wood ; two of the wolves flew upon the guide, and, had he been far bt-furo us, he would havo been devoured before we could have helped him ; one of thenj fitstencd upon his horse, and the other attacked the man with such violence that he had not time or jjresence of mind enough to draw his pistol, but hallooed and cried out to us most lustily. !My man Friday being next me, I bade him ride up, and see what was the matter. As soon as Friday came in sight of the man, he liallooed out as loud as the other, " Oh, master 1 Oh, master !" Ijut like a bold fellow, rode directly up to the man, and with his pistol shot the wolf that attacked him in the head. It was happy for the poor man that it was my man Friday; for, having been used to such creatures in his countiy, ho had no fear upon him, but went close up to him and shot Jiim ; .vhereas, any other of us would havo fired at a farther distance, and have perhaps either mi.s.sed the wolf, or endangered shooting the man. But it wjxs enough to havo terrified a Iwlder man than I; and, indocil, it alarnud all our company, when, with the noise of Friday's pistol, wo heard on both sides the most dismal howling of wolves ; and the noise, redoul>led by tho echo of the mountain.s, that it was to us as if there had been a i)rodigiou3 number of them ; and perhaps there was not such a few as that wo had no cause of apprehension ; however, as Friday had killed this wolf, tho other that had fastened upon the horse left him immediately, and fled, without doing him any damage, having happily fastened upon his head, where the bosses of the bridle had stuck in his teeth. But the man was most hurt ; for the raging cnature had bit him twice, once in the arm, and the other time a little above his knee; ho was just, as it were, tumbling down by the ilisorder of his horee, when Friday came up and .shot tho wolf It is ciisy to suppose that at tho noise of Friday's jtistol wo all na-ndrd our i>ace,and ro ; so we all resolved to fiiv at once upon tho bear, and deliver my man ; though I was angry at him heartily for bringing the bear back upon us, when Jie was going about liis own bitsiaess another way ; and especially I was angry that h-; had turned tho bear upon us, and then run away ; and I calknl out, " You dog ! " sj;id I, "is tliis your making us laugh 1 Come away, and take your horse, that we may shoot tho creature." ITo hoiu'd mo> and cried out, " No shoot, no shoot ; stand still, you get much laugh ; " and as the nimble creature ran two feet for the beast's one, ho turned on a sudden on one side of us, and seeing a great oak-tree fit for his pui-poso, ho beckoned us to follow; and doubling his pace, he got nimbly up the tree, Uiyiug his gim down upon tho ground, at about five or six yards from the bottom of tho tree, 'i'he boar soon came to the tree, and we followed at a distance ; tho first thing he dill, he stopped at the gun, smelled at it^ but let it lie, and ui) he scrambles into the ti-ee, climbing like a cat, though .so monstrous heavy. I was ani.-ued at the folly, as I thought it, of my man, uud could not for my life see anything to laugh at yet, till seeing the bear get up the tree, wo all rode near to him. i 1/ FRIDAY AFFORDS US SOME DIVERSION. "Wlieu we came to the tree, there was Friday got out to the small end of a large linib of the tree, and the bear got aboiit half way to him. As soon as the bear got out to that part where the limb of the tree was weaker — " Ha ! " says he to us, " now you S30 mc teachee the bear dance;" so he began jumping and shaking the bough, at which the bear began to totter, but stood .still, and began to look behind him, to see how he should get biick j then, indeed, we did laugh heartily. But Friday had not done with him by a great deal ; when seeing him stand still, he called out to him again, as if he had supposed the bear could speak English, " What, you no come farther ? pray you come farther ; " so he left jumping and shaking the bough ; and the bear, just as if he had understood what he said, did come a little farther ; then he began jumping again, and the bear stopped again. We thought now was a good time to knock him on the head, and called to Frida,y to stand still, and we would shoot the bear ; but he cried out eax'nestly, " Oh, pray ! oh, pray ! no shoot, me shoot by and then ; " he would have .said by-and-by. However, to shorten the story, Friday danced so much, and the bear stood so ticklish, that we had laughing enough indeed, but still could not imagine what the feilcw would do ; for fir.st we thought he dej)ended tipon shaking the bear off ; and we found the bear was too cunning for that too ; for he would not go out far enough to be thrown down, but clung fast with his great broad claws and feet, so that we could not imagine what would be the end of it, and what the jest would be at last. But Friday put us out of doubt qnickly : for seeing the bear cling fast to the bough, and that he would not be persuaded to come any farther, " Well, well," says Friday, "you no come farther, me go ; you no come to me, me come to you ; " and upon this he went out to the smaller end of the bough where it would bend Avith his weight, and gently let himself down by it, sliding down the bough till he came near enough to jump down on his feet, and away he ran to his gun, took it VLY>, and stood still. " Well," said I to him, " Friday, what Avill you do now 1 Why don't jon shoot him ? " — " No shoot," says Friday, *• no yet ; me shoot now, me no kill ; me stay, give yon one more laugh : " and, indeed, so he did, as yo\i will see presently ; for when the bear saw his enemy gone, he came back from the bough where he stood, bxit did it veiy cautioitsly, looking behind him every step, and coming backward till he got into the body of the tree ; then, with the same hinder end fore- most, he came down the tree, grasping it with his claws, and moving one foot at a time, very leisurely. At this juncture, and just befoi-e he could set his hind feet upon the ground, Friday stepped up close to him, clapped the muzzle of his piece into his ear, and shot him dead as a stone. Then the rogue turned about to see if we did not laugh ; and when he saw we were pleased, by our looks, he began to laugh very loud. " So we kill bear in my country," says Friday. " So you kill them ; " says I ; "why, you have no guns." — "No," says he, "no gun, biit shoot great much long arrow." This was a good diver-sion to us ; but we were still in a wild place, and our guide very much hint, and what to do we hardly knew ; the howling of wolves ran much in my head ; and, indeed, except the noise I once heard on the shore of Africa, of which I have said something already, I never heard anything that filled mo with so much horror. These things, and the approach of night, called xis off, or else, as Friday would have I ad us, we should certainly have taken the skin of this monstrous creature off, which was worth saving ; but we had near three leagues to go, and our guide hastened us ; so we left him, and went forward on our journey. The ground was still covered with snow, though not so deep and dangerous as on tlie mountains ; and the ravenous creatures, as we heard afterwards, were come down into the forest and ])lain country, pressed by hunger, to seek for food, and had done a great (leal of mischief in the villages, where they surprised the country people, killing a gi-eat many of their sheep and horses, and some people too. "We had one dangerous i>lace to pass, and our guide told us, if there were more wolves in the country we should find thorn there ; and this was a small plain surrounded with woods on every side, and a long narrow defile, or lane, which wo were to pass to get through the wood, and then we should come to the village where we were to lodge. It was within half an hour of sunset when we entered the wood, and a little after sunset when we came into the plain : we met with nothing in the first wood, except that in a little plain within the wood whicli was not above two furlongs over, we saw five great wolves cross the road, full speed, one after another, as if they had been in chase of some prey, and had it in view ; they took no notice of us, and were gone out of sight in a few moments. UiK)n this, our giiide, who, by the way, was but a faint-hearted fellow, bid us keep in a ready ])osture, for ho believed there were more wolves a-coming. We kept our arms ready and our eyes about us ; but we saw no more wolves till we came through that wood, which was near half a league, and entered the plain. As soon as we came into the plain, we had occasion enough to look about us : the first object we met with was a dead horse ; that is to say. a poor horse which the wolves had killed, and at least a dozen of them at work, we could not say eating him, but picking his bones rather; for they had eaten up all the flesh before. "We did not think fit to disturb them at their feast, neither did they take much notice of us. Friday would have let fly at them, but I would not sufler him by any means; for I found we were like to have more business ujion our hands than we were aware of We had not gone half over the plain, when we l>egan to hear the wolves howl in the wood on our left in a frightftd manner, and presently after we saw about a hundred coming on directly towards us, all in a body, and most of them in a line, as regidarly as an army di-awn up by experienced ofReers. I scarce knew in what manner to receive them, but found to draw oui-selvcs in a clo.-e line was the only way; so we formed in a moment; but that wc might not have to > mudi interval, I ordered that only every other man should fire, and that theothei-s, who liail not fired, should stand ready to give them a second volley immediately, if they continued to advance ujiou us ; and t'ken that those who had fired at first, should n«>t jtrotend to load their fusees again, but stand ready, every one with a pistol, for we wer.' all ui'ined with a fusee and a pair of pistols each man ; .so we were, by this method, able to iiio six volley.i, half of us at a time : however, at present we had no necessity ; fur u])ou firing the first volley, the enemy made a full stop, being terrified as well with the noi.sc as with the fire. Pour of them being shot in the head, drojiped ; several others were wounded, anil went bleeding olT, i\s w* could see by the snow. I fouml they stopj.cd, but did not immediately retreat ; whereupon, remembering that I had been told that the fiercest creatures were terrified at the voice of a man, I caused all the comi>any to halloo as loud as wo could ; and I found the notion not altogether mistaken ; for ujion our shout tliey began to retire and turn about. 1 then ordeivd a second volh-y to be firi'd in their n'ar, whioh put thenj to the gallop, and away they went to the woods. This gave us leisure to charge our pieces again ; and that we might lose no time, wo kept going ; but wo had but little more than loaded our fusees, and jnit ourselves in readiness, when wo heard a ten-ible uoi^e in the sjinu^ wocul on our left, only that it was farther onward, the same way wo were to go. The night was coming on, and the light b(>gan to bo dusky, which made it the worse on id(> ; l>ut the noise incrensing, we could ejvsily perceive that it was lli.how lint,' and 200 ?^^?^^ lo KuivlNSON CRUSOE. yelling of tlioso liellish creiitures ; and, ou a sudden, we perceived two or three troojis of wolves, one ou our left, ouo bcliind us, and one in our front, so that we seemed to be Kurroundcd with them : however, as they did not fall upon us, we kejit our way forward, JI.S fast aa wo could make our horses go, wliich, the way Leing very rough, was only a "ond hard trot. In this nianner, we came in view of the entrance of a wood, through which we were to pass, at the farther side of the plain ; but we were greatly surprised when, coming nearer the Inne or pass, w o saw a confused number of wolves standing just at the entrance. On a sudden, at another opening of the wood, i\-e heard the noise of a gun, and looking that way, out rushed a horse, with a saddle and a bridle on him, flying like the wind, and sixteen or seventeen wolves after him full .speed Indeed, the hoi-so had the advantage of them ; but as we supposed that he could not hold it :it tluit rate, we doubted not but they would get up with him at last : and no question but they did. But here wo had a ipost horrible sight ; for, riding up to the entrance Avherc tho horse came out, we found tho carcases of another hoi-so and of two men, devoured 1 ly the ravenous creatures ; and one of tho men was no doubt the .same whom we lieavJ fire tho gun, for there lay a gun just by him fired oft'; but as to the man, his head and the upi)er part of his body were eaten up. This filled us with horror, and wo knew not what coui-se to take ; but tho creatures resolved us soon, for they gathered about us presently, in hopes ofjjrey ; and I verily believe there were three hundred of them. It haj'pencd, very much to our advantage, that at the entrance into the wood, but a little way from it, there lay some largo timber-trees, which had been cut down the summer before, and I .supjjose lay there for carriage. I drew my little troop in among those trees, and i)lacing oui'selves in .1 line l)ehind one long tree, I advised them all to alight, and kcej)ing that tree before us for a breastwork, to stand in a triangle, or three front.s, inclosing our horses in tho centre. We did so, and it was well wo did ; for never was n more furious charge th.an the creatures made upon us in this place. They came on us with a growling kind of a noise, and mounted tho piece of timber, whieli, as I said, v.as our breastwork, as if they were only rushing upon their jn-oy ; and tliis fury of theirs, it scenifi, was principally occasioned by their seeing our horses behind us, which was i' prey they aimed at, I ordered our men to fire as before, every other mau ; autl t! took their aim so sure that indeed they killed several of the wolves at tho fiiut volL I if : wo dispatched these in an instant, and the rest vcre so frightened with tbi" light, which the night — for it wn«? now very near dark — made more terrible, t!i;it they , 202 i A HARD TUSSLE, AND VICTORY. drew back a little ; upon which I ordered our last pistols to be fired off in one volley, and after that we gave a shout ; iipon this the wolves turned tail, and wc sallied immediately upon near twenty lame ones that we found struggling on the ground, and fell to cutting them with our swords, which answered our expectation, for the crying and howling they made was better understood by their fellows ; so that they all fled and left us. We had, first and last, killed about three-score of them, and had it been ilaylight we had killed many more. The field of battle being thus cleareJ, we made forward again, for we had still near a league to go. We heard the ravenous creatiires howl and yell in the woods as we went several times, and sometimes we fancied we saw some of them ; but the snow dazzling our eyes, we were not certain. So in about an ho-ar more we came to the town where we were to lodge, which we found in a terrible fright, and all in arms ; for, it seems, that the night before, the wolves and some bears had broke into the village, and put them in such terror, that they were obliged to keep guard night and day, but especially in the night, to preserve their cattle, and indeed their people. The next morning our guide was so ill, and his limbs swelled so much with the rankling of his two wounds, that he could go no fixrther ; so we were obliged to take a new guide here, and go to Tou.louse, where we found a warm climate, a fruitful, pleasant country, and no snow, no wolves, nor anything like them ; but when we told our story at Toulouse, they told us it was nothing but what v/as ordinary in the great forest at the foot of the mountains, especially when the snow lay on the ground ; but they in- quired much what kind of a guide we had got, who would venture to bring us that way in such a severe season, and told us it was surprising we were not all devoured. When we told them how we placed ourselves and the horses in the middle, they blamed us exceedingly, and told us it was fifty to one but we had been all destroyed, for it was the sight of the horses v^hicli made the wolves so furious, seeing their prey, and that at other times they are really afraid of a gun ; but being excessively hungry, and raging on that account, the eagerness to come at the horses had made them senseless of danger ; and that if we had not by the continued fire, and at last by the stratagem of the train of powder, mastered them, it had been great odds but that we had been torn to pieces ; whereas, had we been content to have sat still on horseback, and fired as horsemen, they would not have taken the horses so much for their oavu, when men were on their baclcs, as otherwise ; and, withal, they told us that at last, if we had stood all together, and left our horses, they would have been so eager to have devoured them, that we might have come off safe, especially having our firearms in. our hands, and being so many in nuuiber. For my part, I was never so sensible of danger in my life ; for, seeing above three hundred devils come roaring and open-mouthed to devour us, and having nothing to shelter us or retreat to, I gave myself over for lost ; and, as it was, I believe I shall never care to cross those mountains again j I think I would much rather go a thousand leagues by sea, though I was sure to meet with a storm once a week. I have nothing uncommon to take notice of in my passage through France — nothing but wliat other travellers have given an account of with much more advantage than I can. I travelled from Toulouse to Paris, and without any considerable stay came to Calais, and landed safe at Dover the 14th of January, after having a sevei-e cold season to travel in. I was now come to the centre of my travels, and had in a little time all my ncAV discovered estate safe about me, the bills of exchange which I brought with me havinj:'; been very currently paid. jMy principal guide and pri^y counsellor was my good ancient v\ddovv^, who, in -- --., 20- " #« ' ^ "- ^ ^^^: ROBINSON CRUSOE. ) I i gratitude for the money I had sent her, thought no pains too much nor care too great to emj)loy for me ; and I trusted lier so entirely with everytliing, that I was perfectly easy as to the security of my effects ; and, indeed, I was very li;ij)py from the beginning, and now to the end, in the unspotted integrity of this good gentlewoman. And now, having resolved to dispose of my plantation in the Ih-azils, I wrote to my old friend at Lisbon, who having offered it to the two merchants, the sunivors of my tru.stQes, who lived in the Brazils, they accepted the offer, and remitted thii-ty- three thousand pieces of eight to a correspondent of theirs at Lisbon to pay for it. In return, I signed the instrument of sale in the form which they sent from Lisbon, and sent it to my old man, who sent me the bills of exchange for thirty-two thousand eight liundred i)ieces of eight for the estate, reserving the payment of one hundred nioidores a year to him (the old man) during his life, and fifty moidores afterwards to his son for his life, which I had ])romised them, and which the ])lantation was to make good as a rent-charge. And thus I have given the first part of a life of fortune and adventure — a life of Pnjvidence's chequer-work, and of a variety which the world will seldom be able to show the like of — beginning foolishly, but closing much more happily tlian any part of it ever gave me leave so much as to hope for. Any one would think that in this state of complicated good fortune I was past running any more hazards ; and so, indeed, I had been, if other circumstances had concurred ; but I was inured to a wandering life, had no family, nor many relations ; nor liowever rich, had I contracted much acquaintance ; and though I had sold my estate in tliij Drazils, yet I could not keep that country o\it of my head, and had a great mind to bo upon the wing again ; especially I could not resist the strong inclination I had to see my island, and to know if the poor Spaniards were in being there. My true friend, the widow, earnestly dissuaded me from it, and so far prevailed with me, that for almost seven yeai-s .she prevented my running abroad, during which time I took my two nephews, the children of one of my brothers, into my care; the eldest, having .scmiething of his own, I bred up as a gentleman, and gave him a settlement of some addition to his estate after my decease. The other I placed with the capti\iu of a ship ; and after five years, finding him a sensible, bold, enterprising young fellow, I put him into a good ship, and sent him to .sea; and this young fellow afterwards drew me in, as old as I was, to farther adventures myself. In the mean time, I in jtart settled myself here ; for, first of all, I married, and that not rilher to my disadvantage or di.ssatisfactiou, and had three childtTU, two sons and one daugliter ; but my wife dying, and my nephew coming home with good success from a voyage to Spain, my inclination to go abroad, and his importunity, prevailed, and engaged me to go in his .ship as a private trader to the East Indies ; this was in the year 1(J9 I. In this voyage I visited my new colony in the island; saw my successors the Spani..rds ; had the whole story of their lives, and of the villains I left there ; how at first they insulted tlio poor Spaniards ; liow they afterwards agreed, dis;igrced, united, separato'^.^ ,^JefSm Here I stayed about twenty days — left them supplies of all necessary things, and particularly of arms, powder, shot, clothes, tools, and two workmen, which I bx-auglit from England with me — viz., a carpenter and a smith. Besides this, I shared the lands into parts with them, reserved to myself the property of the whole, but gave them such parts respectively as they agreed on ; and having settled all things with them, and engaged them not to leave the place, I left them there. From thence I touched at the Brazils, from whence I sent a bark, which I bought there, with more people to the island ; and in it, besides other supplies, I sent seven women, being such as I found proper for service, or for wives to such as would take them. As to the Englishmen, I pi-omised them to send them some women from England, with a good cargo of necessaries, if they would apply themselves to planting — which I after- wards could not perform. The fellows proved very honest and diligent after they were mastered, and had their properties set apart for them. I sent them, also, from the Brazils, five cows, three of them being big with calf, some sheep, and some hogs, which when I came again were considerably increased. But all these things, with an account how three hundred Caribbces came and invaded 205 |1 tliiiii, and ruined their plantations, and how they fought with that whole number twice ami were at first defeated, and one of them killed ; but, at last, a storm desti-oying their enemies' canoes, they famished or destroyed almost all the rest, and renewed and ncovercd the possession of their plantation, and still lived ui)0u the island — all theae things, with some very sui'j)rising incidents in some new adventures of my own, for ten ycai-s more, I shall gi%c a further account of in the Second Part of my history. Pi "t PART II. 'HAT homely proverb, used on .so many occasions in England, viz., "Thnt what is bred in the bone vriW not go out of the flesh," was never more verified than in the story of my life. Any one would think that after thirty-five yeai-s' affliction, and a variety of unhappy circumstances, which few men, if any, ever went through before, and after near seven yeai-s of peace and enjoyment in the fiilncss of all things, grown old, and when, if ever, it might bo allowed mc to have had experience of every state of niidcllu life, and to know which was most adapted to make a man completely happy ; I say, after all this, any one would have thought that the native jiropensity to i'aml)ling, which I gave an account of in my first setting out in the world to have been so predominant in my thoughts, should be w. out, the volatile ]iart be fully evacuated, or at least condensed, and I might, at sixty ' years of age, have been a little inclined to stay at home, and have done venturing and fortune any more. Nay, farther, the common motive of foreign adventures was taken away in me, I had no fortune to im\ko ; T had iiothiog to seek : if I had gained ten thousand pour I bad been no richer ; for I had alreaxly sufficient for me, and for those I had to leave it to ; and what I had was visibly increasing ; for having no great family, I could lut spend the income of what I had, unless I woidd set up for an expensive way of living, such as a great family, servants, crpiiprvge, gaiety, and the like, which were things I had no notion of, or inclination to ; ho that I had nothing, indeed, to do but to sit still, and fully enjoy what I had got, and see it increase daily upon my hands. Yet all these things had no effect tipon me, or at least not enough to resist the strong inclination I had to go abroad again, which h ung about me like a chronical distcmpci*. In particular, the desire of seeing my now plantation in the island, and the colony I left there, ran in my hp:.d continually. I dref med of it jill night, and my imagination ran upon it all day ; it wjus uppermost in all my tlujughts ; anil my fancy worked so steadily and sti-ongly u[>nn it, that 1 talked of it in !ny sleci) ; in short, nothing could remove it out of my imml : it even broke so violently into nJl my dis'coui-ses that it made my conversation (insome, for 1 could talk of nothing else ; all my discourj^e ran into it, even to iiajHrtinence ; and 1 saw it mybolf. 1 have often heard persons of gootl judgment say, that all the stir people make in the world about ghosts and apparitions is owing to the strength of imagination, and the powerful operation of fancy in their muuls ; that thci-o is no such thing as a spirit ap|)caring, or a ghost walking; that people's poring aflcctionately upon tlie j.ast thfir deceased friends, so realises it to them, that they are capable of -o6 S^^^feguc^ PICTURES OF IMAGINATION. "^^^-t Amcying, upon some cxtraordiuaiy circumstconces, that tliey see them, talk to them, and are answered by them, when, in truth, there is nothing Lut shadow and vapour in the thing, and they really know nothing of the matter. For my part, I know not to this hour whether there are any such thin"-s as real apparitions, spectres, or walking of people after they are dead ; or whether there is anything in the stories they tell us of that kind more than the product of vapours, sick minds, and wandering fancies; but this I, know, that my imagination worked up to such a height, and brought me into suck excess of vapours, or what else I may call it, that I actually supposed myself often upon the spot, at my old castle, behind the trees • saw my old Spaniard, Friday's father, and the reprobate sailors I left upon ltd island • nay, I fancied I talked with them, and looked at them steadily, though I Avas broad awake, as at persons just before me ; and this I did till I often frightened myself with the images my fancy represented to me. One tijne, in my sleep, I had the villany of the three pirate sailors so lively related to me by the first Spaniard and Friday's father, that it was surprising ; they told me how they barbarously attempted to murder all the Spaniards, and that they set fire to the provisions they liad laid iip, on purpose to distress and starve them ; things that I had never heard of, and that, indeed, were never all of them true in fact : but it was so warm in my imagination, and so realised to me that to the hour I saw them, I could not be persuaded but that it wasj or would be true • also how I resented it, when the Spaniard complained to me ; and how I brouf^ht them to justice, tried them, and ordered them all three to be hanged. What there was really in this shall be seen in its place ; for kowever I came to form such things in my dream and what secret converse of spirits injected it, yet there was, I say, much of it true. I own that this dream had notliing in it literally and specifically tnie ; but the f^eneral part was so true — the base, villanous behaviour of these three hardened rogues was such, and had been so much worse than all I can describe, that the dream had too much simihtude of the fact ; and as I would afterwards have punished them severely, so if I had hanged them all, I had been much in the right, and even should have been justified both by the laws of God and man. But to return to my story. In this kind of temper I lived some years ; I had no enjoyment of my life, no pleasant hours, no agreeable diversion, but what had something or otLer of this in it ; so that my wife, who saw my mind wholly bent upon it, told me very seriously one night, that she believed there was some secret, powerful impulse of Providence upon, me, which had detennined me to go thither again ; and that she found nothing hindered my going, but my being engaged to a wife and children. She told me that it was true she could not think of parting with me : but as' she was assured that if she was dead it would be the first thing I would do ; so, as it seemed to her that the tiling was determined above, she would not be the only obstruction ; for, if I thought fit and resolved to go [Here she found me very intent - upon her words, and that I looked very earnestly at her, so that it a Httle disordered her, and she stopped. I asked her why she did not go on, and say out what she was going to say. But I perceived that her heart was too full, and some tears stood in her eyes.] "Speak out, my dear," said I; "are you willing I should go?" "No," says she, very afiectionately, " I am far from willing ; but if you are resolved to go," says she, " nxther than I would be the only hindrance, I will go with you ; for though I think it a most pi-eposterous thing for one of your years, and in your condition, yet, if it mxist be," said she, again weeping, "I would not leave you ; for, if it be of Heaven, you must do it ; there is no resisting it ; and if Heaven make it your duty to go. He will also make it mine to go with you, or otherwise dispose of me, that I may not obstruct it.'' 207 Kf' W ROBINSON CRUSOE. ; 1 -kU m Tliis afTectionato behaviour of my wife's brought me a little out of the vapoui-s, and I bogan to consider what I was doing ; I corrected my wandering fancy, and began to argue with myself sedately what business I had, after threescore yeai-s, and after such a life of tedious sufferings and disasters, and closed in bo happy and easy a manner — I say, what business had I to rush into new hazards, and put myself upon adventures fit only for youth and poverty to run into ? "With those thoughts I considered my nejv engagement ; that I had a wife, one child boin, and my wife then great with cliild of another ; that I had all the world could give me, and had no need to seek hazard for gain ; that I was declining in years, and ought to think rather of leaving what I had gained than of seeking to inci-ease it ; that as to what my wife had said of its being an impulse from Heaven, and that it should be my duty to go, I had no notion of that ; so, after many of these cogitations, I struggled with the power of my imagination, reasoned myself out of it ; as I believe peoi)le may alwavs do in like cases if they will ; and, in a word, I conquered it ; composed myself with such arguments as occurred to my thoughts, and which my present condition furnished me plentifully with ; and particularly, as the most effectual method, I resolved to divert myself with other things, and to engage in some business that might effectually tie me up from any more excursions of this kind ; for I found that thing return upon me chiefly when I was idle, and had nothing to do, nor anything of moment immediately before me. To this purpose, I bought a little farm in the county of Bedford, and resolved to remove myself thither. I had a little convenient house upon it, and the land about it, I found, was capable of great improvement ; and it was many ways .suited to my inclination, which delighted in cultivating, managing, planting, and improving of land ; and particularly, being an inland county, I wivs removed from convei-sing among sailoi-s, and things relating to the remote i)ai-ts of the world. In a word, I went down to my farm, settled my family, bought jdoughs, harrows, a cart, wagon, horses, cows, and sheep, and, setting seriously to work, became in one h df-year a mere country gentleman ; my thoughts wore entirely t:iken up in managing my servants, cultivating the ground, enclosing, jdanting, itc. ; and I lived, as I thought, the most agreeable life that nature wa.s capable of directing, or that a man always bred to misfortunes wivs capable of reti-eating to. I farmed upon my own land ; I had no rent to pay, was limited by no articles ; T rouM pull up or cut down as I pleased ; what I jdanted was for myself, and what 1 improved was for my family ; and having thus left off the thoughts of wamlering, I had not the least di.scomfort in any part of life as to this world. Now I thought indeed that I enjoyed the middh> state of life, which my father .so earnestly recommended to mo, and livfil a kind of heavenly life, .something like what is described by the poet, upon tlie subject of a country life : — " Frop fi iMu vioo^, froo from ciro, Aire has no pain, and youth no snare." Tut in the middle of all this felicity, one blow from unseen Providt nee unhinged me at once ; and not only made a breach upon me inevitable and incui-able, but drove me, bv its consequences, into a deep relapse of the wandering disposition, which, as I may 8.1V, b«'ing bora in my very blood, soon recovered its hold of me ; and, like the return-* of a violent distemper, came on witli an irresistible force upon me. This blow was the loss of n>y wife. It is not njy business hero to write an elegy upon my wile, give a rharact.M- of her particular virtues, and make my court to the sex by the flattery of a funeral sermon. She wa-s, in a few words, the stay of all my affairs, the centre of all my ^^ ^T-^:"— i.,, t,„ en»me that, by her praaeiico, redaced me to that happy compass I "« :: ■ fr^ e ™re*a'vjaut a.'d v.i„ous project that ailed .y head; a.d did "r ;» "Uide my rambling genius than a mother's tears, a fathers .astr«ct.ons, a rend- counsel, or all my own reasoning po«rs conld do. I ^vas happy nr hstenu,. toTi and iubling moved by her entreaties ; and t, the last degree desolate and d.s- Inoated in the world by the loss of lier. imj When she was gone, the world looked awkwardly round me. I was as much a ^i stranlex- in it, in my thoughts, as I was in the Brazils, when I hrst went on shore there ; ! |^ C^Wr T: . uch alone except for the assistance of servants, as I was m my island. I Mg i?i ^t^::^2:^t^^ nor what to do. I saw the world busy around |/^ ' ^"^ one part labouring for bread, another part squandenng m ^^^^^ ^-^^^^ excesses, or empty pleasures, equally miserable, because ^^MS^I\ ROBINSON CRUSOE. the end they proposed still fled from them ; for the men of pleasure every day surfeited of their vice, and heaped up work for sorrow and repentance ; and the men of labour Bpent their strength in daily struggling for bread to maintain the vital strength they laboured with j so living in a daily circulation of sorrow, living but to work, arid workin" but to live, as if daily bread were the only end of wearisome life, and a weari- some life thp only occasion of daily bread. This put me in mind of the life I lived in my kingdom, the island ; where I suffered no more com to grow, because I did not want it ; and bred no more goats, because I had no more nse for them ; where the money lay in the drawer till it grew mouldy, and had scarce the favour to be looked upon in twenty years. All these IhingP, had I improved them a-s I ought to have done, and as reason and religion had dictated to me, would have taught me to search farther than human enjoyments for a full felicity ; and that there was something which certainly was th.; reason and end of life, superior to all these things, and which was either to be possesst 1, or at least hoped for, on this side the grave. But my sage counsellor was gone ; I was like a ship without a pilot, that could only run afore the wind. My thoughts ran all away again into the old affair ; my head was (juite turned with the whimseys of foreign adventures ; and all the pleasant, innocent amusements of my farm, my garden, my cattle, and my family, which before entirely possessed mc, were nothing to me, had no relish, and were like music to one that has no ear, or food to one that has no taste ; in a word, I resolved to leave off housekeeping, let my farm, and return to London ; and in a few months after I did so. When I came to London, I was still as uneasy as I was before ; I had no relish for the phice, no cmploj-mcnt in it, nothing to do but to saunter about like an idle person, of whom it may be said he is perfectly useless in God's creation, and it is not one farthing's matter to the rest of his kind whether he be dead or alive. This also was the thing which, of all circumstances of life, was the most my avex-sion, who had been all my days used to an active life ; and I would often say to myself, "A state of idleness is the very dregs of life ; " and, indeed, I thought I was much more suitably employed when I was twenty-six days making a deal board. It was now the beginning of the year 1693, when my nephew, whom, as I have observed before, I had brought up to the sea, and had made him commander of a ship, was come home from a short voyage to Bilboa, being the fii-st he had made. He came to me, and told mo that some merchants of his acquaintance had been proposing to him to go a voyage for them to the East Indies, and to China, as private traders. "And now, uncle," says he, "if you will go to sea with me, I will engage to land you upon your old habitation in the i.slaud ; for avo are to touch at the Brazils." Nothing can be a greater demonstnition of a future state, and of the existence of an invisible world, than the concurrence of second causes Asith the ideas of things which we form in our minds, perfectly reserved, and not communicated to any in the world. 3Iy nephew knew nothing how far my distemper of wandering was returned upon me, and I knew notliing of what he had in his thoughts to say, when that very morning, i before he came to me, I had, in a great deal of confusion of thought, and revolving every I jiart of my circumstances in my mind, come to this resolution, that I would go to Lisbon, ' ;uid consult with my old sea-captain ; and if it was rational and practicable, I would go niul sec the island again, and what Avas become of my people there. I had jileased myself with the thoughts of peopling the place, and carrying inhabitants from hence, ) getting a patent for the possession, and I know not what ; when, in the middle of all ^-^^11:-= I RESOLVE TO RE-VISIT MY ISLAND. ■"^s^^^s^ this, in comes my nephew, as I have said, with his project of carrying me thither in his way to the East Indies. I paiTsed awhile at his wordy, and looking steadily at him, " What devil," said I, " sent you on this nnlucky errand ? " My nephew stared as if he had been frightened, at first ; but perceiving that I was not much displeased with the proposal, he recovered himself. "I hope it may not be an imlucky proposal, sir," says he 3 "I dare say you would be pleased to see your new colony there, where you once reigned with more felicity than most of your brother monai'chs in the world." In a word, the scheme hit so exactly with my temper, that is to say, the prepossession I was under, and of which I have said so much, that I told him, in a few wox'ds, if he agreed with the merchants, I would go. with him ; but I told him I would not promise to go any farther than my own island. "Why, sir," says he, "you don't want to be left there again, I hope 1 " " Why," said I, " can you not take me up again on your return 1 " He told me it would not be possible to do so ; that the merchants would never allow him to come that way with a laden ship of such value, it being a month's sail out of his way, and might be three or four. "Besides, sir, if I should miscarry," said he, "and not return at all, then you would be just reduced to the condition you were in before." This was very rational ; but we both found out a remedy for it ; which was, to carry a framed sloop on board the ship, which being taken in pieces, and shipped on board the ship, might, by the help of some carpenters, whom we agreed to carry with us, bo set up again in the island, and finished fit to go to sea in a few days. I was not long resolving; for, indeed, the importunities of my nephew joined so effectually with my inclination, that nothing could oppose me. On the other hand, my wife being dead, nobody concerned themselves so much for me as to persuade me to one way or the other, except my ancient good friend the widow, who earnestly struggled with me to consider my years, my easy circumstances, and the needless hazards of a long voyage ; and above all, my yoxmg children. But it was all to no purpose ; I had an irresistible desire for the voyage ; and I told her I thought there was something so uncommon in the impressions I had upon my mind, that it would be a kind of resisting Providence if I should attempt to stay at home ; after which she ceased her expostulations, and joined with me, not only in making provision for my voyage, but also in settling my family affairs for my absence, and providing for the education of my children. In order to do this, I made my will, and settled the estate I had in such a mamier for my children, and placed in such hands, that I was perfectly easy and satisfied they would have justice done them, whatever might befall me ; and for their education, I left it wholly to the widow, with a sufficient maintenance to herself for her care : all which she richly deserved ; for no mother could have taken more care in their education, or understood it better ; and as she lived till I came home, I also lived to thank her for it. My nephew was ready to sail about the beginning of January, 1694-.5 ; and I, with my man Friday, went on board, in the Downs, on the 8th ; having, besides that sloop, which I mentioned above, a very considerable cargo of all kinds of necessary things for my colony ; which, if I did not find in good condition, I resolved to leave so. First, I carried with me some servants, whom I purposed to place there as inhabitants, or at least to set on work there, upon my account, while I stayed, and either to leave them there or cany them forward , as they should appear willing ; particularly I carried two carpenters, a smith, and a very handy, ingenious fellow, who was a cooper by trade, and was also a general mechanic ; for he was dexterous at making wheels, and hand-mills to grind corn, was a good turner, and a good pot-u::'^ ' also made ,-- — ■--■ ---^ 21 1 -, „ f-f ROBINSON CRUSOE. anything that was proper to make of earth or of wood ; in a word, wc called him out Jack-of-all-tradcs. With these I carried a tailor, who had offered himself to go a passenger to the East Indies with my nephew, but afterwards consented to stay on our new i)lantation ; and who proved a most necessary, handy fellow, as could be desired, in many other businesses besides that of his trade ; for, as I obsen-ed formerly, necessity arms us for all employments. ^ly cargo, us near as I can recollect, for I liave not kept account of the particular^, consisted of a sufilcient quantity of linen, and some English thin stuff?, for clothing the Spaniards that I expected to find there ; and enough of them as, by my calculation, might comfortably sujjply them for seven years. If I remember right, the materials I can-ied for clothing them, with gloves, hat<*, shoes, stockings, and all such things as thoy could want for M'caring, amounted to above two hundred pounds, including some beds, bedding, and household stuff, particularly kitchen iitcnsils, with pots, kettles, pewter^ bra.ss, ic, and near a hundred pounds more in iron-work, nails, tools of every kind staples, hooks, hinges, and every nccessaiy thing I could think of. I carried also a hundred spare arms, muskets, and fusees ; besides some jjistols, :v considerable quantity of shot of all sizes, three or four tons of lead, and two ])ieccs of brass cannon ; and, because I knew not what time and what extremities I was providing for, I carried a hundred barrels of powder, besides swords, cutlasses, and the iron part of somepikes and halberts ; so that, in short, wc had a large magazine of all sorts of stores •. and I made my nephew cairy two small quarter-deck giuis more than he wanted for his 8hi|», to leave behind if there was occasion ; that when wc came there, we might build a fort, and man it against all sorts of enemies ;* and, indeed, I at first thought there would be need enough for all, and much* more, if we hoped to maintain our possession of the island ; as shall be seen in the course of the story. I had not such bad luck in this voyage as I had boon used to meet with; and therefore, shall have the less occasion to interrupt the I'oader, who, i)erhaps, may be impatient to hear how matters went with my colony. Yet some odd accidents, cross winds, and bad weather, happened on this first setting out, which made the voyage longer than I expected it at first ; and I, who had never made but one voyage, my fii*st voyage to CJuinoa, in which I might be said to come back again, as the voyage was at first designed, began to think the same ill fate attended me ; and that I was born to be never contented with being on shore, and yet to be always unfortunate at sea. Contrary winds first put us to the northwanl, and wc were obliged to put in at Galway, in Ireland, where we lay wind-bound two-and-twcuty days j but we had thi.i satisfaction with the disaster, that provisions were here exceeding cheap, and in the utmost jilcnty ; no that while wo lay liore, we never touched the ship's stores, but rather added to them. Here, also, I took in several live hogs, and two cows with their calves, which I resolved, if I hud a good passage, to put on .shore in my i.-jhuid ; but we found occasion to dispose otherwise of them. ' ' •■ We sft out on the tJth of February from Ireland, and had a voiy fair gale of wind for some days. As I remember, it might be about the 2blh of Febnmry, in the evening lute, when the mate, having the watcli, came into the round-house, and told us ho .saw a (lash of fire, and heard a gini fired ; and while he was telling us of it, a boy came in, ami told us the boatswain heard another. This made us all nin out upon the quarter-deck, where, for awhile, wo heard nothing ; but in a few minutes we saw a very great light, and found that there wa.s some very tenible fire at a distance. Immediately wo hail recourse to ovn* reckonings, in M'hich we all agreed that there could he no land that way 2iz ^)i ROBINSON CRUSOE. in which the fire showed itself, no, not for five hundred leagues, foi* it appeared at W.N.W. Upon this, we concluded it raitst be some ship on fire at sea ; and as, by our hearing the noise of guns just before, we concluded that it could not be far off, we stood directly to- wards it, and were presently satisfied we should discover it, because the farther we sailed, the greater the light appeared ; though, the weather being haz}-, we could not perceive anything but the light for a while. In about half an hour s sailing, the wind being fair for iis, though not much of it, and the weatlier cleai-iug up a little, we could plainly discern that it Avas a gi-eat ship on fire, in the middle of the sea. I was most sensibly touched with this ilisaster, though not at all acquainted with the pei*sons engaged in it : I presently recollected my former circumstances, and what comlition I was in when taken up by the Portuguese captain ; and how much more deplorable the circumstances of the poor creatures belonging to that ship must be, if they had no other ship in comjoany with them. Upon this, I immediately ordered that five gims should be fired, one soon after another, that, if possible, wo might give notice to them that there was help for them at hand, and that they might endeavour to save themselves in their boat ; for though we could see the flames of the ship, yet they, it being night, could see nothing of us. "We lay by some time upon this, only di-iving as the burning ship drove, waiting for daylight ; when, on a sudden, to our great terror, though we had reason to expect it, the ship blew up in the afr ) and immediately, that is to say, in a few minutes, all the fire was out, that is to say, the rest of the ship sunk. This was a terrible, and, indeed, nn afflicting sight, for the sake of the poor men, who, I concluded, must be either all destroyed in the ship, or be in the utmost distress in their boat, in the middle of the ocean ; which, at present, as it was dark, I could not see. However, to direct them as well as I could, I caused lights to be hung out in all pai'ts of the ship where we could, and which we had lanterns for, and kept firing gims all the night long ; letting them know by this that there was a ship not far off. About eight o'clock in the morning, wc discovei-ed the slap's boats by the help of our perspective glasses, and fbund there were two of them, both thronged with people, and deep in the water. We perceived they rowed, the wind being against ihem ; that they saw our ship, and did their utmost to make us see them. Wo immediately spread our ancient, to let them know we saw them, and hung a waft out, as a signal for them to come on board ; and then made more s;iil, standing directly to them. In little more than half an hour, we came up with them ; and, in a word, took them all in, being no less than sixty-four men, women, and children ; for there were a great many passengers. Ui)on incpiiry, wo found it was a French merchant ship of tlu-ee hundred tons, home- ward-bound from Quebec, in the river of Canada. The master gave ua a long account of the disti-ess of his ship ; how the fire began in the stcorago, by the negligence of the sterrsumn ; but, on his crying out for help, was, as everybody thought, entirely put out ; but they soon found that some sparks of the first fire hail got into some jwrt of the •ship 80 diflicult to come at that they could not effectually quench it ; and afterwards getting in between the timbers, and within the ceiling of the ship, it proceeded into the liold, and mastered all the skill and all the appliojition they were able to exert. They hud no more to do then but to get into their boats, which, to their gi. comfort, wore pretty large ; being their long-boat, and a great shallop, besides a sui skiff, which was of no groat service to them, other than to get some fresh water .i provisions into her, after they had secured their lives from the fire. Tin y had, iudc ml 214 small hope of their lives by getting into these boats, at that distance from any land ; only, as they said, that they thus escaped from the fire, and there was a possibility that some ship might happen to be at sea, and might take them in. They had sails, oars, and a compass ; and were preparing to make the best of their way back to Newfoundland, the wind blowing pretty fair, for it blew an easy gale at S.E. by E. They had as much provision and water as, with sparing it so as to be next door to starving, might support them about twelve days, in which, if they had no bad weather and no contraiy winds, the cajitain said he hoped he might get to the Banks of Newfoundland, and might perhaps take some fish, to sustain them till they might go on shoi-e, But there were so many chances against them in all these cases, such as storms, to overset and founder them ; rains and cold, to benumb and perish their limbs ; contrary winds, to keep tliem out and starve them ; that it must have been next to miraculous if they had escaped. In the midst of their consternation, every one being hopeless and I'eady to despair, the captain, with tears in his eyes, told me they were on a sudden sixrprised with the joy of hearing a gun fire, and after that four moi^e : these were the five guns which I caused to be fired at first seeing the light. This revived their hearts, and gave them the notice, which, as above, I desired it should, that there was a ship at hand for their help. It was upon the hearing of these guns that they took down their masts and sails : the sound coming from the windward, they resolved to lie by till morning. Some time after this, hearing no more guns, they fired three muskets, one a considerable while after another ; but these, the wind being contrary, we never heard. Some time after that again, they were still more agreeably surprised with seeing our lights, and heai'ing the guns which, as I have said, I caused to be fired all the rest of the night. This set them to work with their _ oars, to keep their boats ahead, at least, that we might the sooner come up with them ; and, at last, to their inexpressible joy, they found we saw them. It is impossible for me to express the several gestures, the strange ecstacies, the variety of postures which these poor delivered people ran into, to express the joy of their souls at so unexpected a deliverance. Grief and fear are easily described ; sighs, tears, groans, and a very few motions of the head and hands, make up the sum of its variety; but an excess of joy, a sui-pi-ise of joy, has a thousand extravagances in it. There were some in tears ; some raging and tearing themselves, as if they had been in the gx-eatest agonies of sorrow ; some stark raving and downright lunatic ; some ran .about the ship stamping Avith their feet, others wringing their hands; some were dancing, some singing, some laughing, moi-e crying, many quite dumb, not able to speak a word ; others sick and vomiting ; several SAVooning and ready to faint ; and a few were crossing themselves, and gi\dng God thanks. I would not wrong them either ; there might be many that were thankful afterAvards ; but the passion Avas too strong for them at first, and they Avere not able to master it ; they Avere throAvn into ecstacies, and a kind of frenzy, and it Avas but a very fcAv that Avere composed and serious in their joy. Perhaps, also, the case may have some addition to it from the particular circum- stance of the nation they belonged to ; I mean the French, whose temper is alloAved to be more volatile, more passionate, and more sprightly, and their spirits more fluid than of other nations. I am not philosopher enough to determine the cause ; but nothing I had ever seen before came up to it. The ecstacies poor Friday, my trusty savage, AA^as in, Avhen he found his father in the boat, came the nearest to it ; and the surprise of the 215 /\\ master and bis two companions, whom I delivered from the villains that set them on shore in the island, came a little Avay towards it; but nothing was to compare to thi.«, either that I saw in Friday, or anywhere else in my life. It is further observable, that these extravagances did not show themselves in that diffei'ent manner I have mentioned, in different persons only ; but all the variety would appear, in a .shot't succession of moments, in one and the same person. A man that we .saw this minute dumb, and, as it were, stupid and confounded, wo\Ud the next minut.' be dancing and hallooing like an antic ; and the next moment be tearing his hair, or jjulling hi.s clothes to pieces, and .stamping them under his feet like a madman ; in u few moments after we would have liim all in tears, then sick, swooning, and, had n^t immediate help been had, ho would in a few minutes ha\c been dead ; and thus it w;i. not with one or two, or ten or twenty, but with the greatest part of them ; and, if 1 remember riglit, our surgeon was obliged to let blood of about thirty of them. There were two j)riests among them : one an old man, and the other a young m^u ; and that which was strangest was, the oldest man was the worst. As soon as he set hi- foot on board our ship, and .saw himself safe, he dropped do-wn stone dead to all appear- ance ; not the least sign of life could be perceived in him : our surgeon immediately npi)lied proper remedies to recover him, and was the only man in the ship that believed he was not dead. At length he opened a vein in his ami, having first chafed an 1 rubbed the part, .so as to wann it as much as possible. Upon this, the blood, which only dropped at first, llowing freely, in three minutes after the man opened his eyes ; and a quarter of an hour after that he spoke, grew better, and in a little time quite well. After the blood was stopped, he walked about, told us he was perfectly well, tookadnim of cordial which the surgeon gave him, and had come to him.self. About a quarter of uu hour after thi.s, they came limning into the cabin to the surgeon, who was bleeding a French woman that had fainted, and told him the priest was gone stark mad. It seems he had be^un to revolve the change of his circumstances in his mind, and again this put him into an ecstacy of joy. His spirits whirled about faster than the vessels coxild convey tliem, the blood grew hot and feverish ; and the man was a.s fit for Bedlam a- liny creature that ever was in it. The surgeon would not bleed him again in that condition, but gave him something to doze and put him to sleep ; whicli, after some time, operated upon him, and he awoke next morning perfectly compo.sed and well. The younger priest behaved with great command of his passions, and was really an exanq>lo of a seriou.s, well-governed mind. At his first coming on board the shi]>, he throw himself flat on his face, prostrating himself in thankfulness for his deliverance, in which I unhappily and unseasonably disturbed him, really thinking ho had been in a Hwoon ; but he spoke calmly, thanked mo, told nxo ho was giving God thanks for his (hliverance, begged me to leave him a few moments, and that, next to his Maker, ho would give me thanks also. I was heartily sorry that I disturbed him, and not only hft him, but kei)t othoi-s fiom interrupting him also. Ho continued in that posture about three minutes, or little more, after I left hin), then came to mo, as ho had sj\id he would, and, with a great deal of seriousness and aflection, but with tears in his eyes, thanked mo, that had, under Cod, given him and .so many misei-ablo creatures their lives. I told him I had no need to t< 11 him to thank God for it, rather' than me, for 1 had seen that he had done that already : but I added that it wa.4 nothing but what rea.son and Immanity dictated to all men, an i that wc had as much reason as ho to give thimks to God, who had blessed us so far as t" make us the instruments of his mercy to so many of his creatures. 2i6 - '^ applied liimself to his coxmtiymen ; laLoured to compose them ; • ivTx | 2-)ersuaded, entreated, argiied, reasoned with, them, and did his ^ utmost to keep them within the exercise of their reason ; and with some he had ly success, tliough otliers were for a time out of all government of themselves. \ I cannot help committing this to writing, as perhaps it may be useful to those into J whose hands it may fall, for guiding themselves in ihe extravagances of their passions ; 4 217 ^f -^-. ^w ^ik^^^ KOIJIXSON CRUSOE. SJ^K mmmy^ i^^^^kss^i i f.ir if (in excess of joy can carry men out to such a length beyond the reach of tlitir reason, what will not tlie extravagances of anger, rage, and a provoked mind, carry iis to 1 And, indeed, hero«I saw reason for keei^ing an exceeding watch over our passions of every kind, as well those of joy and satisfaction, as those of sorrow and anger. We were somewhat disordered by these extravagances among our new guests, for the fii-st day ; but after they had retired to lodgings provided for them as well as our ship would allow, and they had slept heartily — as most of them did, being fatigueurpose for their deliverance, yet it was impossible for us wilfully to oliango our voyage ou their i>articular account ; nor could my nepliew, the captain, answer it to the freighters, with whom lie was under charter to pui-sui' his voyage by way of Brazil ; and all I knew wo could do for them was, to put oui-selves in the way of meeting with other shii)3 homeward bounil from the West Indies, and get them a passage, if possible, to Kngland or France. The first part of the i)roj)osal was so generous aud kind, thoy could not but be vi-ry thankful for it ; but they were in veiy great consternation, especially the pivssengei-s, at the notion of being carried away to the East Indies ; they then entreated me, that as I k was driven so fur to the westward before I met with them, I would, at lea.st, kcoi) on ' the .same coui-so to the Banks of Newfoundland, whore it was |.n.1.aMo I might meet . 218 ,/i •^^^jss' r% WE LAND THE FRENCH PEOPLE. with some ship or sloop that they might hire to cany them back to Canada, from whence they came. ■ I thought this -was but a reasonable request on their part, and therefore I inclined to agree to it ; for, indeed, I considered that to carry this whole company to the East Indies, would not only be an intolerable severity upon the poor people, bu.t would be ruining our whole voyage, by devouring all our pi'ovisions ; so I thought it no breach of chartei'-party, but what an unforeseen accident made absolutely necessaiy to us, and in which no one could say we were to blame ; for the laws of God and nature would have forbid that we should refuse to take up two boats full of people in such a distressed condition ; and the nature of the thing, as well respecting ourselves as the poor people, obliged us to set them on shore somewhere or other for their deliverance. So I consented that we would carry them to Newfoundland, if wind and weather would permit ; and if not, that I w^ould carry them to Martinico, in the West Indies. The wind continued fresh easterly, but the weather pretty good ; and as the winds had continued in the points between N.E, and S.E. a long time, we missed several opportunities of sending them to France ; for we met several ships boxmd to Eiu'ope, whereof two were French, from St. Christopher's ; but they had been so long beating up against the wind that they durst not take in passengers, for fear of wanting provisions for the voyage, as well for themselves as for those they should take in ; so we were obliged to go on. It was about a week after this that we made the Banks of Newfoundland; where, to shorten my story, we put all our French people on board a barque, Avhich they hired at sea there, to put them on shore, and afterwards to carry them to France, if they could get provisions to victual themselves with. When I say all the French went on shore, I should remember, that the young priest I spoke of, hearing we were bound to the East Indies, desired to go the voyage with us, and to be set on shore on the coast of Coromandel ; Avhich I readily agreed to, for I wonderfully liked the man, and had very good reason, as will appear afterwards ; also four of the seamen entered themselves on our ship, and proved very useful fellows. Fi'om hence we directed our course for the West Indies, steering away S. and S. by E. for about twenty days togethei-, sometimes little or no wind at all ; when we met with another subject for our humanity to work upon, almost as deplorable as that before. It was in the latitude of 27 degrees 5 minutes north, on the 19th day of March, 1694-5, when we spied a sail, our course S.E. and by S. We soon perceived it was a large vessel, and that she bore up to us, but could not at first know what to make of her, till, after coming a little nearer, we found she had lost her main-topmast, foremast, and bo^vsprit ; and presently she fired a gun as a signal of distress. The weather was pretty good, wind at N.N.W. a fresh gale, and we soon came to speak with her. We found her a ship of Bristol, bound home from Barbadoes, but had been blown out of the road at Barbadoes a few days before she was ready to sail, by a terrible hurricane, while the captain and chief mate were both gone on shore ; so that, besides the ten'or of the storm, they were in an indifferent case for good artists to bring the ship home. They had been already nine weeks at sea, and had met -with another terrible storm, after the hurricane was ovei', which had blown them quite out of their knowledge to the westward, and in which they had lost their masts. They told us they expected to have seen the Bahama Islands, but were then driven away again to the south-east, by a strong gale of wind at N.N.W., the same that blew now : and having no sails to work the ship with but a main course, and a kind of square sail upon a jury-foremasfc, ROBINSON CRUSOE. ■which they had set up, they could not lie near the wind, but were endeavouring to stand riway for the Canaries. But that which was worst of all, was, that they wore almost stan-ed for want of l)rovisions, besides the fatigues they had undergone ; their bread and flesh were quite gone ; they had not one ounce left in the ship, and had had none for eleven days. The only relief they had was, their water was not all spent, and they had about half a barrel of flour left ; they had sugar enough ; some succades, or sweetmeats, they had at first, but they were all devoured ; and they had seven casks of mm. There was a youth, and liis mother, and a maid-servant on board, who were passengers, and thinking the ship was ready to sail, unhappily came on board the evening before the luin-icano began ; and having no provisions of their own left, they were in a more deplorable condition than the rest : for the seamen, being reduced to such an extreme nece&sity themselves, had no compassion, wc may be sure, for the jwor passengers ; and they were, indeed, in such a condition that their misery is very hard to describe. I had perhaps not known this part, if my curiosity had not led mo (the weather being fair, and the wind abated) to go on board the ship. The second mate, who upon this occasion commanded the ship, had been on board our ship, and he told me they had three passengers in the great cabin, that were in a deplorable condition : " Xay," says he, " I believe they arc dead, for I have heard nothing of them for above two days : and I was afraid to inquire after them," said he, " for I had nothing to relieve them witli." "\Vc immediately applied ourselves to give them what relief we could spare ; and, indeed, I had so far overruled things with my ncjdiew, that I would have victualled them, though we had gone away to Virginiii, or any other part of the coast of America, to have sup])lied ourselves; but there was no necessity for that. But now they were in a new danger ; for they were afraid of eating too much, even of that little we gave them. The mate, or commander, brought six men with him in liis boat ; but these j)oor wretches looked like skeletons, and were so weak that they could hardly sit to their oars. The mate himself was very ill, and half-starved ; for ho declared ho had reserved nothing from the men, and went share and share alike with them in every bit they ate. I catitioned him to oat sparingly, but set meat before him immediately ; and he had not eaten three mouthfuls before he began to be sick and out of order ; so he stopped awhile, and our Mirgeon mixed him something -with some bi-oth, which he said woidd bo to liim both food and i)hysic ; and after he had taken it he grew better. In the meantime, I forgot not the men ; I ordered victuals to be given them, and the poor creatures rather devoured than ate it : they were bo exceedingly hungry that they were in a manner ravenous, and Imd no command of themselves ; and two of them ate with HO much greediness, that they were in danger of their lives the next morning. The sight of the.sc peojile's di-stress was very moving to me, and brought to mind what I had a terrible i)rospcct of at my fii-st coming on shore in my island, where I hatl nt'vcr tho lca.st mouthful of food, or any pix)Spect of procuring any ; besides the liourly apprchcMisious I had of being made the food of other creatures. But all the while the niato wa.s thus relating to me the miserable condition of tho ship's company, I coidd not put out of my thought tho story lie had told mo of tho three jioor creatures in the great cabin, viz., tho mother, her son, and the maid-seiwant^ whom he had heard nothing of fur two or three days, and whom, ho seemed to confos.^ they had wholly neglected. RUlilNSON CRUSOE. their own extremities being so great : by which I undei-stood, that they had i-eally given them no food at all, and that therefore they must be perished, and be all lying dead, perhaps, on the floor or deck of the cabin. As I therefore kept the mate, whom we then called captain, on board with his men, to refresh them, so I also forgot not the standing crew that were left on board : b\it ordered my oanti boat to go on board the ship, and, with my mat« and twelve men, to carry them a sack of bread, and four or five pieces of Ijeef to boil. Our surgeon cliarged the men to cause the meat to be boiled while they stayed, and to keep gixaixl in the cook-room, to i)revent the men taking it to eat raw, or taking it out of the ])ot Ijefore it was well boiled, and then to give every man but a very little at a time : and by this caution he preserved the men, who would othci'wisc have killed themselves with that very food that was given them on puipose to .save ikc'iv lives. At the same time, I ordered the mate to go into the gi'eat cabin, and sec what con- dition the poor passengers were in ; and if they were alive, to comfort them, and give them what refi-eshmeut was proper : and the surgeon gave him a large pitcher, •with •some of the prepared broth which ho had given the mate that wa.s on board, and ^-iiich he did not question would re.'jtore them gradually. I was not .satisfied Avith this : but, as I .said above, having a great mind to see the scene of misery which I knew the ship itself would present me with, in a more lively manner than I could have it by report, I took the cai)tain of the shiji, a.s we now called him, with me, and went myself, a little after, in their boat. I found the i)oor men on board almost in a tumult, to get the -s-ictuals exit of the boiler before it was ready ; but the mate observed his ordei-s, and kept a good guard at the cook-room door j and the man he placed there, after using all pos.sible pei-suasion to have patience, kept them off by force : however, he caused some biscuit cakes to be dij»j»ed in the pot, and softened with the liquor of the moat, which they called brewis. and gave them cveiy one some, to stay their stomachs, and told them it was for tlu-ir own .safety that lie was obliged to give them but little at a time. But it was all III Aain ; and had I not come on board, and their own commandor and officcre ^"ith mo, and with good words, and some threats also of giWng thom no more, I believe they would have broken into the cook-room by force, and torn the meat out of the furnace ; for words arc indeed of veiy small force to a hungiy belly : however, we l)acificd them, and fed them gradually and cautiously for the fii-st, and the next time gave them more, and at last filled their bellies, and the men did well enough. But the misery of the i)Oor j)assenger3 in the cabin was of another nature, and far beyond the rest ; for as, first, the ship's com])any had so little for themselves, it was but too true that they had at first ke])t them verj' low, and at last totally nogleoted them : so that for »ix or seven days it might bo said thoy had really no food at all, and for several days before very little. The poor mother, who, an the men reported, was a woman of sense and good breeding, had spared all she could so aft'octionately for liei* Bon, that at lasb .she entirely sank under it; and when the mate of our ship wont in, she sat ujion the floor or dock, with her back up against the sides, between two ohaii-s, which were laahed fa.st, and her liead .sunk between hor shouldoi-s, like a cor])sc, though not quite dead. 2SIy mate said all he could to revive and encourage lier, jind with a «pooii j)ut some broth into her mouth. She oi)ened her lip.s, and Lfted up oim hand, but could not speak : yet she understood what he said, and made signs to liiin, intimating that it was too Into for her, but pointed to her child, h3 if *he would have said thoy should take care of him. However, the mate, who was exceedingly moved at r^r yf-^.t^tSS^hlf'Z', A FEARFUL SCENE, the sight, endeavoured to get some of the broth into her mouth, and, as ho said, got two or three spoonfuls down ; though I question whether he could be sure of it or not : but it was too late, and she died the same night. The youth, who was preserved at the price of his most affectionate mother's life, was not so iar gone ; yet he lay in a cabin bed, as one stretched out with hardly any life left in him. He had a piece of an old glove in his mouth, having eaten up the rest of it : however, being young, and having more strength than his mother, the mate got something down his throat, and he began sensibly to revive ; though by giving him, some time after, but two or three spoonfuls extraordinary, ho was very sick, and brought it up again. But the next care was the poor maid : she lay all along upon the deck, hard by her mistress, and just like one that had fallen down with an apoplexy, and struggled for life. Her limbs were distorted ; one of her hands was clasped round the frame of the chair and she gripped it so hard that we could not easily make her let it go ; her other ai-m lay over her head, and her feet lay both together, set fast against the frame of the cabin table: in short, she lay just like one in the agonies of death, and yet she was alive too. The poor creature was not only starved with hunger, and terrified with the thoughts of death, but, as the men told us afterwards, was broken-hearted for her mistress, whom she saw dying for two or three days before, and whom she loved most tenderly. We knew not what to do ynth this poor girl ; for when our surgeon, who was a man of very great knowledge and experience, had, with great application, recovered her as to life, he had her upon his hands Btill ; for she waa little less than distracted for a con- siderable time after. "Whoever shall read these memorandums must be desired to consider, that visits at sea are not like a journey into the country, where sometimes people stay a week or a fortnight at a place : our business was to relieve this distressed ship's crew, but not lie by for them ; and though they were willing to steer the same course with us for some days, yet we could carry no sail, to keep pace with a ship that had no masts : however, as their captain begged of us to help him to set up a main- topmast, and a kind of top- mast to his jury-foremast, we did, as it were, lie by him for three or four days ; and then, having given him five barrels of beef, a barrel of pork, two hogsheads of biscuit, and a proportion of peas, flour, and what other things we could spare ; and taking three casks of sugar, some rum, and some pieces-of-eight from them for satisfaction, we left them, taking on boai-d with us, at their own earnest request, the youth and the maid, and all their goods. ' The young lad was about seventeen years of age ; a pretty, well-bred, modest, and sensible youth, greatly dejected with the loss of his mother, and, as it seems, he had lost his father but a few months before, at Barbadoes : he begged of the surgeon to speak to me to take him out of the ship ; for he said the cruel fellows had murdered his mother : and, indeed, so they had, that is to say, passively ; for they might have spared a small sustenance to the poor helpless Avidow, that might have preserved her life, though it had been but just enough to keep her alive ; but hunger knows no friend, no relation, no justice, no right, and therefore is remoi'seless, and capable of no compassion. The surgeon told him how far we were going, and that it would carry him away from all his friends, and put him, perhaps, in as bad circumstances almost as those we found j him in, that is to say, starving in the world. He said it mattered not whither he went, if he was but delivered from the terrible crew that he was among ; that the captain (by which he meant me, for he could know nothing of my nephew) had saved his life, and ^ Vi/ ROBINSON CRUSOE. lie wfts sxirc wouUl not hurt him ; findris for tho maid, ho was sure, if she came to hei-self, she would be very thankful for it, let us carry them where wo would. Tho surgcou represented the case so affectionately to me that I yielded, and we took them both on board, with all their goods, except eleven hogsheads of sugar, which could not be removed or come at ; and as the youth had a bill of lading for them, I made his commander sign a writing, obliging liimself to go as soon as he came to Bristol, to one Mr. Rogers, a merchant there, to whom the youth said he was related, and to deliver a letter which I wrote to him, and all the goods he had belonging to the deceased widow ; which I suppose was not done, for I could never learn that the jhip came to Bristol, but was, as is most prob.ible, lost at sea ; being in so disabled a condition, and .so fiir from any land, that I am of opinion the first stonn she met with afterwards, she might founder in the sea, for she was leaky, and had damage in her hold, when wo met with her. I was now in the latitude of 19 degrees 32 minutes, and had hitherto a tolerable voyage as to weather, though, at first, tho winds had been contrary. I shall trouble nobody with the little incidentsofwind, weather, currents, itc, on the rest of our voyago ; but to shorten my story, shall observe that I came to my old habitation, the island, on the 10th of April, 1G95. It was with no small difficulty that I found the place ; for as I came to it, and went from it, before, on the south and east side of the island, coming from the Brazils, so now, coming in between the main and the island, and having no chart for the coast, nor any landmark, I did not know it when I saw it, or know whether I saw it or not. "We beat about a great while, and went on shore on several islands in the mouth of the great river Oronooque, but none for my purpose ; only this I learned by my coasting the shore, that I was under one great mistake before, viz., that the continent which I thought I saw from tho island I lived in, was really no continent, but a long island, or rather a ridge of islands, reaching from ono to the other side of the extended mouth of that great river; and that tho .savages who came to my island were not pi-operly those which we call Curibcc.s, but islanders, and other barbarians of the same kind, who inhabited nearer to our side than the rest. In short, I visited several of those islands to no purpose ; some I found were in- habited, and some were not ; on one of them I found some Spaniards, and thought they had lived there ; but, sjjcaking with them, found they had a sloop lying in a small creek hard by, and came thither to make salt, and to catch some pearl-mussels if they could ; but that they belonginl to tho Lsle dc Trinidad, which lay farther north, in tho latitude of 10 nnd 11 degrees. Tims, coasting from one i.sland to another, sometimes with tho ship, sometimes with tho Frenchmen's shallop, which we had found a convenient boat, and therefore kept her with their very good will, at length I came fair on the south side of my island, and presently knew the very countenance of the jdace : so I brought tho ship safe to an anchor, broadside with tho little crook where my old habitation wa.^. As soon as I .saw tho place, I called for Friday, and asked him if he know where ho was] He looked about a little, and, presently cla}ij)ing his hands, cried, "Oh, yos ; oh, there — oh, yos; oli, there!" poijiting toour old habitation, and foil dancing and capering like a ni:id fellow ; ami 1 hud mvich ado to koop him froni jumping into the sea, to swima-shore to tho i)lace. " Well, Friday," says I, " do you think wo shall find anybody here or no ? and do you think wo shall see your father ]'* The fellow stood mute as a stock a good while ; but, when I n.amcd his father, the poor affectionate creatui-e looked dojectod, and I could -24 a_■ hill just above my old house ; and, though wc lay half a league oft; he cries out, • Me see, mo see, yes, yes, mo see much mftn there, and there, and there!" I looked, but I saw nobody— no, not with a pcrspective-glasa, which was, I suppose, because I could nr.t hit the place ; for the fellow was right, as I found upon inquiry the next day ; and thcro Avoro five or six men all together, who stood to look at the ship, not knowing what to think of us. As soon as Friday told nic ho saw people, T caused the English ancient to bo sproiid, .uhI fired three guns, to give thcni notice we wei'o friends ; and in about half a quarter of an hour after "vvo perceived a smoke arise from the side of the creek; so I immediately ordered a boat out, taking Friday witli me ; and, hanging out a white flag, or a flag of truce, I went directly on slpre, taking with mo the young friar I mentioned, to whom I had told the story of my living there, and the manner of it, and every particular, both of myself and those I left there, and who wa.s, on that acconnt, extremely desirous to go with me. AVe had, besides, about sixteen men well anned, if wo had found any new "uests there which we ^jd not know of; but avo had no need of weapons. As we wont on shore upon the tide of flood, near high water, we j-owed directly into the creek ; and the first man I fixed my eye upon was the Spaniard whose life I hae morning, he walked along the shore, and again Avith his father, several hours, always leading him by the hand, as if ho had boon a lady ; and every now and then he Avonld como to the boat to fetch something or other for him, either a lump of sugar, a dnim, a biscuit cake, or something or other that Avas good. In the afternoon his frolics run another way ; for then ho Avould set the old man dowji upon the ground, and dance about him, and mako a thousand antic postures and gestures ; and all the while he did this ho AA-ould be talking to him, and telling him ono story or another of his travels, and of Avhat happened to him abroid, to divert him. In short, if the same filial alfection was to be loiiinl in Christians to their parents, in our part of the Avorhl, one Avould bo tempted to say there Avould hardly have been any need of the fifth commandment. ]5ut this is a digression : I return to my landing. It Avould be endless to take notice of all the ceremonies and civilities that the Spaninv.ls ivn-iv. ,1 m,- with. Tl.r 226 \H Ul A ALTERATIONS IN THE ISLAND. first Spaniard, whom as I said, I knew very well, was lie whose life I had saved. He came towards the boat, attended by one more, carrying a flag of truce also ; and he not only did not know me at fii-st, but he had no thoughts, no notion, of its being me that was come, till I spoke to him. " Seignior," said I, in Portuguese, " do you not know me ? " At which he spoke not a word, but, giving his musket to the man that was with him, threw his arms abroad, and saying something in Spanish that I did not perfectly hear, came forward and embraced me, telling me he was inexcusable not to know that face again that he had once seen as if an angel from Heaven, sent to save his life : he said abundance of very handsome things, as a well-bred Spaniard always knows how ; and then, beckoning to the person that attended him, bade him go and call out his comrades. He then asked me if I would walk to my old habitation, where he would give mc possession of my own house again, and where I should see they had made but mean im- provements; so I walked along with him; but, alas ! I could no more find the place again than if I had never been there ; for they had planted so many trees, and placed them in such a position, so thick and close to one another, and in ten years' time they were grown so big, that, in short, the place was inaccessible, except by such windings and blind ways as they themselves only, who made them, could find. I asked them what put them upon all these fortifications : he told me I would say there was need enough of it, when they had given me an accoxint how they had passed their time since their arriving in the island, especially after they had the misfortune to find that I was gone. He told me he could not but have some satisfaction in my good fortune, when he heard that I was gone in a good ship, and to my satisfaction ; and that he had oftentimes a strong persuasion that one time or other he should se^me again ; but nothing that ever befell him in his life, he said, was so surprising and afflicting to him at first, as the disappointment he was under when he came back to the island and found I was not there. As to the three barbarians (so he called them) that were left behind, and of whom, he said, he had a long story to tell me, the Spaniards all thought themselves much better among the savages, only that their number was so small : " and," says he, " had they been strong enough, we had been all long ago in purgatory ; " and with that he crossed himself on the breast. " But, sii-," says he, " I hope you will not be displeased when I shall tell you how, forced by necessity, we were obliged, for our own preservation, to disarm them, and make them our subjects, as they would not be content with being moderately oxw masters, but would be our murderers." I answered, I was afraid of it when I left them there, and nothing troubled me at my parting from the island but that they were not come back, that I might have put them in possession of everything first, and left the others in a state of subjection, as they deserved; but if they had reduced them to it, I was very glad, and should be very far from finding any fault with it : for i knew they were a parcel of refractory, ungovernable villaius, and -were fit for any manner of mischief. While I was saying this, the man came whom he had scufc back, and with him eleven more. In the dress they were in, it was impossible iio guess what nation they were of ; but he made all clear both to them and to me. Fiii'st he turned to me, and poiiiting to them, said, " These, sir, are some of the gentlemen who owe their lives to you;" and then turning to them, and pointing to me, he let them know who I was; upon which they all came up, one by one, not as if they had been sailors, and ordinary fellows, and the like, bvit i-eally as if they had been ambas^jadors or noblemen, and I a monarch or gi-eat conqueror : their behaviour was, to tlxe last degree, obliging and ^s.i>g^fe^>^^-^^^-J^^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. ^fl^^H^^ i--)urtcoiis, and yet mixed with a manly, majestic gravity, which very well became thera ; iind, in short, they luid so much more mannei-s than I, that I .scarce knew how to receive their civilities, mucli leas how to return them in kind. The history of their coming to, and conduct in, the island, after my going away, is so \ cry remarkable, and has so many incidents, which the former part of my relation will • !p to understand, and which will, in most of the particulars, refer to the account I vc already given, that I cannot but commit them, with great delight, to the reading ■i those that come after mc. I shall no longer trouble the story witli a rclutiou in the tirst person, which will put nio to the expense of ten thousand " .said I'.s," and " .said he's," and " he told me's," and " I i'>ld hiin'.»<," and the like ; Imt I .shall collect the facts historiaiUy, a,snear as I can gatlirr tlicm out of my memory, from what they related to mc, and from what I met with in my conversing with thom, and with the place. In order to do this succinctly, and as intelligibly a.s I can, I must go back to the f^ circumstances in which I left the island, and in Avhich the persons were of whom I am to speak. And first, it is necessary to repeat that I had sent away Friday's father and the Spaniard (the two who.se lives I had rescued from the .savage.^) in a large canoe to the main, as I then thought it, to fetch over the Spaniard's companions that he left behind him, in order to save them from the like calamity that he had been in, and in order to succour them for the pi'esent ; and that, if possible, we might together find some way for our deliverance afterwards. Wlien I sent them away, 1 had no visiljle appearance of, or the least x'oom to hope for, my own deliveiiinco, any more than I had twenty years before — much less had I any foreknowledge of what afterwards happened, I mean, of an EnglLsh shij) coming on shore there to fetch me off; and it could not be but a veiy great surprise to them, when they came back, not only to find that I was gone, but to find three strangei-s left on the Npot, })o.s.ses.sed of all that I had left behind me, Avhich would otherwise have been their own. The first thing, however, which I inquired into, that I might begin where I left off, was of their own part ; a.id I desired the Spaniard would give mc a particular account of his voyage back to his countrymen with the boat, when I sent him to fetch them over. He told nie there was little variety in that part, for nothing remarkable happened to thcin on the way, having had very calm weather, and a smooth sea. As for his country- men, it could not be doubted, lio .said, but that tiiey wore overjoyed to see him (it seems he was the pnncipal man among them, the cajjtain of tlie vessel they had been ship- wrecked in having l><>en dead some time) : they were, he .said, the more .surprised to see him, because they knew that ho was fallen into the hands of the .savages, who, they were .sati.>sfied, would devour him, as they did all the rest of their prisoners ; that when he told tliem the story of hi.s deliverance, and in what nuxnner he was furnished for carrying tliem away, it was hke n dream to them, and their astoni.shment, he .said, was somewhat Iiko that of Joseph's brethren, when ho told them who he wa-s, and the story of his coiirt ; but when ho showed them the arms, the jwwder, the exaltation in I'liaraoh'; ball. ana provision.s, that he brought them for their journey oi they re.sloml to themselves, took u just .share of the joy of their deliverance, and immediately prepared to come away with him. i lu>n- first busine.s.s was t-oget canoes ; ami in this they were obliged not to .stick .so much upon the honesty of it, but to trespa.ss upon their friendly savages, and to borrow wo large ojiMoes, or i)eriaLrun3, on pretence of going out a fislnng, or for pleasure. In s^?,w - -• ^ '"^-fe. ■^ ^ »BiEWiEiiEiMEM tl.ose tl.»yoamo away the next morning, ft 3eem. tWy wanted no time to get them- vesveadj.; for they hac no baggage, neitl,er elotl^e., no., provisions, no,, an -tlnng" the wo Id b„t what they had on then,, and a few roots to eat, of which tI,oy nsel to make their bread. '' They were in all three weeks absent; and in that ti,ne, „„h,ckily for them, I had the oeoa.,„n offered for my escape, as I mentioned in the other pa./and tog"t offfrlm 22Q \j3iui :a^^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. ;o isliind, leaving three of the most impudeut, hardened, ungovernable, disagi-eeable . illuins behind me, that any man could desire to meot -with ; to the ix>or Spaniards' gieat grief and disaj)pointment you may be sure. The only just thing the rogues did was that when the Spaniards came asliorc, they ' ive my letter to them, and gave them provisions, and other relief, as I had ordered liiem to do ; also they gave them the long paper of directions Avhich 1 had left with tliem, containing the particular methods which I took for managing every part of my life tliere ; the way I baked my bread, bred up tame goats, and planted my corn ; how 1 cured my grapes, made my pots, and, in a word, everything I did ; all this being wiitten down, tliey gave to the Spaniards (two of whom understood English well enough) : nor did they refuse to accommodate the Spaniards with anything else, for they agreed very well for some time. They gave them an equal admission into the house, or cave, and they began to live very sociably ; and the head Spaniard, who had seen pretty much of my methods, and Friday's father together, managed all their aflairs; but as for the Englishmen, thoy did nothing but ramble about the island, shoot jiarrots, and catch tortoises ; and when they came home at night, the Hjiauiards jirovidod their sn2)pci*s fur thcni. The Spaniards would have been satisfied with this, had the others but let them alone, v.hich, Iwwever, they could not find in their hearts to do long; but, like the dog in the manger, they would not eat themselves, neither would they let the othei-3 cat. The diliereuccs, nevertheless, were at first but trivial, and such as are not worth relating, but at l.-ist it l^ukc out into open war : and it began with all the rudeness and insolence that can be imagined — without reason, without provocation, contrary to nature, and; indeed, to common sense ; and though, it is true, the fir> t relation of it came from the Spaniard.^ tliemsclvcs, whom I may call the accusei-s, yet when I came to examine the fellows, they could not deny a word of it. But before I come to the partieulai-sof this part, I must sujiply a defect in my former relation ; and this was, I forgot to set down, among the rest, that just as we Were weighing tlie anchor, to set sail, there happened a little quarrel on board of our ship, which I was once afraid would have turned to a second mutiny ; nor was it appeased till the captain, rousing up his courage, and taking us all to his assistance, parted tliem by force, and, making two of the most refractory fellows i)risoners, he laid them in irons : and as they had been active in the former disorders, and let fall some ugly, dangerous words, the second time he threatened to carry them in irons to England, and have them hanged tlicre fur mutiny, and running away with tlie sliij). This, it seems, though tlio cai)tain did not intend to do it, frightened some other men in the ship ; and some of them had put it into the heads of the rest, that the captain only gave them good words for the present, till thi'y should come to some English port, and that then thoy should be all put into gaol, and triid for their lives. 'J'ho mate got intelligence of this, and acquainted us with it ; ijpon which it was desired that I, who still jMissed for a great nniu among them, should go down with the n\ate, and s;itisfy the men, and tell them that thoy might be UHsurcd, if thoy behaved well tho rest of the voyage, all they had done for the time jmst .should be pardoned. So I went, and after j.assing my honour's word to them, they upi)oared easy, and the more so when I caused the two men that were in irons to bo released and forgiven. liut this mutiny had brought lis to an anchor for that night ; tho wind also falling calm next n.orning, we found that our two men who had been hud in irons had btolen each of them a nuuskol, ;uid some other weapons (what powder or shot thoy had 230 Wr ,^:>sj^^.^ :ir "^^'X ^x^ CONDUCT OF THE ENGLISH. A\ e knew not), .iiul had taken the ship's pinnace, which was mot j'ot hauled up, and run away with her to their companions in roguery on shore. As soon as we found this, I onlei'cd tlic long-boat on shore with twelve men and the mate, and away they went to vo.ck the rogues ; but they could neither find them nor any of the rest, for they all fled into the woods when they saw the boat coming on shore. The mate was once resolved, ill justice to their roguery, to have destroyed their plantations, burned all their house- hold stuff and furniture, and left them to shift without it ; but having no orders, he let it all alone, left everything as he found it, and, bringing the pinnace away, came on board without them. These two men made their number five ; but the other three villains were so mucli more wicked than they, that after they had been two or three days together they turned the two new-comers out of doors to shift for themselves, and would have nothing to do with them ; nor could they, for a good while, be persuaded to give them any food : as for the Spaniards, they were not yet come. ■yVhen the Spaniards came first on shore, the business began to go forward : tlie Spaniards would have persuaded the three English brutes to have taken in their country- men again, that, as they said, they might be all one family ; but they would not hear of it : £0 the two poor fellows lived by themselves ; and finding nothing but industry and application would make them live comfortably, they pitched their tents on the north shore of the island, but a little'more to the west, to be out of danger of the savages, who always landed on the east parts of the island. Here they built them two huts, one to lodge in, and the other to lay up their magazines and stores in ; and the Spaniards having given them some corn for seed, and some of the peas which. I had left them, they dug, planted, and enclosed, after the pattern I had set for them all, and began to live pretty well. Their first crop of com was on the ground ; and though it was but a little bit of land which they had dug up at first, having had but a little time, yet it was enough to relieve them, and find them with bread and other eatables ; and one of the fellows being the cook's mate of the ship, Avas very ready at making soup, puddings, and such other preparations as the rice and the milk, and such, little flesh as they got, furnished him to do. They were going on in this little thriving position when the three unnatural rogues, their own countrymen too, in mere humour, and to insult them, came and bullied them, and told them the island was theirs ; that the governor, meaning me, had given them the possession of it, and nobody else had any right to it ; and that they should build no houses upon their ground, unless they would pay rent for them. The two men, thinking they were jesting at first, asked them to come in and sit down, and see what fine houses they were that they had built, and to tell them what rent they demanded ; and one of them merrily said, if they were the ground-landlords, he hoped, if they built tenements upon their land, and made improvements, they would, according to the custom of landlords, grant a long lease : and desired they would get a scrivener to draw the writings. One of the three, cursing and raging, told them they should see they were not in jest ; and going to a little place at a distance, where the honest men had made a fire to dress their victuals, he takes a firebrand, and claps it to the outside of their hut, and very fairly set it on fire ; and it would have been all burned down in a few minutes, if one of the two had not run to the fellow, thrust him away, and trod the fire out with his feet, and that not without some difiiculty too. The fellow was in such a rage at the honest man's thrusting him away, that returned upon him, with a pole he had in his hand, and had not the man avoided the blow ver\' ' ' ,' I ■ ^-^ ::in into the hut, ho had ended his days at r. i ■ \iiS KUDIXSON CRUSOE. f^ seeing tlio clanger they wore both in, ran in after him, and immediately they came both f.ut with their muskets, and the man that was first struck at with the pole knocked the Allow down that began the quarrel, with the stock of his musket, and that before the other two could come to help him ; and then, seeing the rest come at them, they stood together, and presenting the other ends of their pieces to them, bade them stand off. The othei-s had fire-arms with them too ; but one of the two honest men, bolder than liis comrade, and made desperate by his danger, told them, if they oflered to move hand or foot, they were dead men, and boldly commanded them to lay down their arms. They did not, indeed, lay down their arm.s, but seeing him so resolute, it brought them to a parley, and they con.sented to take their wounded man with them and be gone ; and, indeed, it .seems the fellow was wounded .sufficiently with the blow. However, they weri- much in the wrong, since they had the advantage, that they did not disarm them effectually, as they might have done, and have gone immediately to the Spaniards, and given them an account how the rogues had treated them ; for the three villains studied i.othing but revenge, and cveiy day gave them some intimation that they did so. But not to crowd this part with an account of the lesser part of their rogueries, such as treading down their corn ; shooting three young kids and a she-goat, which the poor men had got to breed up tame for their store ; and, in a word, plaguing them night and day in this manner ; it forced the two men to such a desperation, that they resolved to fight them all three, the fii-st time they had a fair opportunity. In order to do this, they res sword, and muttered some insolent things among themselves, of what they would do to the Spaniards too, when opportunity ofiered ; but the Spaniards, it seems, did not so perfectly understand them as to know all the particulars, only that, in general, they threatened them hard for taking the two Englishmen's part. Whither they went, or how they bestowed their time that evening, the Spaniards said they did not know ; biit it seems they wandered about the country, part of the night, and then, lying down in the place which I used to "call my bower, they were weary and ovex'slept themselves. The case was this : they had resolved to stay till midnight, and so to take the two poor men when they were asleep, and as they 233 '^:5 — ^T;? RODINSON CRUSOi:. acknowledged afterwards, intended to set fire to their liuts -while they were in Ihc and either bum them there, or murder them as they came out. As malice seldu;.. sleeps very sound, it was very strange they shoiild not have been kept awake. However, as the two men had also a design upon them, as I have said, though a much fairer one than that of burning and murdering, it happened, and veiy luckily for them all, that tliey were uji and gone abroad before the bloody-minded rogues came to their huts. "When they came there, and fonu4 the men gone, Atkins, wl^Oj it seems, was the furwardest man, called out to his comrade, " Ha, Jack, liere's the nest, but the birds arc llowu." They mused awhile, to think -vyhat shoidd be the occasion of their being gone abroad so .'•oon, and suggested presently that the Spaniards had given them notice of it ; and with that they shook hands, and swore to one another that they would be revengetl of the Spaniards. As soon as they had made this bloody bargain, tluy fell to woi'k with the poor men's habitation ; thoy di4 not set fire, indeed, to anything, but they pulhd down both their houses, and pulled tbcm so limb from limb that they left not the least stick standing, or scarce any sigii on the ground where they stood ; they tore all thtir little collected household stufl'in pieces, and threw everything about in such a nuunier, that the poor men afterwards found some of their things a mile off their habitation. When they had done this, tliey pulled up all the yoijng trees which the poor men had planted ; pulled up an inclosui'c they had made to secure their cattle and their corn ; a:id, in a word, sacked and i)hindercd everything as completely as a horde of Tartars wotdd have done. The two men were, at this juncture, gone to find them out, and had resolved to fight them wherever they had been, though they Avero but two to three ; so that, had they met there certainly -would have been bloodshed among them, for they were all very stout, resolute fellows, to give them their due. But Providence took more care to keep them asunder than they thom.««elvos could do to meet ; for, as if they had dogged one another, when the three were gone thither, the two were here ; and afterwards, when the two went back to find them, the three -were come to the old habitation again : we shall see their difTcront conduct ju-escntly. AVhen the three came back like furious creatures, flushed with the rage which the work they had been about had ]iut them into, they came up to the Spaniards, and told them what they had done, by way of scofl'and bravado ; and one of them stepping up to one of the Spaniards, as if they had been a couple of boys at play, takes hold of his hat as it was ui)on his head, and giving it a twirl about, fleering in his face, s;iys to him, "And you. Seignior Jack Spaniard, shall have the same sauce, if you do not mend your manners." Tlie Spaniard, who, though a quiet, civil man, was as bmve a man as could be, and, withal, a strong, well-made man, looked at him for a good while, and then, having n"> wea})ou in his liand, stepped gravely up to him, and, with one blow of his fist, knocked him down, as an ox is felled with a pole-axe; at which one of the rogues, as in.solent as the first, fired his pistol at the Spaniard immediately : he missed his body, indeed, for the bullets went through his hair, but one of them touched the tip of hisear, and he bleil pretty much. The blood made the Spaniard believe he was more hurt than ho really was, and that put him into some heat, for before ho acted all in a perfect calm; but now, re-iolving to go through with his work, he stooped, and took the fellow's musket whom j lie had knocked down, and was just going to shoot the man who had fired at him, when the re^t of the Spaniards, lieing in the cave, came out, and calling to him not to shoot, ''"'^' •■""■■■' '■' -ecured the other two, and took their arms from them. .■■'• t-"N; ^ -v^.^ TIIK ENGLISH. MEN DIoAR.MED. '-x-f*^ Wheu tliey were tluis clisai'med, and found they had made all the Spaniards their enemies, as well as their own countrymen, they began to cool, and, giving the Spaniards better words, would have had their arms again ; but the Spaniards considering the feud that was between them and the other two Englishmen, and that it would be the best method they coiild take to keep them from killing one another, told them they would do them no harm ; and if they would live peaceably, they would be very willing to assist and associate with them, as they did before ; but that they could not think of giving them their arms again, while they appeared so resolved to do mischiefwith them to their own countrymen, and had even threatened them all to make them their servants. The rogues were now no more capable to hear reason than to act with reason ; but being refused their arms, they went raving away, and raging like madmen, threatening what they would do, though they had no fire-arms. But the Spaniards, despising their threatening, told them they should take care how they offered any injury to their planta- tion or cattle ; for if they did, they would shoot them' as they would ravenous beasts, wherever they found them ; and if they fell into their hands alive, they should certainly be hanged. However, this was far from cooling them, but away they went, raging and swearing like furies of hell. As soon as they were gone, the two men came back, in passion and rage enough also, though of another kind ; for having been at their planta- tion, and finding it all demolished and destroyed, as above, it will easily be supposed they liad provocation enough. They could scarce have room to tell their tale, the Spaniards were so eager to tell them theirs ; and it was strange enough to find that three men should thus bully nineteen, and receive no punishment at all. The Spaniards, indeed, despised them, and especially, having thus disarmed them, made light of their threatenings ; but the two Englishmen resolved to have their remedy against them, what pains soever it cost to find them out. But the Spaniards interposed here too, and told them, that as they had disarmed them, they could not consent that they (the two) should pursue them with fire-arms, and perhaps kill them. " But," said the grave Spaniard, who was their governor, " we will endeavour to make them do you justice, if you will leave it to us : for there is no doubt but they will come to us again, when their passion is over, being not able to subsist without our assistance. We promise you to make no peace with them without having a full satisfaction for you ; and, upon this condition, we hope you will promise to use no violence with tliem, other than in your own defence," The two Englishmen yielded to this very awkwardly, and with great reluctance ; but the Spaniards protested that they did it only to keep them from Ijloodshed, and to make them all easy at last. " For," said they, " we are not so many of us ; here is room enough for us all, and it is a great pity that we should not be all good friends." At length they did consent, and waited for the issue of the thing, living for some days with the Spaniards ; for their own habitation was destroyed. In about five days' time, the three vagrants, tired with wandering, and almost starved with hunger, having chiefly lived on turtles' eggs all that while, came back to the grove ; and finding my Sjianiard, who, as I have said, was the governor, and two more with him, walking by the side of the creek, they came up in a very submissive, humble manner, and begged to be received again into the family. The Spaniards used them civilly, but told them they had acted so unnaturally to their countrymen, and so very grossly to them (the Spaniards), that they could not come to any conclusion without < >nsulting the two Englishmen and the rest ; but, however, they would go to them and iliscourse about it, and they should know in half an hour. It may be guessed that they wore very hard put to it ; for, it seems, as they were to wait this half hour for an ansv,^er, m \ ^-^ '^^ '^S^ ROBINSON* CRUSOE. tljcy l>cggc(l they would send them out some bread in the mean time, which they did, sending, at the same time, a large piece of goat's flesh, and a boiled parrot, which they ate very heartily, for they were hungr}' enough. After half an hour's consultation, they were called in, and a long debate ensued, thoir two c<»untr}-men charging them with the niin of all their labour, and a design to murder thi-m ; all which they owned before, and therefore could not deny now. Upon the wliolo, the Spaniards acted the moderators between them ; and as they had obliged the two Englishmen not to hurt the three while they were naked and unarmed, so they now obligcil the three to go and rebuild their fellows' two huts, one to be of the sameanumi)s, and they were ready for going any way that their thoughts guided them. Being thus got up, lie looked out ; but, being dark, he could see little or nothing ; and, besides, the trees which I had planted, ivs in my former account is described, and which wore now grown tall, intercepted his sight, so that he could only look \ip, and see that it was a clear sUirlight night, and, hearing no noi.se, he returned and laid him doMu again ; but it was all one : he could not sleep, nor could hecomiHi.se himself to anything like rest ; but his thoughts were to the last degree uneasy, and he knew not for what. Having made some noise with rising and walking al)out, going out and coming in, nnotlior of them waked, and, calling, lusked who it was that was tip. The governor told miM^^ ?i^.^^/r^^^- (y' him how it had been witli him. "Say you so 1 " says the other Spaniard ; "such things are not to be slighted, I assure you ; there is certainly some mischief working near us ;" and presently he asked him. " AVhere are the Englishmen ? "— " They are all in their huts," says he, « safe enough." It seems the°Spaniards had kept possession of the main apartment, and had made a pla( for the three Englishmen, who, since their last mutiny, were always quartered by themselves, and could not come at the rest. "Well," says the Spaniard, "there is something in it, I am persuaded, from my own experience. I am satisfied our spirits embodied have a converse with, and receive intelligence from, the spirits unembodied, and inhabiting the invisible world ; and this fnendly notice is given for our advantage, 237 if we knew how to make use of it. .^'^-'^ RODINSON CRUSOE. I* 1 :1 Como,"sny3 ho, "lot us go and look abroad ; and if we find nothing at all in it to justify the trouble, I'll tell you a story to the purpose, that shall convince you of the justice of my proj)osiiig it." In a word, they went out, to go up to the top of tho hill, where I used to go ; but they being strong, and a good comj)any, not alone, as I was, used none of my cautions, to go up by the ladder, and pulling it up after them, to go up a second stage to the top, but were going round through the grove, unconcerned and unwary, when they were surprised with scerng a light as of fire, a very little way off from them, and hearing the voices of men — not of one or two, but of a great number. In all the discoveries I had made of the savages landing on tho island, it was my constiiYjt care to prevent them making the least discoveiy of there being any inhabitant upon tho place ; and when by any occasion they came to know it, they felt it sO effectu- ally that they that got away were scarce able to give any account of it ; for we disappeared as soon as possible ; nor did ever any that had seen me, escape to tell any one else, except it was the three savages in our hvst encounter, who jumped into the boat ; of whom, I mentioned, I was afrAid tliey should go home and bring more help. Whether ft ^\ .is the consequence of the escape of those men that so great a number camie now together, or whether they came ignomntly, and by accident, on their usual bloody errand, the Spaniards could not, it seems, understand; but, wOiatevcr it was, it had been their bu.sincss either to have concealed themselves, or not to have seen them at all, much loss to have let the savages have seen that there were any inhabitants in the i)lace ; or to have fallen upon them so efTectually as that not a man of thtin .should have escaped, which could only liiive been by getting in l)i'tween them and their boats : but this presence of mind was wanting to them, which was the ruin of their tranquillity for a great while. We rtced not doubt but that the governor and the man with him, surprised with this «ight, ran back immediately and raised their fellow.s, giving them an account of tho imminent danger they were all in, and they again as readily took the alarm ; but it was impns'dble to persuade them to stay close within "NVhcre they were, bitt they mitst all nui Out to see how things stood. While it was dark, indeed, they were well enough, and they had opportunity enough, for sottio hours, to view them l)y the light of three fires they had mixd'e at a distance from one another ; what they were doing they knew not, and what to do themselves they knew not. For, first, the enemy were too many ; and, secondly they did not keep together, but were divided into several partie.s, and were on shore in seveml places. Tho Spaniards were in no small consternation at this sight ; and, a.^ they found that tho fellows r:ui straggling all over tho shore, they niado no doubt but, fii-st or huit, some of them would chop iu upon their habitation, or upon .some other place where they would see tho token of inhabitant ; and they were in great perplexity alo for fear of their flock of goats, which wouUl have been little less than starving them, if they should have been destroyed ; .so the first thing they resolved ujton Wiis to ilispatch three men away before it was li^dlt, two Spaniards and one Knglishnian, to drive all the goats away to tho great valley where tho cavo was, and, if need were, to drive them into the very cave itself. C?ould they have seen the salvages all together in one body, and at a distance from their canoes, they resolved, if there had been a hundred of them, to have att^icked them ; but that could not be obtained, for they were .some of them two miles off from the others : and, as it appeared afterwards, weiv of two dilleront nati(Uis. After having mu.sed a great while on tho coui-so they should take, and boating their In-ains ni considering their pre.sent circumstances, they resolved, at last, while it was still "^^^^M^^'r.^ A FIGHT BETWEEN THE SAVAGES, dark, to send the old savage, Friday's fother, out as a spy, to learn, if possible, something concerning them— as what they came for, ^^dlat they intended to do, and the like. The old man readily undertook it ; and stripping himself quite naked, as most of the savages were, away he went. After he had been gone an hour or two, he brings word that he had been among them imdiscovered ; that he found they were two parties, and of two several nations, who had war with one another, and had had a great battle in their own country ; and that both sides having had several prisoners taken in the fight, they were, by mere chance, landed all on the same island, for the devouring their prisoners and making merry ; but their coming so by chance to the same place had spoiled all their mirth — that they were in a great rage at one another, and were so near, that he believed they would fight again as soon as daylight began to appear ; but he did not perceive that they had any notion of anybody being on the island but themselves. He had hardly made an end of telling his story, when they could perceive, by the unusual noise they made, that the two little armies were engaged in a bloody fight. Friday's father used all the arguments he could to persuade our people to lie close, and not be seen ; he told them their safety consisted in it, and that they had nothino' to do but lie still, and the savages would kill one another to their hands, and then the rest would go away ; and it was so to a tittle. But it was impossible to prevail, especially upon the Englishmen ; theh' curiosity was so importunate upon their j)rudentials, that they must run out and see the battle • however, they \ised some caution, too ; they did not go openly, just by their own dwelling, but went farther into the woods, and placed themselves to advantage, where they might secui-ely see them manage the fight, and, as they thought, not be seen by them ; but it seems the savages did see them, as we shall find hereafter. The battle was very fierce ; and, if I might believe the Englishmen, one of them said he could perceive that some of them were men of great bravery, of invincible spirits, and of great policy in guiding the fight. The battle, they said, held two hours before they could guess which party would be beaten ; but then that party which was nearest our people's habitation began to appear weakest, and after some time more, some of them began to fly ; and this put our men again into a great consternation, lest any one of those that fled should run into the grove before their dwelling for shelter, and thereby involun- tarily discover the place ; and that, by consequence, the pursuers would do the like in search of them. Upon this, they resolved that they would stand armed within the Avail, and whoever came into the grove, they resolved to sally out over the wall and kill them, so that, if possible, not one should return to give an account of it ; they ordered also that it should be done with their swords, or by knocking them down with the stocks ' of their muskets, but not by shooting them, for fear of raising an alarm by the noise. As they expected it fell out j three of the routed army fled for life, and crossing the creek, ran directly into' the place, not in the least knowing wliither they went, but i running as into a thick wood for shelter. The scout they kept to look abroad gave notice of this within, with this addition, to our men's great satisfaction, viz., that the conquerors had not pursued them, or seen which way they were gone ; upon this, the Spaniard governor, a man of humanity, would not suflfer them to kill the three fugitives, but sending three men out by the top of the hill, ordered them to go round, come in behind them, and surprise and take them prisoners ; which was done. The residue of the conquered people fled to their canoes, and got oflf to sea ; the victors retired, made no pursuit, or very little, but drawing themselves into a body together, gave two great screamiiii- -i^ • ■ -' liich they su2:)posed was by way of triumph — and so the fight ended RULliNbuN CKUSUK. iiml tliu same diiv, al)Out three o'clock in the afternoon, tluy also niarchod to tliuir c;ui.>es. An.l thus the Spiuiiards had the island again free to themsolvos, their fright was over, and they saw no savages for several years after. After they were all gone, the Spaniards came out of thiir den, and viewing the field of battle, they found about two-and-thirty men dead ou the spot ; some were killed with great long arrows, somo of which were found sticking in their bodies ; but most of them were killed with great woo like beef and mutton, thougli it was supposed it was not to bo till they were dead, hud something in it so horrible that it nauseated their very stomachs, made them sick when they thought of it, and filled their minds with such unusual terror, that they were not themselves for some weeks after. This, as I said, tamed even the three English brutes I have been speaking of; ami for a gieat while after they were tractable, and went about the common business of the whole society well enough — planted, sowed, reapeil, and began to be all naturalised to the country. ]]ut some time after this they fell into such simple measures agtun, as brought them into a great deal of trouble. They had taken three prisoners, aa I observed ; and these three being lusty, stout young fellows, they made them servants, and taught them to work for them ; and as slaves they did well enough ; but they diil not take their measures with them as I did by my man Friday, vi/., to begin with them upon the principle of having s;ived their lives, and then instruct them in the rational principles of life, much less of religion — civilising and reducing them by kind usage and aflectionato arguments ; but as they gave them their food every day, so they gave them their Avork too, and kept them fully ciiiployed in dnidgery enough ; but they failed in this by it, that they never had them to assist them and fight for them a-s 1 had my man Friday, who was as ti-ue to me as the Very flesh upon my bones. Hut to come to the family i>art. Hiing all now good friends, for common danger, as I .'inoIi«]i.>d. tlu-y 2^^^-*^ '--^=^-m5^^mimi 'V70vt1c1 conclude the savages Iiad killed us all, and we were gone, and so our supply would go too. But as to their corn and cattle, they agreed to remove them into the valley where my cave was, where the land was as proper for both, and where, indeed, there was land enough ; however, upon second thoughts, they altered one part of their resolution too, and I'esolved only to remove part of I heir cattle thither, and plant part of their corn there; and so if one part was (l<-.tioyed, the other might be saved. And one part of 2:)rudence they used, which it was very well they did, that they never trusted those three savages, wliich they had taken prisoners, with knowing anything of the plantation they liad made in that valley, or of any cattle they had there, much less of the cave there, which they kept, in case of necessity, as a safe reti'eat ; and thither they carried also the two barrels of powder, wliich I had sent them at my coming away. But, howcvei", they resolved not to change their habitation ; yet they agreed, that as I had carefully covered it first with a wall or fortification, 241 'A m 1! \y \i^ ROBINSON CRUSOh:. mil then •with a gmvc of trees, so seeing tlicir safety consisted entirely in their hting concealed, of which they were now fully convinced, they set to work to co-\ er and conceal the jdace yet more effectually than before. For this purpose, as 1 planted trees, or rather thrust in stakes, which in time all grew up to be trees, for Honie good distance before the entrance into my apartments, they went on in the same manner, and filled up the rest of that whole space of ground from the trees I had set quite down to the side of the creek, where, as I said, I landed my floats, and even into the very ooze where the tide flowed, not so much as leaving anyplace to land, (ir any ^\"\\ that there had been any landing thereabouts : these stakes also being of a wood veiy forward to grow, as I have noted formeily, they took care to have them generally much larger and tixller than those which I had planted ; and as thoy grew apace, so they planted them so very thick and close together, that when they had been three or four years grown, there was no piercing with the eye any considerable way into the plantation \ and as for that part which I had planted, the trees were giown as thick as a man's thigh, and among them they placed so many other short ones, and fo thick, that, in a word, it stood like a palisado a quarter of a mile thick, and it was next to imj)o.s.'iiblo to penetrate it, but with a little army to cut it all down — for a little dog could hardly get between the trees, they stood so close. But this was not all ; for they did the same by all the ground to the right hand and to the left, and round even to the side of the hill, leaving no way, not so much as for themselves, to come out but l»y the ladder i)laced up to the side of the hill, and then lil'tcd \ip, and placed again from the first stage up to the top ; and when the ladder was taken down, nothing but what had wings or witchcraft to assist it could come at them. This was excellently well contrived ; nor was it less than what they afterwards found occasion for, which served to convince me, that as human prudence has the authority of Providence to justify it, so it has doubtless the direction of Providence to sot it to work ; and if wo li-stened carefully to the voice of it, I am persuaded we might jirevent mnny of the disasters which our lives are now, by our own negligence, subjected to. I return to the stor}'. They lived two years after this in perfect retirement, and had no more visits from the savages. They had, indeed, an alarm given them one morning, V liieh put them into a great consternation ; for, some of the Spaniards being out early M- morning on the west side, or rather end, of the island (which was that end where I never went, for fear of being discovered), they were surprised with seeing above twenty canoes of Indians just coming on shore. They made the best of their way home in hurry enough ; and, giving the alarm to their comrades, they kept close all that day and the ne.xt, going out only at night to make their observation ; but they had the good luck to bo mistaken, for wherever the savages went, they did not land that time on the islaml, but pursued some other design. And now they had another broil with the three Englishmen; one of whom, a most turbulent fellow, being in a rago at one of the three slaves, whom I mentioned they had taken, because the fellow had not done .something right which he bid him do, and seemeil u little untractablo in his showing him, drew a hatchet out of a frog-belt, in which ho wore it by his side, and fell upon the poor .savage, not to correct him, but to kill him. One of the Spaniards, who was by, seeing hiiu give the fellow a barbarous cut with tho liatiliot, which ho aimed at his head, but struck into his shoulder, so that ho thought lit! had cut tho jmor creature's arm off, ran to him, and entreating him not to murder tho I' v.r man. placed himself between him and tho .savage, to ])revent the mischief. Tho f.llow, being enraged tho more at this, struck at tho Spaniard with his hatchet, and THE SPANIARDS AND ENGLISH. ,'ore lie would serve liim as lie intended to serve tlie savage ; wliicli the Spaniard per- ceiving, avoided the blow, andwitli a sliovel Avliich lie liad in his hand (for they were all working in the field about their corn land) knocked the brute down. Another of the Englishmen, running at the same time to help his comrade, knocked the Spaniard down ; and then two Spaniards more came in to help their man, and a third Englishman fell in upon them. They had none of them any fire-arms or any other weapons but hatchets nnd other tools, except this third Englishman ; he had one of my rusty cutlasses, with which he made at the two last Spaniards, and wounded them both. This fray set the whole family in an uproar, and, more help coming in, they took the three Englishmen prisoners. The next question was, what should be done with them ? They had been so often mutinous, and were so very furious, so desperate, and so idle withal, they knew not what course to take with them, for they were mischievous to the highest degree, and cared not Avhat hurt they did to any man ; so that, in short, it was not safe to live Avith them. The Spaniard who was governor told them, in so many Avords, that if they had been of his OAvn country, he would have hanged them ; for all laws and all governors Avere to preserve society, and those avIio Avere dangerous to the society ought to be expelled out of it •, but as they Avere Englishm.en, and that it Avas to the generous kindness of an Englishman that they all owed their preservation and deliv*erance, he would use them Avith all possible lenity, and Avould leave them to the judgment of the other t-no Englishmen, Avho were their countrymen. One of the tAvo honest Englishmen stood up, and said they desired it might not be left to them — " For," says he, "I am sure AVe ought to sentence them to the galloAvs , " and Avith that he gives an account hoAV Will Atkins, one of tlie three, had proposed to have all the fiA-e Englishmen join together, and murder all the Spaniards Avhen they Avere in their sleep. When the Spanish governor heard this, he calls to Will Atkins, " How, Seignioi Atkins, would you murder us all 1 What have you to say to that 1 " The hardened Aillain Avas so far from denying it, that he said it Avas true, and sAvorethey would do it still before they had done Avith them. " Well, but Seignior Atkins," says the Spaniaid, " what have we done to you that you Avill kill us 1 And what Avould you get by killing us 1 And what must Ave do to prevent your killing us 1 Must Ave kill you, or you kill us 1 Why will you put us to the necessity of this. Seignior Atkins 1 " says the Spaniaid, very calmly, and smiling. Seignior Atkins was in such a rage at the Spaniard's making a jest of it, that, had he not been held by three men, and Avithal had no Aveapon near him, it Avas thought that he Avould have attempted to kill the Spaniard in the middle of all the company. This hair-brain carriage obliged them to consider seriously Avhat Ava^ to be done ; the two Englishmen, and the Spaniard Avho sav^ed the poor savage, Avere of the opinion that they should hang one of the three, for an example to the rest, and that particularly it should be he that had tAvice attempted to commit murder with his hatchet ; and indeed, there Avas some reason to believe that he had done it, for the pooi savage was in such a miserable condition Avith the Avound he had received, that it Avas thought he could not live. But the governor Spaniard still said no ; it Avas an English- man that had saved all their lives, and he Avould never consent to put an Englishman to death, though he had murdered half of them ; nay, he said, if he had been killed himself by an Englishman, and had time left to speak, it should be that they shoukl pardon him. This AVas so positively insisted on by the governor Spaniard, that there avrs no gain- w >-* oi.iN.-.uN ckusol:. ,f>^»t»* I ^ siiying it ; ami as merciful counsels arc most apt to prevail, -where they arc so earnestly |.rp.s.se(l, so they all came into it ; but then jt was to be considered what should be done to keep tlieni from doing the mischief thoy designed ; for all agreed, governor and all, that meaii.s were to be used for preserving the society from danger. After a long debate, it was agrccil, first, that they should be disarmed, and not permitted to have either g\in, powder, shot, sword, or any weapon ; and should be turned out of the society, anse under the side of a hill, having some trees growing already on three sides of it, so that by planting others it would bo very easily covert d from the sight, unless narrowly searched for. They desired some dried goat skins, lor beds ami covering, which weie given them ; and upon gi^ing their words that tlicv would not disturb the rest, or injiire any of their plantations, they gave thom hatchets, and what other tools they could spare ; some ])ea.s, barley, and rice, for sowing, and, in ••I wonl, anything tliey wanted, except arms and ammunition. riiey livcil in this .separate condition about six month.s, and had got in their fir.sl harvest, though the (juantity was but small, the jiarcel of land they had planted being but httlo ; fur, indeed, having all their plantation to form, they had a great deal of ^^ork \\\mn their hands; and when they came to make boards and pots, and such tliing.M, they wore rpnte out of their element, and could make nothing of it ; and when M ■^^ %f ROniXSON CRUSOE. the rainy season camo on, for want of a cave in tlie earth, they tould not keep their grain dry, and it was in great danger of spoiling ; and this humbled them much : so they came and begged the Spaniards to help tliem, Mhich they veiy readily did ; and in four days -worked a great hole in the side of the hiJl for them, big enough to secure their com and other things from the rain : but it waa a ])Oor place, at best, compared to mine, and especially as mine was then, for the Sjjaniards had greatly enlarged it, and made several new apartments in it. About three quarters of a year after this separation, a new frolic took these rogues which, together with the former villany they had committed, brought mischief enough upon them, and hud very near been the niin of the wliole colony. The three new asso- ciates begun, it seems, to bo weary of the laborious life they led, and that without hojic of bettering their circumstances : and a wliim took them tliat they would make a voyage to the continent, from whence the savages came, and would try if they could seize xipon .some jirisonei-s among the natives there, and bring them home, so as to make them do the laborious jiart of the work for them. The jiroject was not so i»reposterou.s, if they had gone no further. But they did nothing, and i)roposcd nothing, but had either mischief in the design or miscbicf in the event. And if I may give my opinion, they seemed to be under a blast from Heaven ; for if we will not allow a visible curse to pursue visible crimes, how shall we reconcile the events of things with the Di\-ine justice 1 It was certainly an apparent vengeance on their crime of mutiny and ])iracy that brought them to the state they were in ; and they showed not the least remorse for the crime, but added new Tillanies to it, such as the piece of monstrous cnielty of wounding a ]ioor slave because lie did not, or i>erhap8 could not, understand to do what he was directed, and to wound him in such a manner as made him a cripple all his life, and in a place where no surgeon or medicine could be had for his cure ; and, what was still worse, the murderous intent, or, to do justice to the crime, the intentional murder, for such to be sure it wixs, as was aftenvards the formed design they all laid, to murder the Spaniards in cold blood, and in their .sleep. But I leave observing, and retuni to the story. The three fellows came down to the Spaniards one morning, and iti vciy humble terms desired to be admitted to speak with them. The Spuniards very readily heard what they had to say, which was this : — That they wore tired of living in the manner they did, and that they were not handy enough to make the ncces.saries they wanted, and that having no helji, they found they slioidd be starved ; but if the S])uniards would give thorn leave to take one of the canoes which they camo over in, and give them arms and ammunition in-o])ortioned to their defence, they would go over to the main and seek their fortunes, and so delivei- them from the trouble of supplying them with any other provisions. The Spaniards were glad enough to get rid of them, but very honestly reju-csonted to them the certain destruction they were ninning into ; told them they had suffered such hardships xipon that very spot, that they could, without any Bj)irit of i.rophecy, tell them they would bo starved or murdered, and bade them consider of it. Thu men replied, audaciously, they .should be starved if they stayed here, \W they could not work, and would not work, and they could but be starved abroad ; and if they were inurdered, tlicro was an end of them ; and, in short, insisted imiiortunntoly »lH.u tli(r lluir new masters. Wiion the three wanderers had given this unaccounti\ble history or journal of tlieir voyage, the Spaniard asked th«m where their new family was; and being told that they had brought them on shore, and put them into one of their huts, and were come \ip to bog some victuals for them, they (the Spaniards) and the other two Engli.shmon, that is to i^ay, tho whole colony, resolved to go all down to the place and sec them ; and did so, and Friday's father with them. When thoy came into tho hut, there thoy sat, all bound ; f»r when thoy had bn uglit -is ^\X^Jji "^-2 f ^h( -A> ROBINSON CRUSOE m on shore, Ihcy bound tlieir handa, that they might not take the boat and uiako I ii'ir escape ; there, I say, tliey sat, all of them stark naked. First, there were three men lustv, comely fellow.^, well-shaped, sti-aight and fair limbs, about thii-ty to thirty- five years of age ; and five women, whereof two might be from thirty to forty ; two more not above four or five and twenty ; and the fifth, a tall, comely maiden, about Kixteen or seventeen. The women were well-favoured, agreeable pei-sons, both in shape and features, only tawny ; and two of them, had they been perfectly white, would liavo i)a.s.scd for very handsome women, even in London itself, having pleasant, agreeable countenances, and of a very modest behaviour ; especially when they camo aftorwardn to be clothed and dressed, as they called it, though that dress was very indifferent, it must be confesiscd. The sight, you may be sure, was something uncouth to our Spaniards, who were, to crivo them a just character, men of the best behaviour, of the most calm, sedate tempoi-s, 1 perfect good humour, that ever I met with ; and, in particular, of the most modesty; I >:iy, the sight was very uncouth, to see three naked men and five naked women, all together bound, and in the most miserable circumstances that human nature could bo supposed to be, viz., to bo expecting every moment to bo dragged out, and have their ' lins knocked out, and then to be eaten up like a calf that is killed for a damty. The first thing they did was to cause the old Indian, Friday's father, to go in, and see, first, if he knew any of them, and then if he understood any of their speech. Aa soon as the old man came in, he looked .seriously at them, but knew none of them ; nuither could any of them understand a word he said, or a sign he could make, except one of the women. However, this was enough to answer the end, which was to satisfy thenx that tlio men into whose hands they were fallen were Christians ; that they abhon-ed eating men or women ; and that they might be sure they would not lie killetl As soon as they were a.ssured of this, they discovered such a joy, and by such awkward gestures, several ways, as is hard to describe ; for it seems they were of several nationa The woman who was their interpreter was bid, In the next place, to ask them if they were willing to be servants, and to work for the men who had bi-ought them away, to save their lives ; at which they all fell a dancing ; and presently one fell to taking up thi.s, and another that, anything that lay next, to carry on their shoulders, to intimate they were willing to work. The governor, who found that the having women nraong them would presently bo attended with some inconvenience, and might occasion some strife, and jiorhups blood, asked the three men what they intended to do with those women, and how they inti-nded to use them, whether as servants or as wives ? One of the Englishmen answered, very boldly and readily, that they woidd use them as both ; to which the governor said, " I am not going to restrain you from it — you are your own masters aa to that ; but this I think is Init just, for avoiding disorders and quarrels among you, and I desire it of you for that reason only, viz. : — That you will all engage, that if any of you take any of these women as a wife, that he shall take but one; and that, having taken one, none else shall touch her ; for though we cannot marry any one of you, yet it is but reasonable that, while *y"U stay here, the woman any of you lakes .shall bo njuintaiiied by the man lliut takes her, and should be his wife — I mean," says he, '• while ho continues here, and that none else .shall have anything to do with her." All this appealed so just, that every one agreed to it without any difficulty. 'J'lien the Englishmen a.sked the Spaniards if they designed to take any of them. But every one of them answered, "No." Some of them said they had wives in Spain, 250 THE CHOICE OF WIVES. !|y and tlie others did not like women that vrerc not Christians ; and all together declared that they would not touch one of them, which was an instance of such virtue as I have not met with in all my travels. On the other hand, to be short, the five Englishmen took them every one a Avife — that is to say, a temporary wife ; and so they set up a new form of living ; for the Spaniards and Friday's father lived in my old habitation, which they had enlarged exceedingly within. The three servants which were taken in the last battle of the savages lived with them ; and these carried on the main part of the colony, supplied all the rest with food, and assisted them in anything as they could, or as they found necessity required. But the wonder of the story was, how five such refractory, ill-matched fellows should agree about these women, and that two of them should not choose the same woman, especially seeing two or three of them were, without comparison, more agreeable than the others ; but they took a good way enough to prevent quarrelling among themselves, for they set the five women by themselves in one of their hitts, and they Avent all into the other hut, and drew lots among them Avho should choose first. He that drew to choose fii'st went away by himself to the hut where the poor naked creatures were, and fetched out her he chose ; and it was worth observing, that he that chose first took her that was reckoned the homeliest and oldest of the five, Avhich made mirth enough among the rest ; and even the Spaniai'ds laughed at it ; but the fellow considered better than any of them, that it was application and business they were to expect assistance in, as much as in anything else j and she proved the best Avife of all the parcel. When the poor Avomen saAV themselves set in a roAV thus, and fetched out one by one, the terrors of their condition returned upon them again, and they firmly believed they Avere noAV going to be devoured. Accordingly, Avhen the English sailor came in and fetched out one of them, the rest set up a most lamentable cry, and hung about her, and took their leave of her Avith such agonies and affection as Avould haA'e grieved the hardest heart in the Avorld ; nor was it possible for the Englishmen to satisfy them that they were not to be immediately murdered, till they fetched the old man, Friday's father, A^•ho immediately let them know that the five men, Avho Avere to fetch ther^i out one by one, had chosen them for their Avives. When they had done, and the fright the Avomen AVere in Avas a little over, the men AA-ent to Avork, and the Spaniards came and helped them ; and in a fcAV hours they had ]3uilt them every one a neAV hut or tent for their lodging apart ; for those they had already were croAvded Avith their tools, household stuff", and provisions. The three Avicked ones had pitched farthest off, and the tAvo honest ones nearer, but both on the north shore of the island, so that they continued separated as before ; and thus my island Avas peopled in three places, and, as T might say, three toAvns Avere begun to be built. And here it is very well worth observing that, as it often happens in the Avorld (Avhat thtt wise ends of God's providence are, in such a disposition of things, I cannot say), the two honest felloAvs had the two worst Avives ; and the three reprobates, that AA-ere scarce Avorth hanging, that were fit for nothing, and neither seemed born to do themselves good nor any one else, had three clever, diligent, careful, and ingenious wives ; not that the first two were bad wives, as to their temper or humour, for all the five Avere moi^t AAdlling, quiet, passive, and subjected creatures, rather like slaves than wiA^es ; but my meaning is, they Avere not alike capable, ingenious, or industrious, or alike cleanly an 1 I leat. R(Ji;l.\.SON CRL'.S(jE Si Another observation I must niak<', to the honour of a diligent application on one hand, ami to the disgivice of a .slothful, negligent, idle temper on the other, that when T came to the })lace, and viewed the several improvements, jtlantings, and management of the several little colonies, the two men had so far outgone the three, that there was no comparison. They had, indeed, both of them as much ground laid out for corn as tlicy ■wanted, and the reason wa.«<, because, according to my rule, nature dictated that it was to no ]»uri>oso to sow more coni than they wanted ; but the difference of the cultivation, of the planting, of the fences, and, indeed, of everything else, was easy to be seen at lli-st view. The two men bad innumoi-able young trees planted about tlicir huts, so that, when you came to the place nothing was to be seen but a wood ; and though tliey had twice had their plantation demolished, once by their own countrymen, and once by the enemy, as shall be shown in its place, yet they had restored all again, and everything was thriving and flourishing about them : they had grapes planted in order, and managed like a vineyard, though they had themselves never seen anything of that kind ; and, by their good ordering their vines, their grapes were as good again as any of the others They had also found themselves out a retreat in the thickest part of the woods, where though there was not a natural cave, as I had found, yet they made one with incessant labour of their hands, and where, when the mischief which followed happened, they secured their wives and children so as they could never be found : they having, by sticking innnmerablo stakes and poles of wood which, as I said, grew so readily, made the grove, imjtassable, except in some j»laces, where they climbed up to get over the outside part, and then went on by ways of their own le;',viiig. As to the three reprobates, as I justly cull them, though tlioy were much civilised by their settlement compared to what they were before, and wore not so quarrelsome, having not the .same ojiportunity, yet one of the certain companions of a profligate mind ne\er left them, and that was their idleness. It is true, they planted corn, and made fences ; but Solomon's words were never better veriGed than in tliem — " I went by the vineyard of the slothful, and it was all overgrown with thorns;" for when the Spaniards came to view their crop, they could not sec it in .some places for weeds, the hedge had several gaps in it, where the wild goats liad got in and eaten up the c "ii ; })erhaps liere and there a dead b.i.sh was crammed in, to stop them out for the prcojnt, but it was only shutting the stable door after the steed was stolen : whereas, when they looked on the colony of the other two, there was the very face of imlustry and success upon all they did ; there Wivs not a weed to bo seen in all their corn, or a gap in any of tjieir hedges ; and they, on the other hand, verified Solomon's words in another jflaco, that " the diligent hand maketh rich ; " for everything grew and thrived, and they hal plenty within and without; they had more tame cattle than the other.i, more utensils and necessaries within dooi-s, and yet more pleasure and diversion too. It is true., the wives of the three were very handy and cleanly within dooi*s ; ami having learned the JCnglLsh ways of dressing and cooking from one of the other English- men, who, as I said, was a cook's niate on board the ship, they dressed their husband's victuals very nicely and well ; whereas the others coidd not bo brought to understan I it ; but then the husband, who, as I say, had been cook's mate, did it Iiim.self. But ai for the husbands of the three wives, they loitered about, fetched turtles' egg.s, and cauglit ri.shnnd birds; in a word, anything but labour; and tliey fared accordingly. The diligent lived Will and comfortably, an. ^feu^^ 0/ ^KE^/Mq; ^mk^K^^m ^ ^ But I now come to a scene different from all that had hajjpened before, either to them or to me ; and the origin of the story was this : — Early one morning, there came on shore five or six canoes of Indians or savtiges— call them which yoii please — • , and there is no room to doubt they came upon the old errand of feeding upon their v slaves ; but that part was now so familiar to the Spaniards, and to our men too, that they did not concern themselves about it as I did : but having been made sensible, by their experience, that their only business was to lie concealed, and that if they were not seen by any of the savages they would go off again quietly, when their business was done, having, as j^et, not the least notion of there being any inhabitants in the island ; I say, having been made sensible of this, they had nothing to do but give notice to all the three plantations to keep Avithin doors, and not show themselves, only placing a scout in a proper place, to give notice when the boats went to sea again. This was, without doubt, very right ; but a disaster spoiled all these measures, and made it known among the savages that there were inhabitants there ; ROBINSON CRUSOE. which was, in the end, the desolation of almost the whole colony. After the canoes with the savages were gone off, the Spaniards peeped abroad again; and some of then\ had the curiosity to go to the ])lace where they had been, to see what tliey had been doing. Here, to tlieir great surprise, they found thi'ee savages left behind, and lying fast asleep upon the ground. It was supposed they had cither been so gorged with their iuhniuan feast, that, like beasts, they were fallen asleep when the others went, or they had wandered into the woods, and did not come back in time to be taken in. The Spaniards wore greatly surprised at this sight, and perfectly at a loss what t.i do. The Spanish governor, as it happened, was with them, and his advice was asked, but he profe.Sfied he knew not what to do. As for slaves, they had enough already; and n.4 to killing them, there were none of them inclined to do that : the Spaniaitl governor told ine, they could not think of shedding innocent blood ; for as to them, the i)oor creatures liad done them no wrong, invaded none of their property, and they thoii^nt they had no just quarrel against them to take away their lives. And here I must, in justice to these Spaniards, observe, that let the accounts of Spanish cruelty iji Mexico and Peru be what they will, I never met "with seventeen men of any nation whatsoever, in any foreign country, who were so universally modest, temperate, virtuous, so very good-humoured, and so courteous, as these Spaniards : and as to cnielty, they had nothing of it iu their very nature : no inhumanity, no barbarity, no outrageous ]>assions ; and yet nil of them men of great courage and spirit. Their temper and calmness had appeared in their bearing the insufferable usage of the three Englishmen ; and their justice and humanity api)eared now in the case of the savages, as above. After some consulUition, they resolved upon this : that they would lie .still a while longer, till, it* l»o3sible, thcie three men inight be gone. But then the governor Si>aniard recollected that the three .savages had no boat ; and if they were left to roam about the island, they would certainly discover that there were inhabitants in it ; and so they should bo undone tliat way. Upon this, they went bock again, and there lay the fellows last nsleop still, so they resolvey carried them to the habitation of the two Englishmen. Hero they were .set to work, though it wivs not much thoy had for them to do ; and whether it was by ncgligenco in guarding thorn, or that they thought the fellows could not i.und themselves, I know not, but one of them ran away, and, taking to the woods, they could never hear of him any more. They had good reivson to believe he got home again sonu after iu .some other boats or eanoes of savages who aune on shore three or four weeks afterward.s, and who, carrying on their revels a.s usual, went oil" in two days' time. This thought terrilied them exeeedingly ; for they concluded, and that not without good cau.se indeed, that if this fellow eaino home safe among his comi-ades, ho would certainly give them an account that there wero i)eople in the i.sland, and also how few and weak they were ; for this 84»vngo, as obscrvoil bufore^ Jimd never been told, and it was very happy he had not, ho.v le, vv whei(^ tliey lived ; nor had he ever seen or heard the fiic of any of -34 ^«^^^^ ^^ manv th THE their guns, much less had they shown him tiny of their other retired phiccs ; such as the cave iu the valley, or the new retreat Avhich the two Englishmen had made, and the like. The fii'st testimony they had that this fellow had given intelligence of them was, that about two months after this, six canoes of savages, with about seven, eight, or ten men in a canoe, came rowing along the north side of the island, where they never used to come before, and landed, about an hour after sun-rise, at a convenient place, about a mile from the habitation of the two Englishmen, where this escaped man had been kept. As the Spaniard governor said, had they been all there, the damage would not have been so much, for not a man of them would have escaped ; but the case differed now, very much, for two men to fifty was too much odds. The two men had the happiness to discover them about a league off, so that it was above an hour before they landed ; and as they landed a mile from their huts, it was some time before they could come at them. Now, having great reason to believe that they were betrayed, the first thing they did was to bind the two slaves which were left, and cause two of the three men whom they brought with the women (who, it seems, proved very faithful to them) to lead them, with their two wives, and whatever they could carry away with them, to their retired places in the woods, which I have spoken of above, and there to bind the two fellows hand and foot, till they heard further. In the next place, seeing the savages were all come on shore, and that they had bent their course directly that way, they opened the fences where the milch cows were kept, and drove them all out j leaving their goats to straggle in the woods whither they pleased that the savages might think they were all bred wild ; but the rogue who came with them v,^as too cunning for that, and gave them an account of it all, for they went directly to the place. When the two poor frightened men had secured their wives and goods, they sent the other slave they had of the three who came with the women, and who was at their place by accident, away to the Spaniards with all speed, to give them the alarm, and desire speedy help, and, in the meantime, they took their arms, and what ammunition they had, aiid retreated towards the place in the wood where their wives were sent ; keeping' at a distance, yet so that they might see, if possible, which way the savages took. They had not gone .ar, but that from a rising ground they could see the little army of their enemies come on directly to their habitation, and, in a moment more, could see all their huts and household stuff flaming up together, to their great grief and mortifica- tion ; for they had a very great loss, to them irretrievable, at least for some time. :'liey kept their station for a while, till they found the savages, like wild beasts, spread 'icmselves all over the place, rummaging every way, and every place they could think t", in search of prey ; and in particular for the people, of whom now it plainly appeared oy had intelligence. The two Englishmen seeing this, thinking themselves not secure where they stood, :ause it was likely some of the wild people might come that way, and they might come lO many together, thought it proper to make another retreat about half a mile /iirther; believing, as it afterwards happened, that the farther they strolled, the fewer would be together. Their next halt was at the entrance into a very thick-grown part of the woods, and where an old trunk of a tree stood, which was hollow and vastly large ; and in this tree they both took their standing, resolving to see there what might offer. They had not stood there long before two of the savages appeared running directly that way, as if they alreiidy had notice where they stood, and were coming up to attack them; and a little w#<3 way fartlun- tlioy cspieil tliieo more coming after tliem, ami five more beyond them, :il cumin" the same way ; besides which, they si\w seven or eight more at a di:itance, runniii; another wav ; f'>r, in a word, thi-y ran every way, like sportsmen beating f(n' tliei -^— ^ K0L5INS0X CRUSOE. .■# The ])oor men were now in great i>eri)lexity whether they shoukl stand and keep their ])0.sture, or fly; bnt, after a very sliort debate with tliemselvefs they consider^], that if the savages ranged the country thus before lielp came, they might perliaps find out tlieir retreat in the woods, and then all would be lost ; so they resolved to stand thiin there, and if they were too many to deal with, then they would get up to the top of the tree, from whence they doubted not to defend themselves, fire excepted, as long as their aniniunition laated, though all the siivages that were landed, which was near fifty, were to attack them. Having resolved upon this, they next considered whether they should fire at the first two, or wait fijr the three, and so take the middle i)arty, by which the two and the five that followed would be .separated ; at length they resolved to let the fii-st two pass by, uidess they should spy them in the tree, and come to attack them. The first two savages confirmed them also in this i-esolution, by turning a little from them towards another part of the wood ; but the three, and the five after them, came forward directly to the tree, as if they had known the Engli-shmen were there. Seeing them come so sti-aight towards them, they resolved to take them in a line as they came ; and a:^ they resolved to fire but one at a time, ]ierhaps the first shot might hit them all three ; for which i)urposo the man who was to fire put three or four small bullets into his piece ; and having a fair loop-hole, as it were, from a broken hole in the tree, he took a sure aim, without being seen, waiting till they were within about thirty yards of the tree, so that ho could not miss. ^^'hilc they were thus waiting, and the savages came on, they jdainly saw that one of the three was the runaway .savage that had escaped from them ; and they both knew him distinctly, and resolved that, if possible, he should not esciipe, though they should both fire : so the other stood ready with his i)iece, that if he did not droji at the fir.st slK»t, he should be sure to have a second. I3ut the first was too good a marksman to miss his aim ; for as the savages kept near one another, a little behind in a line, he fired, and hit two of them directly : the foremost was killed outright, being shot in the head ; the second, which was the runaway Indian, was shot through the body and fell, but wa.snot quite dead ; and the third had a little scratch in the shoulder, j)erhap3 by the same ball that went through the body of the second ; and being dreadfully frightened, though not so much hurt, sat down upon the ground, screaming and yelling in a hideous manner. The five that were behind, more frightened with the noise than sensible of the danger, stood still at first ; for the woods made the sound a thousand times bigger than it really wa.s, the cclioes nxttling from one side to another, and the fowls rising from all p.irt.H, screaming, and every .sort making a diflerent noi.sc, according to their kind ; jn.--t as it was when I fired the first gun that ])crhaps M-as ever shot ofl' in the island However, all being silent again, and they not knowing what the matter was, cainr on unconcerned, till they came to the place where their companions lay in a condition nuserablo enough : and here the jioor ignorant creatures, not sensible that they were within reach of the same mischief, stood altogether over the wounded man, talking, and, as m.-iy bo supposed, inquiring of him how he came to bo liurt : and who, it is very rational to believe, told them, that a flash of fire first, and immediately after that thunder from their gods, had killed those two and wounded him : this, I .s-\v, is rational; ^ _ 256 > . ^'^;^" THE. ENGLISHMEN BIND THE S^M»E TD A TRIIE. ^gr^'irc,: for nothing is more certain than that, as they sa,w no man near them, so they had never heard a gun in all their lives, nor so much as heard of a gun ; neither knew they anything of killing and wounding at a distance with fire and bullets : if they had, one might reasonably believe they would not have stood so unconcerned to view the fate of their fellows, without some apprehensions of their own. Our two men, though, as they confessed to me, it grieved them to be obliged to kill so many poor creatures, who, at the same time, had no notion of their danger ; yet, having them all thus in their power, and the first having to load his piece again, resolved to let fly both together among them ; and singling out, by agreement, which to aim at. they shot together, and killed, or very much wounded, four of them ; the fifth, frightened even to death, though not hiu't, fell with the rest ; so that our men, seeing them all fall together, thought they had killed them all. The belief that the savages were all killed, made our two men come boldly out from the tree before they had charged their guns, which was a wrong step ; and they were under some surprise when they came to the place, and found no less than four of them alive, ani of them two very little hurt, and one not at all : this obliged them to fall upon them with the stocks of their muskets ; and first they made sure of the runaway savjige, that had been the cause of all the mischief, and of another that was hurt in the knee, and put them out of their pain ; then the man that was not hurt at all came and kneeled down to them, with his two hands held up, and made piteous moans to them, by gestures and signs, for his life, but could not say one word to them that they could 257 :, ^K= 33 ;:^--%j:..^' o ROBINSON CRUSOE. iindcrstaml. However, they made signs to him to sit down at the foot of a tree hard by and one of the Englislimcn, with a piece of rope twine, which he had by gi-eat chance in Ills pocket, tied liis two liands behind him, and there they left liim; and with what speed they couUl made after the other two, wliich were gone before, fearing they, or any of tlieni, shouhl find their way to tlie covered phice in the woods, where their wives and tljc few goods they liad left lay. Tliey came once in sight of the two men, but it was at a great distance ; however, they had tlio sjxtisfaction to see them cross over a valley towards the sea, quite the conti-ary way from that which led to their retreat, which they were afmid of; and bcsng satisfied with that, they went back to the tree where they left their prisoner, who, as they supposed, was delivered by his comrades, for he was gone, and the two |)icces of roiio-yarn, with which they had bound him, lay just at the foot of the tree. Thev were now in as gl*eat crinc<3i-n as before, not knowing what course to t;ike, or how near the eiicnjy might be, or in what niimber ; so they resolved to go away to the place where their wives were, to see if all was well there, and to make them easy, who were in fright enough to be sure ; for though the savages were their own countrymen, vet they were most terribly afi'aid of them, and perhaps the more for the knowledge they had of them. "NVhen they came there, they found the savages had been in the wood, and very near that i)lace, but had not found it ; for it was indeed inaccessible, from the trees standing so thick, uidoss the persons seeking it had been directed by those that knew it, which these were not ; they found, thercfoi-o, everything very safe, only the women in a terrible fri'^ht. "While they were here, they had the comfort to haA'e seven of the Spaniards come to their assistance ; the other ten, with their sen-ants, and old Friday (I mean Friday's futher), were gone in a body to tlefend their bower, and the corn and cattle that were kept there, in case the savages should hav6 roved over to that side of the countiy ; but they did not spread so far. "With the seven Spaniards came one of the three savages, who, as I .said, were their prisoners formerly ; and with them also came the savage whom the Englishman had left bound hand and foot at the tree; for it seems they came that M'ay, saw the slaughter of the seven men, and unbound the eighth, and brought him along with them ; where, however, they were obliged to bind him again, (is they had done the two others who were left when the third ran away. The prisonei*s now began to be a burden to them ; and they were so afraid of their escaping, that they M'ere once resolving to kill them all, believing they were under an absolute necessity to do so for their ovni preservation. .However, the S])aniard governor wouhl not consent to it, but ordered, for the present, that tliey should be sent out of the way, to my old cave in the valley, and bo kept there, with two Spaniards to guard thoni, and give them food for their subsistence, which was done; and they were bound there hand and foot for that night. When the Spaniards came, the two Englishmen were so encouraged, that they coidd not satisfy themselves to stjxy any longer thci-o ; but taking five of the Spaniards and themselves, with four muskets anu i pistol among them, and two stout quarter-staves, away they went in quest of the siivages. And fii-st they came to the tree where the men lay that had been killed ; but it wa-s easy to see that some more of the savages had been there, for they had attempted to carry their dead men away, and had driyged two of them a good way, but had given it over. From thence they advanced !■• the first rising ground, where they had stood and seen their camp destroyed, and wliei-.< they had the mortification still to see some of the smoke ; but neither could they RETURN OF THE SAVAGES. here ?ec any of tlie savages. They then resolved, though with all possible caution, to go forward towards their ruined plantation ; but, a little before tliey came thither, coining in sight of the sea-shore, they saw plainly the savages all embarking again in their canoes, in order to be gone. They seemed sorry, at first, that there was no way to come at them, to give them a parting blow ; but, upon the whole, they wjere very Avell satisfied to be rid of them. The poor Englishmen being now twice ruined, and all their improvements destroyed the rest all agreed to come and help them to rebuild, and assist them with needful supplies. Their three countrymen, who were not yet noted for having the least incli- nation to do any good, yet as soon as they heard of it (for they, living remote eastward, knew nothing of the matter till all was over), came and offered their help and assistance, and did, very friendly, work for several days to restore their habitations, and make neces- saries for them. And thus in a little time they were set upon their legs again. About two days after this they had the fai-ther satisfaction of seeing three of the savages' cauocs come driving on shore, and, at some distance from them, two drowned men, by which they had reason to believe that they had met with a storm at sea, which had overset some of them ; for it had blown very hard the night after they 5vent off. However, as some might miscarry, so, on the other hand, enough of them escaped to inform the rest, as well of what they had done as of what had happened to them, and to whet them on to another enterprise of the same nature, which they, it seems, resohed to attempt, with sufficient force to carry all before them ; for except what the first man had told them of inhabitants, they could say little of it of their own knowledge, for they never saw one man ; and the fellow being killed that had affirmed it, they had no other witness to confirm it to them. It was five or six months after this before they heard any more of the savages, in which time our men were in hopes they had either forgot their former bad luck, or given over hopes of better; when, on a sudden, they were invaded by a most formidable fleet of no less than eight-and-twenty canoes, full of savages, armed with bows and arrows, great clubs, wooden swords, and such like engines of war ; and they brought such numbers with them, that, in short, it put all our people into the utmost j consternation. As they came on shore in the evening, and at the easternmost side of the island, our men had that night to consult and consider what to do ; and, in the first place, knowing that their being entirely concealed was their only safety before, and would be much more so now, while the number of their enemies would be so great, they therefore resolved, first of all, to take down the huts which were built for the two Englishmen, ; 1 drive away their goats to the old cave; because they supposed the savages would : directly thither, as soon as it was day, to play the old game over again, though they a not now land within two leagues of it. In the next place, they drove away all the uucks of goats they had at the old boAver, as I called it, which belonged to the Spaniards ; and, in short, left as little appearance of inhabitants anywhere as was possible ; and the next morning early they posted themselves, with all their force, at the plantation of the two men, to wait for their coming. As they guessed, so it hap- pened : these new invaders, leaving their canoes at tho east eiid of the island, came ranging along the shore, directly towards. tlie |Dlace, to the number of two hundred and ■fty, as near as our men could judge. Our army was but small, indeed ; but, that which as worse, they had not arms for all their number naither. The whole account, it -ms, stood thus : first, as to men, seventeen Spaniards^ five Ei 259 nld Friday w?^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. >r Friday's father), tlie tliree slaves taken with the women, who proved very fciithful, Hiid three other slaves, who lived with the Spaniards. To ai'ui these, they had eleven muskets, five pistols, three fowliug-i)ieces, five muskets or fowling-pieces, which were taken l)y mc from the mutinous seamen whom I reduced, two swords, and three old hulbfits. To their slaves they did not give either musket or fusee ; but they had each a halbert, or a long start", like a quurter-stan", with a great spike of iron fastened into each end of it, and by his side a hatchet ; also every one of our men had a hatchet. Two i)f th(! women could not be j)revailed upon, but they would come into the fights, and they had bows and arrows, which the Spaniards had taken from the savages when the first action happened, which I have spoken of, where the Indians fought with one another'; and the women had hatchets too. The Spaniard governor, whom I described so often, commanded tlie whole; and Will Atkins, who, though a dreadful fellow for wickedness, was a most daring, bold fellow, conimanded under him. The savages came forward like lions ; and our men, wliioh was the worst of their fate, had no advantage in their situation ; only that "Will Atkins, who now jn'oved a most useful fellow, with six men, wa.s planted just behind a small thicket of bushes, as an advanced guard, with orders to let the first of them pass by, and then fire into the middle of them, and as soon as he had fired, to make his oretrcat as nimbly as he could round a part of the wood, and so come in behind the Spaniards, where they stood, having a thicket of trees before them. ^Vhen the savages came on, they ran straggling about every way in hciips, out of all manner of order, and Will Atkins lot about fifty of them jiass by him ; then seeing the rest come in a very thick throng, he orders three of his men to fire, having loaded their muskets with six or seven bullets apiece, about as big as large pistol bullets. How many they killed or wounded they knew not, but the consternation and surprise was inexpressible among the savages ; they were frightened to the last degree to hciir such a dreadful noise, and sec their men killed, and others hurt, but sec nobody that did it ; when, in the middle of their fright, Will Atkins and his other three let fly again among tiic thickest of them ; and in less than a minute, the first three being loaded again, gave them a third volley. Had Will Atkins ami his men retired immediately, as soon as tlu-y had fired, as they were ordered to do, or had the rest of the body been at hand, to have poured in their shot continually, the savages had been cficctually I'outed ; for the terror that was among them came principally from this, that they were killed by the gods with thunder and lightning, and eoidd sec iK.body that hurt them ; but Will Atkin.s, staying to load again, discovered the cheat : somu of the .savages who were at a distance sj)ying them, came upon them behind ; and though Atkins and his men fired at them also two or tliree times, and killed above twenty, retiring as fast as tlu-y could, yet they wounded Atkins himself, and killed one of his fellow Kngli.shmen with their arrow.s, lus they did afterwards one Spaniard, and (me of the Indian slaves who came with the women. This slave was a most gaUant fellow, and fought most d»'sperately, killing five of tliem with his own hand, having no weaptm but one of the armed staves and a hatchet Our men bring thus hard laid at, Atkins wounded, and two other men killed, retreated to a rising ground in the wood ; and the Spaniards, after firing thi-ee volleys upon them, retreated also ; for their number was so great, and they were so desperate, that though above fifty of theni were killed, ami metre than as many wounded, yet they came ..u in the (eel), of on.- men, fearless of dan-'er. and .shot their arrows like a cloud ; O-^ .0 ROBINSON CRUSOE. -- -\| aiul it was observed that tlicir -woundecl men, who were not quite di.sablcl, were |jiail outrjigcoiis hy their woiuidj", and fouglit like madmen. "WMien our men retreated, they left the Spaniard and Englishman that -svcre killed behind them ; and the savages, when they came up to them, killed •retched manner, breaking their ney came up and heads, -with their clubs and woodt t^words, like true savages; but finding our men -were gone, they did not seem to imrsue tlicm, but drew themselves up in a ring, Avhich is, it seems, their custom, and shouts d twice, in token of their victory; after which, they liad the moitiCcation to see sever.. 1 of their wounded men fall, dying with the mere loss of blood. The i^pauiard governor having drawn hi.s little body up together upon a rising ground, Atkins, thoiigli he was wounded, would have had them march and charge again altogether at once: but the Spaniard replied — "Seignior Atkins, yon see how their wounded men fight ; let them alone till morning ; all the wounded men will be still" and sore with their woinid.M, and faint with the loss of blood ; and so wc .shall ha^-e t\u- fewer to engage." This advice was good : but "Will Atkins replied mcn-ily, " That is true, seignior, and so shall I too ; and that is the reason I would go on while I am wai-m." "Well, Seignior Atkins," says the Spaniard, "you have behaved gallantly, and done your part ; we will fight for you if you cannot come on ; but I think it best to stay till morning :" so they waited. But as it was a clear moonlight night, and they found the savages iu great disorder about their dead and wounded men, and a great noise and huny among them where they lay, tliey afterwards resolved to fall upon them in the night; especially if they could come to give them but one volley before they were discovered, which they had a fair oppor- tunity to do : for one of the Englishmen in whose quarter it was where the fight began, led them round between the woods and the sea-side westwai-d, and then turning .short south, they came so near where the thickest of them lay, that, before they were seen or heard, eight of them fired in ui)on tlfwn, and did dreadful execution upon them ; in half a minute more, eight others fired after tlicm, pouring in their small shot in such a rpiantity, that abundance were killed and wounded ; and all this while they were not able to sec who hurt them, or which way to fly. The Spaniai-ds charged again with the iitmost expedition, and then diviJid tlic:;. .selves into three bodies, and resolved to fall in among them all together. They had iu each body eight persons, that is to .say, twenty-two men, and the two women, who, by the way, fought desperately. Tliey divided the fire-arms equally iu each l>arty, a.s well as the halberds and staves. They would have had the women kej[)t ^ack, but tliey .s:vid tlu-y wrro resolved to die with their hu.sband.s. Having thus formed their little army, th< marched out from among the trees, and came up to the teeth of the enemy, shoutii and hallooing as loud as they could ; the savages stood all together, but were in tl utmo.st confusion, hearing the noise of our men shouting from three quartci-s together : they would have fought if they had seen us ; for as soon an we came near enough to b • seen, some arrows were .shot, anno hundred and eighty of them ; the rest, being frightened out of thci: wit-s scoured through the woods and over the hills, Mith all the speed fear and nimlle 262 FLIGHT OF THE SAVAGES. feet could help tliem to ; aiul as we did not trouble ourselves much to pursue thcni, ihcy got all together to the sea-side where they landed, and where their canoes lav. Lut their disaster was not at an end yet ; for it blew a terrible storm of wind that oA-euing from the sea, so that it was impossible for them to go off; nay, the storm con- tinuing all night, when the tide came up, their canoes were most of them driven by the surge of the sea sohigh upon the shore that it required infinite toil to get them off; and some of them were even dashed to pieces against the beach, or against one another. Our men, though glad of their victory, yet got little rest that night ; but having refreshed themselves as well as they could, they resolved to march to that part of the island where the savages were fled, and see what posture they were in. This neces- sarily led them over the place where the fight had been, and where they found several of the poor creatures not quite dead, and yet past recovering life ; a sight disagreeable enough to generous minds, for a truly great man, though obliged by the law of battle to destroy his enemy, takes no delight in his misery. However, there was no need to give any orders in this case ; for their own savages, who were their servants, despatched these poor creatures with their hatchets. At length they came in view of the place where the more miserable remains of the favages' army lay, where there appeared about a hundred still ; their posture was gene- rally sitting upon the ground, with their knees up towards their mouth, and the head jiut between the two hands, leaning down upon the knees. When our men came within two musket-shots of them, the Spaniard governor ordered two muskets to be fired, without ball, to alarm them ; this he did, that by their countenance he might know what to expect, whether they were still in heart to fight, or were so heartily beaten as to be dispirited and discouraged, and so he might manage accordingly. This stratagem took : for as soon as the savages heard the first gun, and faw the flash of the second, they started up upon their feet in the greatest consternation imaginable ; and as our men advanced swiftly towards them, they all ran screaming and yelling away, with a kind of howling noise, which our men did not understand, and had never heard before ; and thus they ran up the hills into the country. At first our men had much rather the weather had been calm, and they had all gone away to sea ; but they did not then consider that this might probably have been the occasion of their coming again in such multitudes as not to be resisted, or, at least, to come so many and so often a^ would qtiite desolate the island, and starve them. Will Atkins, therefore, who, notwithstanding his wound, kept always with them, proved the best counsellor in this case ; his advice was, to take the advantage that offered, and step in between them and their boats, and so deprive them of the capacity of ever returning any more to plague the island. They consulted long about this ; and some were against it for fear of making the wretches fly to the woods and live there desperate, and so they should have them to hunt like wild beasts, be afraid to stir out about their business, and have their plan- tations coAtinually rifled, all their tame goats destroyed, and, in short, be reduced to a life of continual distress. Will Atkins told them they had better have to do with a hundred men than with a hundred nations ; that as they must destroy their boats, so they must destroy the men, or be all of them destroyed themselves. In a word, he showed the necessity of it i-o plainly that they all came into it ; so they went to work immediately witli the boats, and getting some dry wood together from a dead tree, they tried to set some of them on fire, but they were so wet that they would not Ixirn ; hoAvever, the fire 263 ROBINSON CRUSOE. liiinipJ the upper part that it soon matlc them luifit for swiiumiiig iix tho sea as boa'. . When tlie Indians saw what they were about, some of them came running out of th' woods, and coming as near as they could to our men, kneeled down and cried, "Oa, Oa, Wammokoa!" and some otlier woi'ds of their language, which none of tho othei-s under- stood anything of; })ut as they made jatiful gestures and strange noises, it was easy to understand they bogged to have their boats spared, and tliat they would be gone, and never come there again. But our men were now satisfied that they had no way to preserve tliemselvea, or to save their colony, but effectually to prevent any of these people from ever going home again, depending upon this, that if even .so much as one of them got l>ack into tlioir country to toll tho story, tho colony was undone; so that, letting them know tliat they sliould not have any mercy, tlioy fell to work M'ith their canoes, and destroyctl overv one that tho stomi had not destroyed before; at the sight of which tlio savages raised a hideous cry in the woods, which our pooj>le heard plain enough, after whicli they mn alxiut tlic island like distracted men, so that, in a word, our men did not really know what at first to do with them. Nor did the Spaniards, with all their prudenc.-, ctnsiilor that while they made those people thus desperate, they ought to have kept a good giiard at the same time upon their i)lantations ; for though it is true, they had driven away their cattle, and the Indians did not find out their main reti-eat — I moan my old castle at the hill, nor the cave in the valley — yet they found out my plantation at the bower, and pulled it all to pieces, and all the fences and planting about it ; trod all the corn under foot, tore up the vines and grapes, being just then almost ripe, and did our men an inestimable damage, though to themselves not one farthing's wortli of service. Though our men were able to light them upon all occasions, yet they were in no condition to pursue them, or hunt them up and down ; for as they were too nimble of foot for our men when they found them single, so our men durst not go abroad singl.'. f »r fear of being surrounded with their numbers. Tho best wa.s, they had no weapon-- : for tlu)Ugh they had bows, they had no arrows left, nor any nxuterials to make any : iH)r had they any edge-tool or weapon among them. The extremity and distress they were reduced to was great, and indeed deplorabU' . but, at the same time, our men were also brought to very bad circumstances by them ; for though their retreats were preserved, yet their provision was desti"oyed, and tluh harvest spoiled, and what to do, or which way to turn themselves, they knew not. Tlu' only refuge they had now was the stock of cattle they had in the valley by the cave, and some little corn which grew there, and tho jthuitation of. the three Englishmen, Will Atkins and his comrades, who were now reduced to two ; one of them beini,' killed by an arrow, which struck him on the side of his head, just under the temples, s.) that he never .spoke more; and it was very remarkable that this was the same barbarous follow that cut the poor savage slave with his hatchet, and who afterwards intended to have m»n'doreey would, if po.ssiblo, drive them up to the farther i)art of the island, southwest, that if any more savages came on shore they might n'>t find one another; then, th n KOniXSOX CRUSOK. they woiilil on their daily labour. In order to do this, they so fallowed them, and so terrified them with their gun.^, that in a ft w davs, if any of them fired a gun at an Indian, if he did not hit liim, yet he would fall down for fear ; and so dreadfully frightenetl they were that they kept out ot sight farther and farther ; till, at last, our men following them, and almost every day killing or wounding some of them, they kept up in the wood> or hollow places so much that it rcflnced them to the utmost misery for want of food ; and many were aftenvards found de«d in the wood-s without any hurt, al).>olutely starved to death. When our men found this it made their hearts relent, and jnty moved them, espe- ciallv the Spaniard goveniov, who wa.s the most gentleman-like, generous- minded man that I ever met with in my life ; and he proposed, if possible, to take one of them alive, and bring him to understand what they meant, so tar as to be able to act as interpreter, and go among them and see if they might be brought to some conditions that might be dejiended upon, to save their lives and do us no harm. It was some while before any of them could be taken; but being weak and half- Ptarvcd, one of them was at last surprised and made a prisonei-. He was sidlen at first, and would neither cat nor drink ; but finding himself kindly useil, and victuals given to him, and no violence offered him, he at last grew tractable, and came to hiuiself. They brought old Friday to him, who talked often with him, and told him how kind the others woidd bo to them all ; that they would not only save their lives, but give them part of the island to live in, provided they would give satisfaction that they would keep in their own bounds, and not con.e beyond it to injur© or prejudice othei-s ; and that they should liavo corn given them to jilant and make it giow for their bread, and Rome bread given them for their present subsistence : and old Friday bade the follow go and talk with the rest of his countrymen, and see what they said to it ; assuring them that, if they did not agree immediately, they should be all destroyed. The poor wretches, thoroughly humbled, and reduced in number to about thirty- seven, closed with the i>roposal at the first ofi*er, and begged to have some fooi(»visions very thankfully, and wei"0 the mast faithful fellows to their words that could bo thought of; for, except when they came to beg victuals and directions, they never came out of their boiuvls ; and thei"e they lived when I came to the island, and I went to see them. They had taught them both to jdant corn, make brcail, breed tame gaits, and milk tliem : they wanted nothing but wives, and they soon would have been a nation. They were confined to n neck of land, sunomnleil with high rocks behind them, and lying ]ilain towards the sea before them, on the south-cast corner of the i.sland. They had land enough, and it was very good and fruitful ; about a milo and a half broad, and three or four miles in length. Our men taught them to make wooden spades, such as I made for my.«e]f, and gave among them twelve hatchets and three or four knives ; and there they lived, the most 8u\'jeclcd, innocent cro.itures that ever were heard of. a66 _j After this, the colony enjoyed a perfect tranquillity, with respect to the savages, till 1 came to re- visit them, whicli was about two years after ; not but that, now and then, some canoes of savages came on shore for their triumphal, iinnatural feasts ; but as they were of several nations, and perhaps had never heard of those that came before, or the reason of it, they did not make any search or inquiry after their countrymen ; and if they had, it would have been very hard to have found them out. Thus, I think, I have given a full account of all that happened to them till my return, at least, that was worth notice. The Indians or savages were wonderfully civilised by them, and they frequently went among them ; but forbid, on pain of death, any of the Indians coming to them, because they would not have their settlement betrayed again. One thing was very remarkable, viz., that they taught the savages to make wicker-work, or baskets : but they soon outdid their masters ; for they made abun- dance of most ingenious things in wicker-work, particularly of all sorts of baskets, sieves, bird-cages, cupboards, &c. ; as also chairs to sit on, stools, beds, couches, and abundance of other things ; being very ingenious at such work, when they were once put in the way of it. My coming was a particular relief to these people, because we furnished them with knives, scissors, spades, shovels, pickaxes, and all things of that kind which they could want. With the help of those tools, they were so very handy that they came at last to build up their huts or houses very handsomely, raddling or working it up like basket- work all the Avay round ; which was a very extraordinary piece of ingenuity, and looked very odd, but was an exceeding good fence, as well against heat as against all sorts of vermin ; and our men were so taken with it, that they got the wild savages to come and do the like for them ; so that when I came to see the two Englishmen's colonies, they looked, at a distance, as if they all lived like bees in a hive. As for Will Atkins, who was now become a very industrious, useful, and sober fellow, he had made himself such a tent of basket-work as, I believe, was never seen ; it was one hundred and twenty paces round on the outside, as I measured it by my steps ; the walls were as close worked as a basket, in panels or squares of thirty-two in number, and very strong, standing about seven feet high ; in the middle was another not above twenty-two paces round, but built stronger, being octagon in its form, and in the eight corners stood eight very strong posts ; round the top of which he laid sti'ong pieces, pinned together with wooden pins, from which he raised a pyramid for a roof of eight rafters, very handsome, I assure you, and joined together very well, though he had no nails, and only a few iron spikes, which he made himself too, out of the old iron that I had left there ; and, indeed, this fellow showed abundance of ingenuity in several things which he had no knowledge of : he made him a forge, with a pair of wooden bellows to blow the fire ; he made himself charcoal for his work ; and he formed out of the iron crows a middling good anvil to hammer upon : in this manner he made many things, but especially hooks, staples, and spikes, bolts, and hinges. But to return to the house : after he had pitched the roof of his innermost tent, he worked it up between the rafters with basket-work, so firm, and thatched that over again so ingeniously with rice straw, and over that a large leaf of a tree, which covered the top, that his house was as dry as if it had been tiled or slated. Indeed, he owned that the savages had made the basket-v/oi'k for him. The outer circuit was covered as a lean-to, all round this inner apartment, and long rafters lay from the thirty-two angles to the top posts of the inner house, being about twenty feet distant, so that there was a space like a walk within the outer wicker-wall, and without the inner, near twenty feet wide. The inner place he partitioned off with the same wicker-work, but much fairer, a: 267 IQil ROBIN SUN CRUSOE. .1 divide J into six aixutraeuts, so that he had she rooms on a floor, and out of everyone i>f tlie.sc there was a door ; first into the entry, or coming into the main tent, another door into the main tent, and another door into the space or walk that was round it ; so that walk was also divided into six eiiual parts, which served not only for a retreat, but to store up any necessaries which the family had occasion for. These six spaces not Uiking up the whole circimxferencc, what other apartments the outer circle had were thus ordered : As soon as you were in at the door of the outer circle, you had a short passage straight before you to the door of the inner house ; but on either aide was a wicker i>ar- tition, and a door in it, by which you went first into a large room, or storehouse, twenty feet wide and about thirty feet long, and through that into another not quite so long, so that in the outer circle were ten handsome rooms, six of which were only to be come at through the apartments of the inner tent, and served as closets or retiring-rooms to the rcsi)ccti\ e chambers of the inner circle ; and four large warehouses, or barns, or what you please to call then), which wont through one another, two on cither hand of tlie passage, that led through the outer door to the inner tent. Such a jiiece of basket-work, I believe, was never seen in the world, nor a housti or tent so neatly contrived, much less so built. In this great bee-hive lived the three families, that is to say, Will Atkins anU his companion j ^ic third wa.s killed, but his Mife remained with three children, for she was, it seems, In^ with child when he died : and the other two were not at all backward to give the widow her full share of every- thing, I mean as to their coni, milk, grapes, ic, and when they killed a kid, or found a turtle on the shore ; so that they ^'1 \i\&\ well enough ; though, it was true, they were nut >i) inilustrious as the other two, as has been observed already. One thing, however, cannot bo omitted, viz., that lus for religion, 1 do not know that there was anything of that kind among them ; they often, indeed, put one another in njind that there was a God, by the very common method of seamen, swearing by his name : nor were their poor ignorant savage wives much better for having been married to Christians, as we must call them : for as they knew very little of LJod themselves, so they M'erc utterly iucapable of entering into any discourse with their wives about a Clod, or to talk anytliing to them concerning religion. The utmost of all the improvement whicli I can say the wives had made from thorn was, tiiat they had taught tlieni to speak English pretty well ; and most of their children, who were near twenty in all, were taught to sjunik English too, from their lir.st It'arning to speak, though thoy at first spoke it in a very broken manner, like their mother.-'. There was none of thes^e children above six yeai-sold when I came thithei-, for it was not much above seven years since they had fetched these five savage ladies over ; but thoy lunl all been pretty fruitful, for thoy had all children, more or less : I think the cook's nuite's wife wjis big of her sixth child ; and the mothers were all a good .sort of well-governed, (juiet, laborious women, modest and decent, helj)ful to one another, mighty ob.servant and subject to their masters (I cannot call thorn husbaiuls), and wanted nothing but to be well instructed in the Christian religion, and to bo legally jiuirriod ; both which wiTo happily brought about afterwards by my nioan.s, or at loa.-5t in oinhsoijuencc of my coming among them. Having thus given an account ()f the colony in general, and pretty much of my rnn- agate English, I must say something of the Spaniard.^, who were the main body of the tamily, and in who.so story there are some incidents also remarkal)lo enough. 1 had a groat many discoiu-ses with them about their ciivumstiinccs when thoy wore among the wivagc'^. Tli.-y told mo readily that th(>y had no instances to give of thoir ^63 ' _A |\ api)lication or ingenmty in that cotintry ; that they were a poor, miserable, dejecteci handful of peojile ; that if means had been put into their hands, they had yet so abandoned themselves to despair, and so sunk under the weight of their misfortune, that they thought of nothing but starving. One of them, a grave and sensible man, told me he was con- '>inced they were in the wrong ; that it was not the part of wise men to give themselves up to their misery, but always to take hold of the helps which reason oftered, as well for present support as for future deliverance : he told me that grief was the most senseless, insignificant passion in the world, for that it regarded only things past, which were generally impossible to be recalled, or to be remedied, but had no views of things to come, and had no share in anything that looked like deliverance, but rather added to the 269 IWT^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. aflliction than proposed a remedy ; and upon this he repeated a Spanish i)roverb, whiLu, though I ciiijnot repeat in just the same words that he spoke it in, yet I remember I made it into an English proverb of my own, thus : — '•In trouble to be troubled, Is to have your trouble doubled." He ran on llien in remai-k^ ujioii nil the little improvements I hnd made in uiy .s<.lit«de ; my unwearied application, as he called it ; and how I had made a condition, which in its circumstances was at first much worse than theirs, a thousand times morL- liappy than th< ii-s was, e^ en now when they were all together. He told me it Wivs remark- able that Englishmen liad a greater presence of mind in their distress th:ui any peojile that ever he met with ; that their unhappy nation and the PortugTK'se were the worst men in the world to struggle with misfortunes ; for that their first stej) in dungei-s, after the common e!Toi-ts were over, was to despair, lie clown under it, and die, without ro\isin^^' their thoughts up to projier remedies for e-scnpe, T told him their case and mine differed exceedingly ; that they wei*c cast upon the shore without necessaries, Avithout supply of food, or ju'esent s^istenance till they could ]>rovidc for it : that, it was tiiie, I had this disadvantage and discomfort, that I was alone ; but then the supjJy I had providentially thrown into my hands, by the unexpected driving of the ship on .shore, was such a help as would have encouraged any creature in the world to haTc applied himself as J had done. " .Seignior," says the Spaniard, "had we poor 8i«niai'ds l»ecn in your case, we shoiJd never have got half tliosc things out of the ship, as you did : i«y,' .says he, "we should never have found means to have got a rafc to cany them, or to have got the raft on shore widiout boat or sail ; aiid how much less Bhould we have done if Any of us had been alone !" ^Vell, I desired him to abate his com- l>linu'nts, and go on with the histcny of their coniing an shore, whore they landed. He told me they iinhappily landed .at a place wliei'c tliere were pcqile without provisions : whereas, had they had the common sense to jnit off to sea agann, and gone to another island a little farther, they had found jjrovisions, though without people; there being an island that way, as they had been told, whe7-c there were provisions, though no peoplo ; that is to say, that the S[MiTiiards of Trinidad had frequently been there, and had filled the island with goats and hogs at several times, where they had bred in siicih multitticlcs. And where turtle and sea-fowls wore in such plenty, that they could have been in bo want of flesh, though they lijid foiuid no bread ; whereas, hero, they were only .sustained with a few roots and herbs, Avhich they understood not, and which had no substivnee in them, and which the in- habitants gave them sparingly enough ; jiiulthoy could treat them no better, ludess they would turn cannibals, and eat men's iktih, which was the great dainty of their country. They gave me an account how mai\)' ways they strove to civilise the .salvages they were with, and to teach them ration*! customs in the ordinary way of living, but in vain ; and how they retorted it upon them, jvs unjust, that they, who came there for assistance ami suj)])ort, should attem])t to set up for instructoi-s of those that gave them food ; intimating, it .seems, that none .shoidd .st-t uj* for the instructoi-s of others but those who could live without them. They gave mc dismal accounts of the extremities they were driven to ; how sonic- tinies they were many days Mithout aaiy food at all, -the island they were upon being inhabited by a .sort of siiviiges that lived more iudoleut, and for that i-eason were less supplied with the necessaries of life tluiu they had reason to believe othcra were in the .same ))art of the world : and vet th<-v fotuKl that these sava-'es were le.ss ravenous and 'I' ^'d'%\^^. voracious tliau those avIio had better supplies of food. Also ilw.y luhkd, th \ coukl nut but see witli wliat deuioustrations of wisdom and goodness the governing pio\idcnce of God directs the events of things in this world : which, they said, appeared in their cii- eunistances ; for if, pressed by the hardships they were under, and the barionnos-, of the country where they were, they had searched after a better to live in, tliov hxl tluMi been out of the way of the relief that happened to them by my means. They then gave me au account how the savages whom they liv^ed among expected tliem to go out with them into their wars ; and, it was true, that as they had fire-arms with them, had they not had the disaster to lose their ammunition, they could have been serviceable not only to their friends, but have made themselves terrible both to friends and enemies ; but being without powder and shot, and yet in a condition that they could not in reason deny to go out with their landlords to their wars j so when they came into the field of battle, they were in a worse condition than the savages themselves, for they had neither bows nor arrows, nor could they use those the savages gave them ; so they could do nothing but stand still and be wounded with arrows, till the}' came up to the teeth of their enemy ; and then, indeed, the three halberds they had were of use to them ; and they would often drive a whole little army before them with those halberds, and sharpened sticks pvit into the muzzles of their muskets : but that, for all this, they were sometimes surrounded with multitudes, and in great danger from tlieir arrows, till at last they found the way to make themselves large targets of wood, which they covered with skins of wild beasts, whose names they knew not, and these covered them from the arrows of the savages : that, notwithstanding these, they were sometimes in great danger ; and five of them were once knocked down together with the clubs of the savages, which was the time when one of them was taken prisoner, that is to say, the Spaniard whom I relieved : that at first they thought he had been killed ; but when they after- wards heard ho was taken prisoner, they were under the greatest grief imaginable, and vrould willingly have all ventured their lives to have rescued him. They told me that when they were so knocked down, the rest of their company rescued them, and stood over them fighting till they were come to themselves, all but him who they thought had been dead ; and then they made their way with their halberds and pieces, standing close together in a line, through a body of above a thousand savages, beating down all that came in their way, got the victory over their enemies, but to their great soitow, because it was with the loss of their friend, whom the other party, finding alive, carried off, with some others, as I gave an account before. They described, most afiectioaately, how they were surprised with joy at the return of their friend and companion in misery, who they thought had been devoured by wild beasts of the v/orst kind — wild men ; and yet, how more and more they were surprised with the account he gave them of his errand, and that there was a Christian in any place near, much more one that was able, and had humanity enough, to contribute to their deliverance. They described how they were astonished at the sight of the relief I sent them, and at the appearance of loaves of bread — things they had not seen since their coming to that miserable place; how often they crossed it and blessed it as bread sent from heaven ; and what a reviving cordial it was to their spirits to taste it, as also the other things I had sent for their supply ; and, after all, they would have told me something of the joy they were in at the sight of a boat and pilots, to carry them away to the person and place from whence all these new comforts came : but it was impossible to ress it by words; for their excessive joy naturally driving them to ruubecominc,' 271 expr( w ^ ^l^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. cxtiava'nvnccs, they had no way to describe them, but by telling me they bordered upon hniiicv, having no way to give vent to their passions suitable to the sense that was upon tliem ; that in some it worked one way, and in some another; and that some of them, through a surprise of joy would burst into tears, others be stark mad, and others immediately faint. This discoiu'se extremely afTectedme, and called to my mind Friday's ecst;\cv when he met his father,' and the poor people's ecstacy when I took them up at sea after their ship wa? on fire ; the joy of the mate of the ship when he found himself delivered in the jilace where ho expected to perish ; and my own joy, when, after tweuty- oi'dit years' captivity, I found a good ship ready to carry me to my own country. All these thincjs made me more sensible of the relation of these poor men, and more affected with it. Jlaviii" thus given a view of the state of things as I f.Mmd them, I must relate tiic lieads of what I did for these people, and the condition in which I left them. It was their opinion, and mine too, that they would be troubled no more with the savages, or if they were, they would be able to cut t)iem o(T, if they were twice as many as before ; so they had no concern about that. Then I entered into a serious discoui-se with the S])aniaril, wIkmu I call governor, about their stay in the island ; for as I was not come to carry any of them off, so it would not be just to carry ofT some and leave othei-s, who, perhaps, would be unwilling to stay if their strength was diminished. On the other hand, I told them I came to establish them there, not to remove them ; and then I let them know that I had brought with me relief of sundry kind for them ; that I had been at a great charge to supply them with all things necessary, as well for their conve- nience as their defence ; and that I had such and such particular persons with me, as well to increase and recruit their number, as by the particular necessary employments which they were bred to, being artificers, to assist them in those things in whii-li at present they were in want. They were all together when I talked thus to them ; and before I delivered to them the stores I liad brought, I asked them, one by one, if they had entirely forgot and l)uried their first animosities that had been among them, and would .shake hands with one another, and engage in a strict friend.ship and union of interest, tliat so there might lie no more misunderstandings and jealousies. Will Atkins, with abundance of frankness and good humour, said they had met with allliction enough to make them all solder, and enemies enough to make them all friends ; that, for his part, he would live and die with them, and was .so far from designing any- thing against the Spaniard.s, that he owned they had done nothing to him but what his own mad humour made necessary, and what he would have done, and perhaps worse, in their case ; and that he wo\dd ask them pardon, if I desired it, for the foolish and brutish things he had done to them, and was very willing and desirous of living in terms of entire friend.-ihip and union with tlnMU, and would do anything that lay in his power to convince them of it ; and as for going to England, he cared not if he did not go thith^-r these twenty year.s. The Spaniards .said they had, indeed, at first disjxrmed and excluded Will Atkins and his two coiintrymen for their ill conduct, as they had let me know, aiid they appealed to me for the necessity they were under todo so ; but that Will Atkins had behaved himself so bravely in tlie great fight they had with the .savages, and on sever.al occasions since, and had showed himself so faithful to and concerned for, the geneml interest of them all, that they had forgotten all that wga passed, and thought he merited as much to be trusted M'ith anus and siipplied with neces.saries as any of them ; and they had testlfie,! 27: tlieif satisfaction iu Iiim by committing tlie command to liim next to the governor himself; and as they had entire confidence in him and all his countrymen, so tliev acknowledged they had merited that confidence by all the methods that honest men could merit to be valued and trusted ; and they most heartily embraced the occasion of giving me this assurance, that they would never have any interest separate from one another. Upon these frank and open declarations of friendship, we appointed the next day to dine all together ; and, indeed, we made a splendid feast. I caused the ship's cook and his mate to come on shore and dress our dinner, and the old cook's mate we had on shore assisted. We brought on shore six pieces of good beef and four pieces of pork, out of the ship's provisions, with our punch- bowl, and materials to fill it ; and, in particular, I gave them ten bottles of French clai-et, and ten bottles of English beer ; thiirgs that neither the Spaniards nor the English had tasted for many years, and which it may be supposed they were very glad of The Spaniards added to our feast five whole kids, which the cooks roasted ; and three of them were sent, covered up close, on board the ship to the seamen, that they might feast on fresh m.eat from on shore, as we did with their salt meat from on board. After this feast, at which we were very innocently merry, I brought my cargo of goods ; wherein, that there might be no dispute about dividing, I showed them that there was a sufficiency for them all, desiring that they might all take an equal vm 273 ^-^-^ .Vv KOlilNSOX: CRUSOE. fiuunlity c f tlic goods that were for wearing; that is to say, equal when luacio up. As, lir.st, I ilistributed linen sufficient to make every one of them four shirts, and, at the Spaniard's rcquesf, afterwards made them up six ; these were exceeding comfortable to them, h ivinf been what they had long since forgot the use of, or what it was to wear them. I alloUed the thin English stuffs, which I mentioned before, to make ever)- one a light coat like a frock, which I judged fittest for the heat of the seaaon, cool and loose; and ordered that whenever they decayed, tlicy should make more, as they thought lit ; the like for pumps, shoos, stockings, hats, Arc. I cannot oxp'/t--;.-; what pleasure, what satisfaction, sat upon the coimtenances of all those poor men, when they saw tlio care I had taken of them, and how well I had firnislicd them. They told me I was a father to them ; and that having such a corres- 1 onduut as I was in so remote a part of the world, it would make them forget that they were left in a desolate i)hico ; and thoy all voluntarily engaged to me not to leave the place without my consent. Then I presented to them the people I had broiiglit with me, particularly the tailor, thesmitli, and the two carpenters, all of them most necessary peojilc ; but, above all, my general artificer, than whom they could not name anything that vas more useful to (hem; and the tailor, to show his concern for them, went to work immediately, and, with nn* leave, made them every one a shirt, the first thing he did ; and, what was still more, he tau<'ht the women not only how to sew and stitch, and use the needle, but made them assist to make the .shii-ts for their husbands, and for all the rest. As to the carpenters, 1 scai'cc net-d mention how useful they were ; for they took to pit ces all my clumsy, unhandy things, and made clever convenient tables, stools, bedsteads, cupboards, lockers, shelves and everything they wanted of that kind. But to let them see how Nature made artificers at fu-st, I carried the cai'penters to see "Will Atkins' basket-house, as I called it ; and they both owned they never s;\w an instance of such natural ingenuity before, nor anything so regular and so handily built, at least of its kind ; and one of them, when he saw it, after musing a good while, turning about to me, "I am sure," says ho, "that man has no need of us ; you need do nulhing but give him tools." Then I brought them out all my store of tools, and gave every man a digging- spade, a shovel, and a rake, for wo had no harrows or plough ; and to every separate i)lace a jiickaxo, a crow, a broad axe, and a saw ; always appointing, that as often as any were 1 rolceii f)r worn out, they should be supplied, without grudging, out of the genei-al .<siu as little distance from enmity \vith their Maker as j.o.ssible, esj'uvially i\ou give' mc leave to meddle ho far iu your eireuit.'' V 1 could not yet imagine what he aimed at, and told him 1 granted iUl he had said, ,278 SOME DEFECTS IX COVERNMENT. and tlianked liim that lie would so far concern liimsclf for u?;, and begged lie Avonld explain the particulars of what he had observed, that like Joshua, to take his own parable, I might put away the accursed thing from us. " Why, then, sir," says he, " I Avill take the liberty you give me ; and there are three things, which, if I am right, must stand in the way of God's blessing upon your endeavours here, and which I should rejoice, for your sake and their own, to sec removed. And, sir, I promise myself that you will fully agree with me in them all, as soon as I name them ; especially, because I shall convince you, that every one of them may, with great ease, and very much to your satisfaction, be remedied. First, sir," savs he, "you have here four Englishmen, Vv'lio have fetched women from among the savages, and have taken them as their v/ives, and have had many children by them all, and yet are not married to them after any stated legal manner, as the laws of God and man require ; and therefore are yet, in the sense of both, no less than fornicators, if not living in adulter)'. To this, sir, I know yoxi -will object that there was no clergymen or priest of any kind, or any profession, to perform the ceremony; nor any pen and ink, or paper, to wi'ite down a contract of marriage, and have it signed between them. And I knov^ also, sir, what the Spaniard governor has told you, I mean, of the agreement that he obliged them to make when they took those women, viz., that they should choose them out by con- sent, and keep separately to them ; which, by the way, is nothing of a marriage, no agree- ment T\-ith the women as wives, but only an agi'eement among themselves to keep them from quarrelling. But, sir, the essence of the sacranjenfc of matrimony (so he called it, being a Roman) consists not only in the mutual consent of the parties to take one another as man and wife, but in the formal and legal obligation that there is in the contract, to compel the man and woman, at all times, to own and acknowledge each other; obliging the man to abstain from all other women, to engage in no other contract vrhile these subsist ; and, on all occasions, as ability allows, to provide honestly for them and their children ; and to oblige the women to the same or like conditions, mutatis mutandis, on their side. Kow, sir," says he, "these men may, when they please, or when occasion presents, abandon these women, disown their children, leaA^e them to perish, and take other women, and marry them while these are living ; " and here he added, with some warmth, " How, sir, is God honoured in this unlawftil liberty 1 And how shall a blessing succeed your endeavours in. this place, however good in themselves, and however sincere in your design, while these men, who at present are your subjects, under your absolute government and dominion, are allowed by you to live in open adultery ? " I confess I was struck with the thing itself, but much more with the convincing- arguments he supported it with ; for it was certainly true that, though they had no clergyman upon the spot, yet a formal contract on both sides, made before witnesses, and confirmed by any token which they had all agi'jeed to be bound by, though it had been but breaking a stick between them, engaging the men to own these women for their wives upon all occasions, and never to abandon them or their children, and the women to the same with their husbands, had been an effectual lawful marriage in the sight of God ; and it was a great neglect that it was not done. But I thought to have got off my young priest by telling him that all that part was done when I was not there ; and that they had lived so many years with them now, that if it was adultery, it was past remedy ; nothing could be done in it now. " Sir," says he, " a.sking your pardon for such freedom, you are right in this, that, it being done in your absence, you could not be charged with that part of the crime ; liut, 279 ROBINSON CRUSOE. I beseech you, flatter not yourself tliat you are not, therefore, under an obligation to do \our utmost now to put an end to it. How can you think but that, let the time past lie on who/h it will, all the guilt for the future, will lie entirely ujiou you ? because it is •tiiinly in your power now to put an end to it, and in nobody's power but youi-s." I was so dull still that I did not understand him right ; but I imagined that, by putting an end to it, he meant that I should part them, and not suffer them to live tK^'ether any longer; and I said to him I could not do that by any means, for that would jmt tlu! whole island into confusion. }Ie seemed surprised that I should so far mistake him. " Xo, sir," says he, " 1 do not mean that you should now separate them, but legally and enVctually marry them ; and as, sir, my way of manying them may not be easy to reconcile them to, though it will bo effectual, even by your own laws, so your way may be as well before Clod, and as valid among men. I mean by a written con- ti-.ict, signed by both man and woman, and by all the witnesses present, which all the laws of f^urope would decree to be valid." I was amazed to .see so much true piety, and so much sincerity of zeal, besides the unusual imi)ai-tiality in his discourse as to his own party or church, and such true warmth for preserving the peoi)le, that he had no knowledge of or relation to ; I say, for preserving them from transgressing the laws of God, the like of which I had, indeed, not met with anywhere. But recollecting what he had said of manying them by a written contmct, which I knew he woidd stand to, I returned it back \ipon him, and told him I gi-anted all that ho had said to be just, and on his part very kind ; that I woidd discourse with the men upon the point now, when I came to them ; anil I knew no reason M-hy they should scruple to let him marry them all, which I knew well enough would be granted to be as authentic and valid in England as if they M'ere mar- ried by one of our own clergymen. What was afterwards done in this matter, I shall 8])eak of by itself. I then jiressed him to tell me what was the second complaint which he had to make, acknowledging that I was very much his debtor for the fu-st, and thanked him heartily for it. lie told me he would use the same freedom and i>lainness in the second, and hoped I would take it as well; and this was, that notwith.standing these English subjects of mine, ns he called them, luul lived with these women almo.st seven years, had tuught them to sjjcak English and even to read it, and that they were, as he perceived, women of tolerable understanding, aiul cajiable of instruction, yet they had not, to this hour, taught them anything of the Christian religion — no, not so much as to know that there was a Cu)d, or a worship, or in what manner God wivs to bo served, or that their own iilolatry, and woi-shipping they knew not whom, -Wivs false and absurd. This, ho .said, was an unaccountable neglect, and what Goil wouhl certainly call them to account for, and i)erhaps at last take the work out of their hands. He sjjoke this very aflectionately and warmly. '"I am persuaded," s;iys he, "had those men lived in the sjivuge country whence their wives came, the sjivages would have taken more \r.nnA to have brought them to bo idolatoi-s, and to worship the devil, than any of these men, so far as I can see, have taken with them to teach them the knowledge of the true God. Now, sir," said ho, " though I do not acknowledge your religion, or you mine, yet we wouKl be glad to .see the devil's .servants, and the subjects of his kingdom, t;\ught to know the general principles of the Christian religion ; that thoy might, at least, hoar of God ami a llodeomer, and of the I'csurrection, and of a future state — thingi which we all believe ; tliat thoy might, at least, be so much nearer coming into the bosom of the tiuo chuix-li thm thoy ar.- now. iw tlio public profession of idolatry and dcvil-woi*ship." 2 So ROBINSON CRUSOE. I could hold no longer : I took him in my arms, and embraced him with an excess of passion. " How far," said I to liim, " have I been from nndei-standing the most e.sseiitial part of a Christian, viz., to love the interest of tlio Christian church, and the food of other men's souls ! I scarce have known what belongs to the being a Christian." "Oh, sir! do not say so," replied he; " this thing is not your fault." " No," said I : "but why did I never lay it to heart as well as you ?" "It is not too lato yet," said he ; " bo not too forward to condemn yourself." " But what can be done now?" said I ; '■you .sec I am going away." "Will you give me leave to talk with these poor men about it ?" "Yes, with all my heart," said I ; '-'and will oblige them to give heed to what you sjiy too." " As to that," said he, " we must leave them to the mercy of Christ ; but it is your business to assist them, encourage them, and instruct them ; and if you give mo leave, and God his blessing, I do not doubt but the poor ignorant souls .shall be l)rou"ht homo to the great circle of Christianity, if not into the particular fai::i we :ill embrace, and that even while you stay here." Upon this, I said, "I shall not only give you leave, but give you a thousjind thanks fur it." "What followed I shall mention in its place. I now pressed him for the third article in which we were to blame. ""Why, really,'' sixys he, "it is of the same nature. And I will proceed, asking your leave, with the .>-ame j»lainne3S as before. It is about your poor savages, who are, as I may say, your conquered subject.^. It is a maxim, sir, that is, or ought to be, received among all Cliristians, of what church or i)retended church soever, that the Christian knowledge ought to be propagated by all possible means, and on all possible occasions. It is on this principle that oxxr Cliurch sends missionaries into Pei-sia, India, and China ; and that our clergy, even of the superior sort, willingly engage in the most hazardous voyages, and the most dangerous residence among murderers and Imrbarians, to teach them the knowledge of the true Clod, and to bring them over to embrace the Christian faillt Now, sir, you have such an opportunity hero to have six or seven and tliiity poor savages brought over from a state of idolatry to the knowledge of God, tlirir Maker and Iledeemer, that I wonder how you c:in jiass such an occasion of doing goo.l which is really worth the expense of a man's whole life." I wa3 now struck dumb indeed, and had not one Avord to say. I had here the .spirit of true Ciiristian xcal for God and religion before me, let his particular principles be of what kind soever. As for mo, I had not so much as entertained a thought of this in my heart before, and I believe I should not have thought of it ; for I looked upon these savages as slaves, and pooi)le whom, had wc not had any work for them to do, we wouhl have used as such, or would have been glad to have tnvnspoited them to any other part of the Morld j for our business was to get rid of them, and wo would all have been !-atis(ied if they had been sent to any country, so they had never seen their own. T was eoiifoiuided at his disoour.se, and knew not what answer to make him. IIo looked earnestly at me, seeing mo in some di.sorder — "Sir," .says he, " I shall be very sorry if what I have said gives you any oflence." "No, no," said I, "I am ollended with nobody but myself; but L am perfectly confounded, not only to think that I should never take any notice of this before, but with reflecting what notice I am able to take of it now. You know, sir," sivid I, "what circmnstanccs I am in ; I am bound to the Kast Indies in a ship freighted by merchants, and to whom it woiild bo an insuflerablo piece of injustice to detain their ship hero, the men lying all this while at victuals and wages on the ownei-s' account. It is true, I agreed to be allowed twelve days hero, and if 1 stay more, I must jmy thre- pounds sterling ;)'•>• dloni demurrage: nor can I t^ttHBMiiiMi..^... i"[ ir^iiiii ninnriii i ^]i staj- upon demurrage above eight days more, and I have been here thirteen ah-eady ; so that I am perfectly unable to engage in this work, unless I would suffer myself to be left behind here again ; in which case, if this single ship should miscarry in any part of her voyage, I should be just in the same condition that I was left in here at first, and from which I have been so wonderfully delivered." He owned the case was very hard upon me as to my voyage ; but laid it home upon my conscience, whether the blessing of saving thirty-seven souls was not worth venturing all I had in the world for. I was not so sensible of that as he was. I replied to him thus : " Why, sir, it is a valuable thing, indeed, to be an instrument in God's hand to convert thirty-seven heathens to the knowledge of Christ ; but as you are an ecclesiastic, and are given over to the work, so it seems so naturally to fall into the way of your profession ; how is it, then, that 3'ou do not rather offer yourself to undertake it than press me to do it 1" Upon this he faced about just before me, as he walked along, and putting me to a full stop, made me a very low bow. " I most heai-tily thank God and you, sir," said ho, " for giving me so evident a call to so blessed a work ; and if you think yourself dis- charged from it, and desire me to undertake it, I will most readily do it, and think it a happy reward for all the hazards and difficulties of such a broken, disap]Dointed voyage as I have met with, that I am dropped at last into so glorious a work." I discovered a kind of rapture in his face v^^hile he spoke this to me : his eyes sparkled like fire, his lace glowed, and his colour came and went, as if he had been falling into fits ; in a word, he was fired with the joy of being embarked in such a work. I paused a considerable while before I could tell what to say to liim ; for I Avas really surprised to find a man of such sincerity and zeal, and carried out in his zeal beyond the ordinary rate of men, not of his profession only, but even of any profession whatsoever. But after I had considered it awhile, I asked him seriously if he was m earnest, and that he would venture, on the single consideration of an attempt to convert those poor people, to be locked up in an implanted island for, perhaps, his life, and at last might not know whether he should be able to do them good or not. He turned short upon nie, and asked me what I called a venture. " Pray, sir, said he, "Avhat do you think I consented to go in your ship to the East Indies for 1 j " Kay," said I, " that I know not, unless it was to preach to the Indians." " Doubtless it was," said he ; '^ and do you think, if I can gonvert these thirty-seven men to the faith of Jesus Christ, it is not worth my time, though I should never be fetched off the ibland again ?— nay, is it not infinitely of more worth to save so many souls than my life is, or the life of twenty more of the same profession 1 Yes, sir," says he, " I would give Christ and the blessed Virgin thanks all my days if I could be made the happy instrument of saving the souls of those poor men, though I v/ere never to get my foot off this island, 'or see my native country any more. But since you vv^ill honour me ^^ ith putting me into this work, for which I will pray for you all the days of my life, I have one humble petition to you besides." " What is that ? " said I. " Why," rays he, " it is, that you will leave your man Friday with me, to be my interpreter to them, and to assist me ; for without some help I cannot speak to them, or they to me." I was sensibly touched at his requesting Friday, because I could not think of parting with him, and that for many reasons : he had been the companion of my travels ; he v.-as not only faithful to me, but sincerely affectionate to the last degree ; and I had resolved to do something considerable for him if he outlived me, as it was probable he would. Then I knew that, as I had bred Friday up to be a Protestant, it would quite confound him to bring him to embrace another religion ; and he Avould never, while , - ^^-^ 2S3 ^Nl ^ '^-'cv^ py^'-"* '^^''^*"6 <'1'^"» lioiii'Ni" lliiil lii^ I'M iiiii.st \]}^ licictio, iiiul would be (liimned ; niul this might iii tho end ruin the poor iVUow ^ principUss, and so turn l>im back again to liis Hrst idohitrv. However, a euddt'ii thought relieved, mo in this strait, and it was this : I told him T could not say that I was willing to part with Friday on any account whatever, Ihnugh a work that to him was of moro value tlian his lite ought to V)e to lilt" of much moro valuo than the keeping or parting with a servant. But, [v >n tho other hand, I was persuaded that Friday would by no means agree <^ ' o )uir( witii me ; and I could not foree him to it without his consent^ without ^C[,\^ t injustieo ; because 1 had promised I would never sen^&-<^ T^^-^ Z^^**' ]i(Jl;l.\SOX CRUSUK. tiilk with the rest. lie siiid, as for liimsdf, he need not consuler of it at all, for he v very ready to do it, and wius glad I liad a minister with nie, and he believed tlicy woiil be all willing also. I then told him that my friend, the minister, was a Frenchman, and could not speak English, but I would act the clerk between them. He never much as asked mo whether lie was a Papist or Protestant, which wa.^, indeed, what ' was afraid of; so wo })arted : I went back to my clergyman, and AVill Atkins went ; to talk with his companions. I desired the French gentleman not to say an}-thing ; them till the business was thoroughly ripe ; and I told Lini what answer the men hi given me. Before I went from their quarter they all came to me, and told lac ilay had bc«ii considering what I had said ; that they were glad to hear I had a clergyman in my company, and they were very willing to give me the .satisHxction I desired, and to bo formally mairied as soon as I jdeased ; for they were far from desiring to pari witli their wives, and that they meant nothing but what was ver}' honest when they chose them. So I appointed them to meet me the next morning ; and, in the meantime, they should let their -wives know the meaning of the maniage law ; and that it was not oidy to i)revent any scandal, but also to oblige them that they should not forsiikc them, whatever might happen. The women were easily made sensIMo of the moaning of tlio thing, and wore very wi-Il satisfied with it, as, indeed, they had reason to be : so they failed not to attend altogether at my apartment next morning, where I brought out my clergyman'; and though he had not on a minister's gown, after the manner of England, or the habit of a I)riest, after the manner of France, yet having a black vest something like a cassock, with a sash round it, he did not look very unlike a minister; and as for his language, I was his inter])reter. But the seriousness of his behavioiir to them, and the scruples ho made of marrying the women, because they were not baptised and i>rofosscd Christians gave them an exceeding reverence for his jierson ; and there was no need, after that, to iiupiire whether he was a clergyman or not. Indeed, I was afraid his scniples would have been carried so far as that ho would not have married them at all ; nay, notwith- slanding all I was able to say to him, he resisted me, though modestly, yet very steadily, and at liust refused absolutely to marry them, \uiless ho had first talked with the men and the women too ; and though at first I was a little backward to it, yet at last I agreed to it with a good will, perceiving the sincerity of his design. "Wlien ho came to them, he let them know that I had acquainted him with their ciiTumstances, and with the present design ; that he was very willing to perform that part of his function, and many them, as T had desired ; but that before ho could do it ho must take tho liberty to talk with them. He told them that in the sight of nil iiidifrerent men, and in the sense of tho laws of society, they had lived all this while in open fornication ; and that it was true that nothing but the consenting to many, or eflectually separating them from ouo another, could noAV put an end to it ; but there was a dilliculty in it too, with resi)ect to tho laws of Christian matrimony, which ho Wits not fully 8atis(icd about, tliat of marrying one that is a profasscd Christian to a savage, an idolater, nnd a heathen— one that is not baptised ; and yet that ho did not SCO that thero was tiino left to endeavour to persuade tho women to bo baptised, or to profes.s tho name of Christ, whom they had, ho doubted, hoard nothing of, and without which they could not bo baptised. Jlo told them he doubted they were but indifferent Christians themselves; that they had but little knowledge of God or of his ways, and therefore he could not expect that they had said much to their wives on that head tp:aciiin(;.s of the priest. rot ; but that unless they would promise him to use their endeavours with thoir wives to jiorsuado them to become Christians, and would, as well as they could, instruct tlunu ill the knowledge and belief of God that made them, and to worship Jesus Gluist that redeemed them, he could not marry them ; for he would liave no hand in joining Christians with savages, nor was it consistent with the principles of the Christian religion, and was, indeed, expressly forbidden in God's hiw. They heard all this very attentivel}', and I delivered it very faithfully to them fronr his mouth, as near his own words as I could, only sometimes adding something of my own, to convince them how just it was, and that I was of his mind; and I always very faithfully distinguished between what I said from myself, and what were the clergyman's words. They told me it was very true what the gentleman said, that they were very indifferent Christians themselves, and that they had never talked to their wives about religion. " Lord, sir," says Will Atkins, " how should we teach thom religion 1 Why, we know nothing ourselves; and besides, sir," said he, "should vv'e talk to them of God and Jesus Christ, and heaven and hell, it would make them laugli at us, and ask us what we believe ourselves. And if we should tell them that we believe all the things we speak of to them, such as of good people going to heaven, and wicked people to the devil, they would ask us where we intend to go ourselves, that believe all this, and are such wicked fellows as we indeed are. Why, sir, 'tis enough to give them a surfeit of religion at first hearing ; folks must have some religion themselves before they pretend to teach other people." " Will Atkins," said I to him, " though I am afraid that what you say has too much truth in it, yet can you not tell your wife she is in the wrong ; that there is a God, and a religion better than her own ; that her gods are idols ; that they can neither hear nor speak ; that there is a great Being that made all things, and that can destroy all that he has made ; that he rewards the good and ])unishes the bad; and that we are to be judged by him at last for all we do here 1 You are not so ignorant, but even Nature itself will teach you that all this is true ; and I am satisfied you know it all to be true, and believe it yourself." "That is true, sir," said Atkins ; " but with what face can I say anything to my wife of all this, v/hen she will tell me immediately it cannot be true V " Not true !" said I ; " v/hat do you mean by that ] " " Why, sir," said he, " she will tell me it cannot be true that this G od I shall tell her of can be just, or can i^unish or reward, since I am not punished and sent to the devil, that have been such a wicked creature as she knows I have been, even to her, and to everybody else ; and that I should be suffered to live, that have been always acting so contrary to what I must tell her is good, and to Avhat I ought to have done." "Why, truly, Atkins," said I, "I am afraid thou speakest too much truth;" and with that I informed the clergyman of what Atkins had said, for he Avas impatient to know. " Oh," said the priest, " tell him there is one thing will make him the best minister in the world to his wife, and that is, i-epentance ; for none teach repentance like true penitents. Ho wants nothing but to repent, and then he will be so much the better qualified to instruct his wife ; he will then be able to tell her that there is not only a God, and that he is the just rewarder of good and evil, but that he is a mei-ciful Being, and, with infinite goodness and long-suffering, forbears to punish those that oftend; waiting to be gracious, and willing not the death of a sinner, but rather that he should return and live ; that oftentimes he suffers wicked men to go a long time, and even reserves damnation to the general day of retribution ; that it is a clear evidence of God and of a future state, that righteous men receive not their rewai'd, or wicked men their punishment, till they come into another world ; and this will lead him to teach hi3 v/ifc liolU N.SOX. CRUSOK. the doctrine of the resurrection and of the last judgment Let him but i-epent himself, h«' will be an r xcellent i>reachcr of repcntunce to his wife." 1 repented fill this to Atkin?, who looked very serious all the while, and who, we could easily perceive, was more than ordinarily affected with it ; when being eager, and hardly suftering me to make an end — "I know all this, master," says he, "and a "rent deal more ; but I have not the imptidence to talk thus to my wife, when God and my conscience know, and my wife will be an \uideniable e\-idence against me, that I have lived as if I had never heard of a God or future state, or anything about it ; a«d to ti\\k of mv repenting, alas ! (and with that he fetched a deep sigh, and I could see tliat the teai-s stood in his eyes) 'tis i>i\ni all that with me." '« Past it, Atkins ? " said T : " what dost thou mean by that ?" " I know well enough what I mean," sjiys he ; '• 1 mean 'tis too late, and that is too true." I told the clergyman, word for word, what he said : the poor, zealous priest— I must eall him .so for, be his opinion what it will, ho liad certainly a most singular aflectiou for the good of other men's souls, and it would be hard to think he had not the like for ],is own I .sav, this affectionate man could not refrain from teai-s ; but, recovering him- self, .Slid to me, "Ask him but one question. Is he ea.sy that it is too late ; or is he troubled, and wishes it were not so?" I put the question fairly to Atkins; and he answered, with a great deal of pa-ssion, "How could r.ny man be ea.sy in a condition that must certainlv end in eternal destruction ? that he was far from being easy ; but that, on the contrary, he believed it would one time or other niin him." "AVhatdoyou mean by that?" .said I. "Why," he said, "he believed he should one t'.nio or other cut his throat, to i)ut an end to the terror of it." The clergyman .shook his head, with great concern in his face, when I told him all this • but turning quick to me upon it, .say.s, " If that be his case, we may a.ssure him it is not too late ; Christ will give him repentance. But pray," says he, " explain this to him ; that as no man is saved but by Christ, and the merit of his pa.ssion procuring l^ivine mercy for him, how can it be too late for any man to receive mercy ? Does he tliink ho is able to sin beyond the power or reach of Divine mercy ? Pi-ay tell him there may be a time when provoked mercy will no longer strive, and when God may refupe to hear, biit that it is never too late for men to a.sk mercy ; and we, that are Christ's servant.s, are commanded to preach mercy at all times, in the name of Jesus Christ, to all those that sincerely repent : .so that it is never too late to rrpent." I lold Atkins all this, and ho heard me with great earnestness ; but it seemed as if Ik' turned off the discourse to the rest, for ho said to me, he would go and have some talk with his wife ; so ho went out awhile, and we talked to the rest. I perceived they were all stupidly ignorant as to mattei-s of religion, as mucli as I was when I went i:\mbling away from my father ; and yet there were none of them backward to hear what had been said : and all of them seriou.sly promised that they would talk with (heir w ives about it, and do their endt^avours to persuade thena to turn Christian.s. The clergyman smiled uj)on me when I reported what answer they gave, but said nothing a good while ; but at last, shaking his head, "We that are Christ's .servants," says he, "can go no farther than to exhort and instnict ; and when men comply, submit to the reproof, and promi.se what we ask, 'tis all we can do ; we are bound to accept their good words ; but believe me, sir," said he, " whatever you may have known of the life of that man you call Will Atkins, I believe ho is the only sincere convert among them ; 1 will not despair of the rest; but that man is apparently stnick with the sense of his past life, atul I doubt not. when he comes to tdk of religion to his wife, he will talk 2S8 ^r-^s-H: ^s.^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. liiiuself effectually into it : for iittempting to teacli olhci-s is sometimes the best way uf teiicliiiig ourselves. I know a man who, having nothing but a summary notion of rcli'ion himself, and being wicked and profligate to the last degree in his life, made a thorough reformation in himself by labouring to convert a Jew, If that poor Atkins byins but once to talk seriously of Jesus Christ to his wife, my life for it he talks him- Kolf into a thorough convert, makes himself a ]ienitent ; and who knows what may follow?" Upon this discourse, however, and their promising, as above, to endeavour to per- .vnalo their wives to embrace CIn-istianity, he manied the other two couple ; but Will Atkins find his wife were not yet come in. After this, my clergyman waiting awhile, was curious to know where Atkins was gone ; and turning to me, said, '• I entreat you, fcir, let us walk out of your labyrinth here, and look; I daresay we shall find this poor man somewhere or other talking seriously to l»is wife, and teaching her already some- tl.ing of religion." T began to be of the same mind ; so we went out together, and I carried him a M-ay which none knew but myself, and where the trees were so very thick that it was not easy to see through the thicket of leaves, and far harder to see in than to see out : when, coming to the edge of the wood, I .saw Atkins and his tawny wife sitting under the shade of a bush, very eager in discourse ; I stopped short till my clergyman came up to me, and then, having shown him where they were, we stood and looked very steadily at them a good while. We observed him very earnest with her, pointing up to »' the sun, and to every quarter of the heavens, and then down to the eai-th, then out to the sea, then to himself, then to her, to the woods, to the trees. "Now," says the c^.crgyman, " you see my words are made good, the nian preaches to her ; mark him now, he is telling her that our God has made him and her, and the heavenfi, the eai-lh, the sea, the wood-", the trees, \Tiy, I iirst told her the naturo of our laws about mariiage, and what the >' reasons wore that men and women were obliged to enter into such compacts as it was ntilhor in the power of one nor other to break ; that otherwi.-e, order and justice couhl not bo maintained, and men would nin from their wive.«!, and abandon their children, nnx confusedly with one another, and neither families bo kej)t entire nor inheritances bo settled by legal descent. Jf. C. — You talk like a civilian, Will. Could you make her undci-stand what you nionnt by inheritance and fatnilivs ? They know no .such things among the .savages, but mj'rry nnyhow, without regard to relation, consanguinity, or family ; brother and sister, as I have been told, even the father and the daiighter, and the son and the mother. A. — 1 believe, sir, you arc misinformed, and my wife a.'j-nres mo of tlic contrary, f and that they abhor it; ]'erhap.s, for any farther relations, thry iHky not be po exact as | we are ; but .^ho tells mo never in the near relationship you speak of. /.'. ('.— AVdl, Avhat did hlie sjiy to whai you told her? > ir 1 1, v>^S WILL ATKINS AND HIS WIFE. ir. A. — She said slio likccl it very well, as it was much better than in her country. It. C. — But did you tell her what marriage was? W. A. — i^ /, ay, there began all our dialogue. I asked her if bIig would bo married to me OTir ,voy. She asked me what way that was. I told her marriage was ai>i)ointod by God ; fvud liere we had a strange talk together, indeed, as ever man and wife hid, l\.elle-,c. IT. C. — This dialogue between Will Atkins and his wife I took down in writing, jnsfc afti--) lie had told it me, which was as follows. )\l/e. — Appointed by your God ! Why, have you a God in your country 1 Vr. A , — Yes, my dear, God is in every countr3% ir.'A — No your God in my country ; my country have the great old Bcnamnclroo God. If. A. — Child, 1 am very unfit to show you who God is ; God is in heaven, and made the heaven and the earth, the sea, and all that in them is. Wife. — No makee de earth ; no you God makee de earth ; no makee my conntr\-. Will Atkins laughed a little at her expression of God not making her country. Wife. — No laugh ; why laugh- me 1 This nothing to laugh. He was justly reproved by his wife, for she was more serious than he at first. TI^. A. — That's true, indeed ; I will not laiigh any more, my dear. Wi/c. — AVliy, you say you God makee all 1 W. A. — Yes, child, our God made the whole world, and you, and me, and all things ; for he is the only true God, and there is no God but him ; he lives for ever in heaven. Wije. — Why you no tell me long ago ? W. A. — That's true, indeed; but I have been a wicked wretch, and have not only forgotten to acquaint thee with anything before, but have lived without God in tlic V orld myself. Wife. — What, have you a great God in your country, you no knovr him ? No .-ay Gh ! to him ? No do good thing for him 1 That no possible. IF. A. — It is true, though, for all that ; we live as if there was no God in herivon, f I that he had no power on earth. Wi/e. — But why God let you do so ? Why he no makee you good live ? W. A. — It is all our own fault. Wi/e. — But you say me he is great, much great, have much great power, can makeo liill when he will, why he no makee kill when yon no serve him ? No say Oh ! to liim, no be good mans. Vf. A. — That is true, he might strike me dead; and I ought to expect it, fori Lave been a wicked wretch, that is true; but God is merciful, and does not deal with lis as we deserve. W!/e. — But then you do not tell God thankee for that too ? W. A. — No, indeed, I have riot tlianked God for his mercy, any more than I liave foared God for his power. Wi/e. — Then you God no God ; me no think believe he be such one, great much power strong : no makee kill you, though you make him much angry. W. A. — What! will my wicked life hinder you from believing in God? What a dreadful creature am I ! and what a sad truth is it, that the horrid lives of Christians hinder the conversion of heathens ! Wi/e. — How me thii&: you have great much God up there [she points up to heaven], and yet no do well, no do good thing ? Can he tell ? Sui'c he no tell v.liat you do ? 295 H^ KuiilNSON CRUSOE. ir. A.—YcH, yes, lie knows and sees fill things ; lie hears lis speak, sees wlnt wc <\'\ knows what we think, though we do not sju-ak. ir;/-t.._What ! he no hear you curse, swear, speak de great damn? ]\\ J. — Yes, yes, he hears it all. ir//-^ _AVh(.re bo then the much great power strong ? ]\\ J. lie Is merciful, that is all we can say for it ; and thi.s proves him to bo the tnie God ; he is God, and not man, and therefore we are not consumed. Here Will Atkins told us ho was struck with horror, to think how he could tell his wife so clearly that God 8?es, and hears, and knows the .secret thoughts of the heart, an I all that we do, and yet that he had dared to do all the vih things he had done. I)';/;-._^[eiciful : What you call that ? ir. yl.— He is our father and maker, and ho jiities ano.l, ri;^diteous, and holy, and tends to make \i3 pei-fectly good, as well as perfectly happy ; and because ho forbids, and commands us to avoid, nil that is wicked, that is evil in itself, or evil in it - (onscqucncc. )IV/*i'. — That me would uudcr.staud, tliat me fain sec; if ho t.iKhuc all good tliiii-, makee all good thing, he give all thing, he hear me when I say Oh ! to him, as you do ' now; lie makco me good, if I wish to be good ; he spare me, no makee kill me, win n) be good : all this you say ho do, yet he be great God: mo take, think, believe him to 1 e great God : me say C)h ! to him with you, my dear. Hero the i)oor luan could forbear no longer, but raisei.l her up, made her kneel by Iiim, and ho jnaycd to God aloud to instruct her in tlio knowledge of liimself, by his Sj>irit ; and that by some gooil i>rovidenee, if possible, she niight, some time or other, come to have a Bible, that she might read the AVord of God, and be taught by it to know him. This was tho time that we saw him lift her up by the llaud, and s;\w him kneel down by her, as above. They had .several other discourses, it seems, afler this, too long to be set down hero ; and particularly, she made him promise that, since he confessed his own life h.nd been a wicked, abominable course of provocations against God, that he would reform it, and not niakc God an^ry any more, lest he sho\dd make him dead, as she called it, an 1 tlion fhc 298 BAPTISM OF ATKINS' WIFE. Avould be left alone, and uevev bo tauglit to know this God better ; and lest he should b j miserable, as ho had told her wicked men would be, after death. This was a strange account, and very affecting to lis both, but particularly to the yoiuig clergyman ; he was, indeed, wondei'fully surprised with it, but under the greatest afflic- tion imaginable that he could not talk to her, that lie could not speak English, to make her understand him ; and as she spoke but very broken English, he could not understand her ; however, he turned himself to me, and told me that he believed that there must bo more to do with this woman than to marry her. I did not understand him at first ; but at length he explained himself^ viz., that she oiight to be baptized. I agreed with him in that part readily, and Vv'ished it to be done presently. "T^o, no ; bold, sir," said he ; " though I would have her be baptized, by all means, for I must observe that Will Atkin^', her husband, has indeed brought her, in a wonderful manner, to be willing to embrace a religious life, and has given her just ideas of the being of a God, of his power, justice, and mercy ; yet I desire to know of him if he has said anything to her of Jesus Christ, and of the salvation of sinners ; of the nature of faith in him, and redemption by hiai ; of the Holy Spirit, the resurrection, the last judgment, and the future state." I called Will Atkins again, and asked him ; but the poor fellow fell immedintel,- into tears, and told us he had said something to her of all those things, but that he vras himself so wicked a creatiu'e, and his own conscience so reproached him -svith his horrid, ungodly life, that lie trembled at the apprehensions that her knowledge of him should lessen the attention she should give to those things, and make her rather contemn religion than receive it ; but he was assured, he said, that her mind was so disposed to receive due impressions of all those things, and that if I would but discourse with hcj-, she would make it appear to my satisfaction that my la'bour would not be lost upon hei'. Accordingly, I called her in, and placing myself as interpreter between my religious priest and the woman, I entreated him to begin with her ; but sure such a sermon v.'as never preached by a Popish j)riest in these latter ages of the world ; and, as I told hiui, I thought he had all the zeal, all the. knowledge, all the sincerity of a Christian, without the error of a Eoman Catholic ; and that I took him to be such a clergyman as the Komaa bishops were before the church of Rome assumed spiritual sovereignty over the con- I sciences of men. In a word, he brought the poor woman to embrace the knowledge of ; Christ, and of redemption by him, not with wonder and astonishment only, as she did the first notions of a God, but with joy and faith; with an affection, and a sui-prisiug . degree of understanding, scarce to be imagined, much less to be expressed ; and, at her own request, she was baptised. When he was preparing to baptise her I entreated him that he vv'ould perform that ' :Uce with some caution, that the man might not perceive he v.-as of the Roman Church, ii' possible, because of other ill consequences which might attend a diflerence among us in that very religion which we were instructing the other in. He told me that as ho had no consecrated chapel, nor proper things for the office, I should see he would do it in a manner that I should not know by it that he was a Roman Catholic myself, if I h;i 1 not known it before; and so he did; for saying only some words over to himself in Latii), which I could not understand, he poured a whole dishful of water upon the woman's head, pronouncing in French, very loud, "Mary (which was the name her hu.sband desired me to give her, for I was her godfather), I baptise thee in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost ; " so that none could know anything by it wliafc religion he was of. He gave the benediction afterwards in Latin, but either Will Atkins did not know but it was French, or else did not take notice of it at ^1'"+ t'"^'\ ^'M'^^" m^ {:ff As soon as this wiis over, we iiuirried them ; and after the mamagc Wiis over, he turned to Will Atkins, and in a very afTectionatc manner exhorted him, not only to per- severe in that good disposition he was in, but to support the convictions that were upon liim by a resolution to reform his life ; told liim it wius in vain to say he repented if lio dill not foi-sakc his crimes : rejjresentcd to him how God had honoured him with being the instrument of bringing his wife to the knowledge of the Christian religion, and that lie should be careful he should not dishonour tlie gi-aco of God ; and that if he did, ho would see the heathen a better Christian th.an himself; the savage converted, and the instrument cast away. He said a great many good tilings to them both ; and then, recommending them to God's goodness, gave them the benediction again, I repc iting everything to them in English ; and thus ended the ceremony. I think it was the most pleasant and agreeable day to me that ever I pa.ssed in my whole life. But my clergyman had not done yet : his thoughts hung continually upon the ct)u- version of the thirty-seven sixvages, and fain he Avoidd have stayed upon the island to have undertaken it ; but T convinced him, first, that his imdertaking was imjiracticuble in itself; and, secondly, that i)crhaps I would put it into a way of being done in his absence to his satisfaction. Having thus brought the all'airs of the island to a narrow eompa,ss, I was prepaiing to g(; on board the ship, when the young man I had taken oiit of the famished ship's (■omi)any came to jne, and told mc he iniderstood I had a clergyman with me, and that I had caused the Englishmen to be married to the savages ; that he had a match too, which he desired might be finished before T went, between two Christians, which he ho2)cd woxdd not bo disagreealilc to m(\ 1 knew this must be the young woman v.ho was his mother's servant, for there was no other Christian woman on the island : so I began to persuade him not to do anything of that kind rashly, or because he found himself in this solitary circumstitnce. I repre- sented to him that he had some considerable substance in the world, and good friends, as T understood by himself, and the mai.l also ; that the maid w;vs not only poor, and a servant, but was unccjual to him, she being six or seven and twenty years old, and ho not above seventeen or eighteen; that he might very probably, with my assistance, make a remove from this wilderne.'^s, and come into his own country again ; and that then it would bo a thousand to one but ho would repent his choice, and the dislike of that circumstance might be disadvantjigeous to both. I was going to say more, but he interrupted me, smiling, and told me, with a great deal of modesty, that I mistook in my gucs.ses ; that lie had nijlhing of that kind in his thoughts; and ho was very glad to hear that I had an intent of putting them in a way to see thoir own country again ; and nothing .should have made him thiidc of staying there, but that the voyage I was gt)ing was .so exceeding long iui.l haziu-dou.s, and would carry him rpiitc out of the reach of all his friends; that . he had nothing to desire of mo, but that I would .settle him in some little property in the island where he was, give him a servant or two, and some few neces.s;iries, an»l ho would live here like a planter, waiting the good time when, if ever I returned to Enghuid, I woidd redeem him ; and hoped 1 wouhl not bo unmindful of him when I came to I'-iigland : that he would give mo son)e letters to his friends in London, to let them know liow good T h;id Imm 11 to him, and iu what j.arb of the world, and what circumstiinccs I had left him in: and he jn-omised nu? that whenever I redeemed him, the plantation, and all the improv.Mnents ho had made upon it, let the value be what it would, .should be wholly mine. His di-!eourse w; very jirettily deliv ered, and was the mon :^ CitlJBOE ^m^.^AT^i^H^^ A-^lfel-R ■ I yl-;^;;^^^'^ agreeable to me, because lie told me positively (k|-> was uot for himself. I gave liim all possible assurances that if I I'^'Ti^ /UW ' ^'^^'^"^ *° ^°^^^° ^^^^ ^° England, I Avould deliver his letters, and do M p^r' ^"^^ business effectually; and that he might depend I should nev p\!,| forget the circumstances I had left him in ; but still I was impatiem Ur';^-^ know who was the person to be married ; upon which he told me it Avas >) Jack-of- all-trades and his maid Susan. I was most agreeably surprised he named the match ; for, indeed, I thought it very suitable. The charac v^\ when ter of that man I have given already ; and as for the maid, she was a very Ai^ i£&^ ex XxUa^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. honest, nicxlest, sober, and religious young woman ; Lad a very good share of sense, -was rigi-eoable enough in lier i)crson, spoke vei'V hands Jiuely and to tlic purpose, always with tlccency and goo;l manners, and was neither too backward to speak when rcquij>ite, nor impertinently forward when it was not her business ; very handy and housewifely, .'uid an excellent manager ; fit, indeed, to have been governess to the whole island ; and .she knew very well how to behave in every respect. The match being proposed in this maimer, we married them the .y capitulation, as it were nrticlca of sur- render, which they ought not to break. They most willingly embraced the proposal, and came all very elieorfully along with him : .so wo allotted them lancl and jdantations, which three or four accepted of, but all the rest chose to be cmi)loyed as .servants in the .several f imilies we had settled ; and thus my colony avtis in a maimer settled as follows : — The Spaniards possessed my oiiginal habitation, which was the capiUd city, and extended their plantations all along the side of the brijok, which mado tlic crock that I have so often described, as far as my buwei- ; and as they increased their eidture, it went always etvstward. The English l4vcd in the north-cast part, where Will -Vtkins and his comrades began, and came on .southward and south-we.st, towjirds the l>ack i)art of the Spaniards; and every planta- tion had a -nab addition of land to take in, if they found occa.«ion, so that they need .^^"a»^ .^^^^^ THE PRESENT OF A BIBLE. I ^D K not jostle one auotlier for want of room. All the east end of the island was left unin- liubitecl, that if any of the savages should come on shore there only for their nsual custoniary barbarities, they might come and go; if thej disturbed nobod)-, nobody would disturb them ; and no doubt but they -were often .-ushox-e, and went away again, for I never heard that the planters were ever attacked or N ^ . KOlilXSON CRUSOE. Tm: r hofore." The man was so confuunded, that he was not able to speak for some time ; bu . rocovcviiig hiiiisi'ir, ho tnkes ib with botli liis Ijands, und turning to his wife, " Here, iiiv dear," says lio, "did I not t«'ll yon our God, though he lives above, could hear what wo have wiid ? Here's the Ixiok I prayed for when you and I kneeled down under i\\i Ir.ish ; now fJod has lieard u.-, and sent it," "When he had said so, the man fell \\\{.^ such tmnsports of passionato joy, that between the joy of having it, and giving (Jul tlianks for it, the tears ran down his face like a child that was crying. The woman wiis surprised, :ind was like to have run into a mistake that none of u^ were aware of, for she firmly believed God had sent the book upon her husband's petition. It is true that i»rovidentialIy it was so, and might be taken .so in a con- seqtient sense ; but I believe it would have been no difficult matter at that tiiu- to haivo i)ci-suaded the poor woman to have believed that an express messenger ca:u • from Heaven on purpose to bring that individual book ; but it was too serious a matt.;- t) sullVr any delusion to take place, so I turned to the young woman, and told her we «lid not desire to imj^oso \ii)on the now convert in her first and more ignomnt under- standing of things, and begged her to explain to her that God maybe very properly sais was starved to death, and died on board that unhappy ship we met at sea, an.l m f^^^-^--^5srf a^ ^^S -^i"^*-.^^ WHAT IT IS TO STARVE. ^'-^ Iiow the sliip's company were reduced to the last extremity. The gentlewoman, and liei- son, and this maid, were first hardly used as to provisions, and at last totally neglected and starved — that is to say, brought to the last extremity of hunger. One day, being discoursing with her on the extremities they suffered, I asked her if she could describe, by what she had felt, what it was to starve, and how it appeared. She told me she believed she could, and she told her tale very distinctly thus : — " First, sir," said she, " we had for some days fared exceeding hard, and suffered very great hunger ; but at last we were wholly without food of any kind, except sugar, and a little wine-and-water. The first day after I had received no food at all, 1 found myself, towards evening, first empty and sick at the stomach, and nearer night much inclined to yawning and sleeji. I lay down on the couch in the great cabin to sleep, and slept about three hours, and awaked a little refreshed, having taken a glass of wine when I lay down ; after being about three hours awake, it being about five o'clock in the morning, I found myself empty, and my stomach sickish, and lay down again, but could not sleep at all, being very faint and ill ; and thus I continued all the second day with a sti-ange variety — first hungry, then sick again, with retchings to vomit. The second night, being obliged to go to bed again without any food, more than a draught of fresh water, and being asleep, I dreamed I was at Barbadoes, and that the market was mightily stocked with })rovisions, — that I bought some for my mistress, and went and dined very heartily. I thought my stomach was as full after this as it would have been after a good dinner ; but when I awaked, I was exceedingly sunk in my spirits, to find myself in the extremity of famine. The last glass of wine we had I dx'ank, and put sugar in it, because of its having some spirit to supply nourishment ; but there being no substance in the stomach for the digesting office to work upon, I found the only effect of the wine was to raise dis- agreeable fumes from the stomach into the head; and I lay, as they told me, stupid and senseless, as one drunk, for some time. The third day, in the moi'ning, after a night of strange, confused, and inconsistent dreams, and rather dozing than sleeping, I awaked ravenous and furious with hunger ; and I question, had not my understanding returned and conquered it, whether, if I had been a mother, and had had a little child with me, its life would have been safe or not. This lasted about three hours, during which time I was twice raging mad as any creature in Bedlam, as my young master told me, and as he can now inform you. "In one of those fits of lunacy or distraction I fell down and struck my face against the corner of a pallet-bed, in which my mistress lay, and with the blow the blood gushed out of my nose ; and the cabin-boy bringing me a little basin, I sat down and bled into it a great deal ; and as the blood came from me, I came to myself, and the violence of the flame or fever I was in abated, and so did the ravenous part of the hunger. Then I grew sick, and retched to vomit, but could not, for I liad nothing in ray stomach to bring up. " After I had bled some time 1 swooned, and they all believed I was dead ; but I came to myself soon after, and then had a most dreadful pain in my stomach not to be described — not like the colic, but a gnawing, eager pain for food ; and towai-ds night it went off with a kind of earnest wishing or longing for food, something like, as I suppose, the longing of a woman with child. I took another draught of water with sugar in it ; but my stomach loathed the sugar, and brought it all up again ; then I took a draught of water without sugar, and that stayed with me ; and I laid me down upon the bed, praying most heartily that it would please God to take me away ; and composing my mind in hopes uf it I slumbered awhile, and then waking, thought myself dying, being light 305 m ROBINSON CRUSOE. with vapours from an empty stomach. I recommended my soul then to God, and earnestly wished that somebody would throw me into the sea. "All this wliilo my mistress lay by me, just, as I thought, expiring, but bore it vntli much more patience tlian T, — gave the last bit of bread she had left to her child, my young master, who would not have taken it, but she obliged him to oat it ; and I believe it saved liis life. "Towards the moniing I slept again ; and when I awoke I fell into a violent passion of crying, and after tliat had a second fit of violent hunger. I got \ip ravenous, and in a most dreadful condition ; had my mistress been dead, as much as I loved her, I am certain I should have eaten a piece of her Hesh with as much relish and as unconcerned as ever I did oat the Hesh of any creature appointed for food ; and once or twice I was going to bite my own arm. At last I saw the basin in which was the blood I had bh-d at my nose the day before : I ran to it, and swallowed it with such haste, and sucli a greedy appetite, as if I Avondered that nobod}' had taken it before, and afraid it should bo taken from me now. After it was down, tliough the thoughts of it filled me witli lun-ror, yet it checked the fit of hunger, and I took another dmught of water, and wa.s composed and refreshed for some hours after. This was the fourth day ; and thus I kept up till towards niglit, when, within the compass of three hours, I had all the sevoi-al circumstances over again one after another, viz., sick, sleepy, eagerly hungry, pain in the stomach, then ravenous again, then sick, then lunatic, then crying, then i*aveno\is again, and so every quarter of an hour, and my strength wasted exceedingly ; at night I lay mo down, liaving no comfort but in the hope that I should die before moniing. "All this night I had no sleep; but the hunger was now turned into a disease; and I had a terrible colic and griping, by wind, instead of food, having found its way into the bowels ; and in this condition I lay till morning, when I was surprised by the cries and lamentations of my young mastei-, who called out to me that his mother was dead, I lifted myself up a little, for I had not strength to rise, but found she was not dead, tliough she was able to give very little signs of life. " I had then .such convulsions in my stomach, for want of some sustenance, as I cannot (k'scribo ; with such frequent throes and pangs of appetite, as nothing but the tortures of death can imitate ; and in this condition I was when I hoard the seamen above cry out, * A .vail ! a sail ! ' and halloo and jump about as if they were distracted. "I was not able to get off from the bed, and my mistress much less ; and my young master was so sick that I thought he had been expiring; so we could not open the cabin door, or get any account what it was that occasioned such confusion ; nor had we had any conversation with the ship's company for two days, they having told us that they had not a mouthful of anything to eat in the ship; and this thoy told us afterwards, — they tliought we had been dead. It Avas this dreadful condition wo were in when you were sent to save our lives ; and how you found us «ir, you know as well as I, and better too." This was her own relation, and is such a distinct account of .starving to death as, 1 confes-s, I never met with, and was exceeding entertaining to mo. I am the mther apt to believe it to be a true account, because the youth gave mo an account of a good j>art i'f it; though I must own, not so distinct and .so feeling as the maid; and the rather, because it seems his mother fed him at the price of her own life : but the ix)or maid, though her constitution being sti-onger than that of her mistros.s, who was in yeai-s, and a weakly woman too, .she might struggle harder with it ; I sjiy, the j)oor maid might bo supposed to feel the extremity something sooner than her mistrcis, who might be allowed to keep the la^st bit something longer than she parted with any to relieve the maid. Xo question, as the case is here related, if our sliip, or some other, had not so providentially met them, a few days more Avould have ended all their lives, unless they had prevented it by eating one another ; and that even, as their case stood, would have served them but a little while, they being five hundi'ed leagues from any land, or any possibility of relief, other than in the miraculous manner it happened : but this i.s by the way I return to my disposition of things among the people. And, first, it is to be observed here, that for many reasons I did not think fit to let them know anything of the sloop I had fi-amed, and which I thought of setting up among them ; for I found, at least at my first coming, such seeds of division among them, that I saw plainly, had I set up the sloop, and left it among them, they would, upon every light disgust, have separated, and gone away from one another ; or perhaps have turned I pirates, and so made the island a den of thieves, instead of a plantation of sober and I religious people, as I intended it ; nor did I leave the two pieces of brass cannon that I had on board, or the two quai*ter-deck guns that my nephew took extraordinary, for the same reason : I thought it was enoiigh to qualify them for a defensive war against any that shoidd invade them, but not to set them up for an offensive war, or to go abroad to attack others ; which, in the end, would only bring ruin and destruction upon them : I reserved the sloop, therefore, and the gims, for their service another way, as I shall o!>serve in its jJace. Having now done with the island, I left them all in good circumstances, and in a flourishing condition, and went on board my ship again on the 6th of May, having been about twenty-five days among them ; and as they were all resolved to stay upon the iiland till I came to remove them, I promised to send them farther relief fi'om the Brazils, if I could possibly find an opportunity; and partictilarly I promised to send them some cattle, such as .sheep, hogs, and cows. As to the two cows and calves which I brought from England, we had been obliged, by the length of our voyage, to kill them at sea, for want of hay to feed them. The next day, giving them a salute of five guns at parting, we set sail, and arrived a: the bay of All Saints in the Brazils in about twenty-two days, meeting nothing remarkable in our jiassage but this : that about three days after we had sailed, being becalmed, and the cuiTent setting strong to the E.N.E., ninning, as it were, into a bay, or gidf on the laud side, we were driven something out of our course, and once or twice our men cried out, " Land to the eastward 1 " but whether it was the continent or islands we could not tell by any means. But the third day, towards evening, the sea smooth, and the weather calm, we saw the sea, as it were, covered towards the land vvith something very black ; not being able to discover what it was, till after some time, our chief mate, going up the mainshrouds a little way, and looking at them with a perspective, cried out it was an army. I could not imagine what he meant by an army, and thwarted hini a little hastily. " Nay, sir," says he, " don't be angiy, for 'tis an army, and a fleet too ; for I believe there are a thousand canoes, and you may see them paddle along, for they are coming towards us apace." I was a little surprised then, indeed, and so was my nephew, the captain ; for he had heard such terrible stories of them in the island, and ha\-ing never been in those seas before, that he could not tell what to think of it, but said, two or three times, we should all be devoui-ed. I must confess, considering we were becalmed, and the current set strong towards the shore, I liked it the worse ; however, I bade them not be afraid, but biing the ship to an anchor as soon as we came so near as to know that we must engage them. ?07 -•i,^ v^ ! r^AUEV.ia T(i THE ESUM0.1 The weather contiiniLcl taliii, ami tliey came on ajiacc towards us ; so I gave ortlci-s to come to an anchor and furl all our sails. As for the savages, I told them they had nothing to fear but fire, and therefore tlicy should get their boats out, and fasten them, one close hy the head, and the other by tho stern, and man them both well, and wait the issue in that posture ; this I did, that the men in the boats might be ready with sheets and buckets to jiut out any fire these sivvagcs 'might ' nileavour to fix to the outside of the ship. In this posture wc lay by for them, and in a little while thoy came up with us : but never was such horrid sight seen by Christians : though my mate was much mistaken in his calculation of their number, yet when they came up wo reckoned about a hundred and twenty-six ; some of them had sixteen or seventeen men in them, and some more, and tho Idast six or seven. When they came nearer to us, tliey seemed to be struck with wonder and astouishnKnt, as at a sight which doubtless they had never seen before ; nor couhl they at first, as wo afterwards understood, know what to make of us ; they came boldly up, however, veiy near to us, and seemed to go about to row round us ; but we called to our men in the boats not to let them come too near them. This very order brought us to an engagement with them, witliout our designing it ; for five or six of the largo canoes canio so near our 1« ng-boat, that our men beckt)netl with their hands to keep them back, which they undei*stood very well, and went back ; but at their retreat about fifty arrow.s came on board »is from those boats, and one ot our men in the long-boat was very much wounded. However, I called to them not to lilt. l,y any means; l)ut we haivded down some deal Inurds into the boat, 30S C^-i^^^^^j!^^^^_ ROBINSON CRUSOr: m^ and the cai'peuter preaeutly set up ii kiud of fence, like waste boards, to cover them from the arrows of the savages, if they should shoot again. About half an hour afterwards they all came uj) in a body astern of ns, and so near that we could easily discern what they were, though we could not tell their design ; and I cjwily found they were some of my old friends, the same sort of savages that I had been used to engage witli ; and in a short time more they rowed a little farther out to sea, till they came directly broadside with us, and then rowed down straight upon us, till they . tamo so near that they could hear us speak ; upon this I ordered all my men to keep i-lose, lest they should shoot any more arrows, and made all our guns ready ; but being so near as to be within hearing, I made Friday go out upon the deck, and call out aloud to them in his langiiage, to know what they meant ; which accordingly he did. Whetlu r they understood him or not, that I knew not ; but a-s soon a.s he had called to them, >ix of them, who were in the foremost or nighest boat to us, turned theii* canoes from u-. and stooping down, showed us their naked backs ; whether this was a defiance or chal- lenge we knew not, or whether it was done in mere contempt, or as a signal to the rest : but immediately Friday cried out they Avere going to shoot, and, unhappily for him, poor ft'llow, they let ily about three hundred of their arrows, and, to my inexpressible grief, killed poor Friday, no other man being in their sight. The poor fellow wtts shot with no less than three arrow.s, and about three more fell very near him ; such unlucky marksmen they were ! I was so cnmged at the loss of my old trusty servant and companion, that I imme- diately ordered five guns to be loaded with small shot, and fpur with great, and gavr them such a broadside as they had never heard in their lives before, to be sure. They were not above half a cable's length off when we fired ; and our gunners took their aim so well, that three or four of their canoes were overset, a,s we had reason to believe, by one shot only. The ill manners of turning up their bare backs to us gave us no great offence ; neither did I know for certain whether that which would pa.s3 for the greatest contempt among us might bo Understood so by them or not ; therefoi-e, in return, I had only resolved to have fired four or five guns at them with ))owder only, which I knew would frighten them .sufficiently : but when they .shot at us directly with all the fury they were capable of, and especially as they had killed my poor Friday, whom I so entirely loved and valued, and who, indeed, so well deserve J it, I thought my.self not only justiliablo before God and man, but would have been very glad if I could have overset every canoe there, and drowned every one of thein. T can neither tell how many wo killed nor how many wo wounded at this broadside, l>ut sure such a fright and hurry never were seen among sucii a inultitnde ; there were thirteen or fourteen of their canoes split and overset in all, and the men all set o-swim- niing : tho rest, frightened out of their wits, scoured away as hat as they could, taking but little care to save those whose boats were split or spoiled with our shot ; .so I suppose that many of them were lost; and our men took up one poor fellow swimming for his life, above lui hour after they were all gone. Tho small shot from our cannon must needs kill and wound a great many ; but, in short, wo never knew how it went with them, for tliey fled .so fast that, in tla-eo hour- or thereabouts, we could not see above three or fom- straggling canoes, nor did wo ever seo the rest any more ; for a breeze of wind springing up the same evening, we weigh. -d. and .set sail for the Brazils. ^^^■ had a jnisoner, indicd, Imt the (.-reature wax s,) sullen that he woul 1 -r1.^ ._ FAREWELL TO FRIDAY. noifchei' oat nor speak, and we all fauciecl lie would ,star\'e liimself to death : but I took a way to cure liim ; for I made them take him and turn him into the long-hoat, and make him believe they would to.ss him into the sea again, and so leave him Avhere they found him, if he would not speak : nor would that do, but they really did throw him into the sea, and came away from him; and then he followed them, for he swam like a cork, and called to them in his tongue, though they knew not one word of what he said ; however, at last, they took him in agaiu, and then he began to be more tractable : nor did I ever design they should drown him. We were now under sail again, but I was the most disconsolate creature alive for want of my man Friday, and would have been ^^eryglad to have gone back to the island, to have taken one of the rest froni thence for my occasion, but it could not be : so we went on. We had one prisonei-, as I have said, and it was a long time before we could make him understand anything ; but, in time, our men taught him some English, and he began to be a little tractable. Afterwards, we inquired what country he came fromi but could make nothing of what he said ; for his speech was so odd, all gutturals, and he spoke in the throat in such a hollow, odd manner, that we could never form a word after him; and we were all of opinion that they might speak that language as well if they were gagged as otherwise ; nor could we pei'ceive that they had any occasion either for teeth, tongue, lips, or palate, but formed their words just as a hunting-horn forms a tune with an open throat. He told us, however, some time after, when we had taught him to speak a little English, that they were going with their kings to fight a great battle. When he said kings, we asked him how many kings. He said they wei'e five nation (we could not make him undei'stand the plural s), and that they all joined to go against two nation. We asked him what made them come up to us. He said, " To makee te great wonder look." Here it is to be observed, that all those natives, as also those of Africa, when they learn English, always add two e's at the end of the woixls where we use one ; and they place the accent upon them, as makee, takee, and the like ; nay, T could hardly make Friday leave it off, though at last he did. And now I name the poor fellow once more, I must take my last leave of him. Poor honest Friday ! We buried him with all the decency and solemnity possible, by I putting him into a coffin, and throwing him into the sea ; and I caused them to fire eleven guns for him ; and so ended the life of the most grateful, faithful, honest, and most affectionate servant that ever man had. We went now away with a fair wind for Brazil ; and in about twelve days' time we made land, in the latitude of five degrees south of the line, being the north- easternmost land of all that part of America. We kept on S. by E., in sight of the shore four days, Avhen we made Cape St. Augustine, and in three days came to an anchor off the bay of All Saints, the old place of my deliverance, from whence came both my good and evil fate. Never ship came to this port that had less business than I had, and yet it was with great difficulty that we were admitted to hold the least correspondence on shore : not my partner himself, who was alive, and made a great figure among them ; not my two mer- chant-tnistees ; not the fame of my wonderful preservation in the island, could obtain me that favour ; but my partner, remembering t'liat I had given five hundred moidores to the Prior of the Monastery of the Augustines, and two hundred and seventy-two to the poor, went to the monastery, and obliged the prior that then was to go to the governor, and get leave for me personally, with the captain and one more, besides eight seamen, to come on shriro, and no more ; and this upon condition, absolutely capitulated for, that 311 jE^J>e^£>^-:. 7m^x^. KOlilNSON CRUSOE. 1 we slioulil not offer to land any goo^ls out of the sliip, or to cany any pei*son away -with- ont licence. They were so strict with lis, a.s to landing any goods, that it was with (xtremi! dinicidly tliat I got on shore three bales of English goods, such as fine broad- cloths, Btuffs, and some linen, which I had brought for a present to my partner. He was a very generous, open-hearted man ; though, like me, he began with little at first; and though he knew not that I had the least design of giving him anything, he sont me on board a present of fresh provisions, wine, and sweetmeats, worth above thirty moidores, including some tobacco, and three or four fine medals of gold : but I was even with him in my present, which, as I have said, consisted of fine broadcloth, English stuffs, lace, and fine Hollands ; also, I delivered him about the value of one hundred pounds sterling, in the same goods, for other uses ; and I obliged him to set up the sloop, whictx I harl brought with me from England, as I have said, for the use of my colony, in ordr to send the refreshments I intended to my plantation. Accordingly, he got hands, and finished the sloop in a very few days, for she was already framed; and I gave the master of her such instructions that he could not miss tlie place ; nor did he, as I had an account from my partner afterwards. I got him soon loaded with the small cargo I sent them ; and one of our seamen, that had been on shore with me there, offered to go with the sloop and settle there, ui)on my letter to the gover- nor .S2)ani:;rd, to allot him a sufficient cpiantity of land foi* a plantation, and giving him some clothes and tools for his planting work, which he said he understood, having been an old planter at ^Maryland, and a buccaneer into the bargain. I encouraged the fellow by granting all he desired ; and, as an addition, I ga\'e him the savage whom we had taken prisoner of war, to be his slave, and ordered the goNcrnor Spaniard to give him his share of everything he wanted with the rest. When we came to fit this man out, my old partner told nie there was a certain very honest fellow, a Bmzil jdanter of his acrpiaintance, who had fallen into the displea.sure of the church. "I know not what the matter is with him," says he, "but, on my conscience, I think ho is a heretic in his heart, and he has been obliged to conceal him- self for fear of the Inquisition;" that he would be very glad of such an oi)j)ortunity to make his escape, with his wife and two daughters; and if I would let them go to my island, and allot them a jdantation, he would give them a small stock to begin with — for the officers of the Inquisition had seized all his effects and estate, and he had nothing left but a little household stuff, and two slaves. " And," adds he, " though I hate his principles, yet I would not have hiiu fall into their hands, for he will be a«:suredly l)urned alive if he does." 1 ■Manted tliii ])resently, and joined my Englishman with thcni ; and we concealed the man, and his wife and daughters, on board our ship, till the sloop put out bo go to sea ; and then, having put all their goods on board some time before, we jmt them on board the sUK)p after she was got out of the bay. ( )ur seaman was mightily jileased with this new partner ; and their stocks, indeed, were much alike, rich in tools, in preparations, and a farm, — but nothing to begin with, except as above : however, they carried over with them what wa.s worth all the rest, sonic materials for planting siigar-cane.s, with some plants of canes, which he — I mean the Portugal man — understood very well. Among the rest of the supplies sent to my tenants in the island, I sent ihem by the Nloop three milch cows and iWo calves, about twenty-two hogs among them, three .sows I'll,' with pig, two mares, and a stone-horse. For my .Spaniards, according to myjiromise, 1 engaged three Portugal women to go, and recommcndcil it to them to marry them 3' 2 ^J M ^^^lMSti'^r*M^Mm^^tSII^9S^~'' \t ROBINSON CRUSOE. and use tliem kindly. I could li.nvo procured more Avomen, but 1 remembei-ed that tlie poor prosecuted man had two daughters, and that there were but five of the Bpaulaitla that wanted — the rest had wives of their own, though in another countiy. All this cargo arrived safe, and, as you may easily suppose, was very Welcome to my oM inhabitantf?, who Avero now, with this addition, between sixtyand seventy people, besides littlo cliildi'fn, of which there were a great many. I found letters at London from them all, by way of Lisbon, v licii 1 camo back to England, of which I shall also take sumo notice immediately. I havo now done with the island, and all manner of discourse about it : and whoevet* reads the rest of my memorandums would do well to turn his thoughts entirely from It, and e.xpect to road of the follies of an oil man, not warned b} his own harm', much less by those of other men, to beware ; not cooled by almost forty years' miseries and dis- appointments ; not satisQed Avi'v prosperity beyond expectation, nor made cautious by afflictions and distress bevond imitation. I had no more business to go to the East Indies than a man at fvdl liberty has to go to the turnkey at Newgate and desire him to lock him up among the prisoners there, and stirve him. Had I taken a small vessel from England, and gone directly to the island ; had I loaded her, as I did the other veSsel, with all the necessaries for the plantation, atul for my people j taken a patent from the Government here to have secured my property in subjection only to that of England ; had I carried over cannon and ammunition, servants and j^ople to plant, and taken possession of the place, fortified and Rtrengthened it in the name of England, and increased it with people, as I might easily have done ; had I then Bcttled myself there, and sent the ship back laden with good rice, as I might also havo done in si.x months' time, and ordered my friends to liave fitted her out again for our supijly, — had I done this, and stayed there myself, I had at least acted like a man of common sense : but I wasposscssodof a wandering spirit, and scorned all advan- Ingcs : 1 i»lcased myself with being the jiatron of the people I placed thei-e, and doing foi' them in a kind of haughty, majestic way, like an old patriarchal monarch, pi'ovldlng for t'lem as if I had been father of the whole fiimily, as well as of the plantation : but 1 never BO much as pretended to plant in the name of any government or nation, or to ackuow- Icd'^e any prince, or to call my people subjects to any one nation more than another ; nay,* 1 never so much as gave the ])laco a name, but left it as I found It, belonging to nobody, and the people under no discipline or government but my own ; who, though 1 had in* lluonco over them as a father and benefactor, had no authority or power to act or com- mand one way or other, farther than voluntary consent moved them to comply ; yet even this, had 1 stayed there, would havo done well enough : but as 1 liimbled fron\ them and camo there no more, the last lettei-s I had from any of them Avere by my partner's means, who afterwards sent another sloop to the place, and who sent me word, though I had not the letter till I got to London, several years after it Avas written, that they went I on but poorly j were discontent Avilh their long stay there ; tlmti Will Atkins Avas dead j that five of the Hpaniards were come away ; and though they had not been niuch molested by the savages, yet they had had some skirmishes Avith them j and that they begged of I him to Avrlto to me to think of the promise I had made to fetch them away, that they j niight see their country again before they died. ' Hut 1 Avas gone a Avildgoose chase indeed ! and they that will have ftny nior« of mo nuist bo content to folloAV mo into a new variety of follies, hardships, a»ul Avlld adventtU'cs, wherein the justice of Providence may bo duly observed; aiul Ave may pee how ea?ily I Heaven can gorge us with oui' own desires, lUakc the strongest of oui' wishes be out' i 3U ^' VOYAGE TO THE EAST INDIES. affliction, and punish us most severely with those very things wliich we think it would be our utmost happiness to be allowed in. Whether I had business or no business, away I went : it is no time now to enlarge upon the reason or absurdity of my own conduct but to come to the history, — I w'as embarked for the voyage, and the voyage I went. I sitall only add a word or two concerning my honest Popish clergyman ; for lot tlieir opinions of us, and all other heretics in general, as they call us, be as uncharitable as it iiiay, I verily believe this mati was very sincere, and wished the good of all men : yet I believe he was upon the reserve in many of his expressions, to prevent giving nie offence ; for I sceft'ce heard him once call on the Blessed Virgin, or mention St. Jago, or liis guardian angel, though so common with the rest of them ; however, I say, I had not the least doubt of his sincerity and pious intentions ; and I am firmly of opinion, if the rest of the Popish missionaries were like him, they would strive to visit even the poor Tartars and Laplanders, where they have nothing to give them, as well as covet to flock to India, Persia, China, &c., the most v.-ealthy of the heathen countries ; for if they expected to bring no gains to their church by it, it may well be admired hoAV they came to admit the Chinese Confucius into the calendar of the Christian saints. A ship being ready to sail fpr Lisbon, my ])ious prjest asked me leave to go thither ; being still, as he observed, bound never to finisli any voyage he began. How hap2)y it had been for me if I had gone with him ! But it was too late now : all things Heaven appoints for the best ; had J gone -vvitli him, I had uevei' had so many things to bo thankful ior, and the reader had never heard of the second part of the travels and adventures of Pvobiuson Crusoe; so I must here leave exclaiming at myself, and go on with my A oyage. From the Brgzils, we made directly over the Atlantic Sea to the Cape of Good Hope, and had a tolerably good voyage, our eoui'se generally siouth-east, now and then a storm, and some contrary winds : but my disasters at sea were at an end, — my future rubs and cross events were to befall me on shore, that it might appear the land was as well prepared to be our scourge as the sea. Our ship was on a trading voyage, and had a supercargo on board, who was to direct all her motions after she arrived at the Cape, only being limited to a certain number of days for stay, by charter-party, at the several ports she was to go to. Tins was none of my business, neither did I meddle with it ; my nephew, the captain, and the supercargo, adjusting all those things between theui as they thought fit. We stayed at the Cape no longer than was needful to take in fresh water, but made the best of our way for the coast of Coromandel. We were, indeed, informed that a French man-of-war, of fifty guns, and two large merchant ships, were gone for the Indies ; and as I knew we were at war with France, I had some apprehensions of them ; but they went their own way, and we heard no more of them. I shall not pester the reader with a tedious description of places, journals of our A oyages, variations of the compass, latitudes, trade-winds, &c. ; it is enough to name the ports and places which we touched at, and what occurred to us upon our passage from one to another. We touched first at the island of Madagascar, where, though the people are fierce and treacherous, and very well armed with lances ^p.d bows, whicli they use with inconceivable dexterity, yet we fared veiy well with them awhde ; they treated us very civilly ; and for some trifles which we gave them, such as knives, scissors, &c., they brought us eleven good fat bullocks, of a middling size, which we took in, partly for fresh provisions for our present spending, and the rest to salt for the .ship's use. AVe were obliged to stay here some time after wo had. furnished ourrelvcs with 31S ^^, ^- ' ^^- l.rovisions; ami I, uho wa.s lil^ayH^' ^' ■^■^- '"'/^*i^ too curious to look into ovcy nook of tho world whorov;^ I caJT^^T ...lancm, for they were all like to be murdered ; at the same time, X heard the fire of five muskets, which was the number of guns they had, and that three times over; for, it seems, the natives here were not .so easily friglitcncd with guns as the savages were in America, where I had to do with them. All this while I knew not wh*t was the matter, but rousing immediately from .sleep with the noise, I caused the boat to be thrust in, and resolved, with three fusees we had on board, to land and assist our men. We got t'.ic boat .soon to the shore, but our men were in too much haste ; for being come to the shore, they plunged into the Y'ater, toget to the boat with all theexpeditiou they could, being pursued by between three and four hundred men, Onr men were but nine in all, and only five of them had fusees with them ; the re^t had pistols and 6word.'<, indeed, but they were of small use to them. "We took up .seven of our men, and with dilViculty enough too, three of them being very ill wounded; and that which was still worse was, that while we stood in the b'vre as ' he durst with the ship, and then sent another boiit, wiili ton Ufttids in hor, to assist us; i li8 THE ISLAND OF MADAGASCAR. but -vve called to them not to come too near, telling tliem what condition we were in ; however, they stood in near to xis, and one of the men taking the end of a tow-line in his hand, and keeping one boat between him and the enemy, so that they could not perfectly see him, swam on board us, and made fast the line to the boat ; upon which we slipped out a little cable, and leaving our anchor behind, they towed us out of reach of the arrows ; we all the while lying close behind the barricado we had made. As soon as we were got from between the ship and the shore, that we could lay her side to the shore, she ran along just by them, and poured in a broadside among them, loaded with pieces of iron and lead, small bullets, and such stuff, besides the great sliot, which made a tei-rible havoc among them. "When we were got on board, and out of danger, we had time to examine into tlic occasion of this fray ; and, indeed, our supercargo, who had been often in those part,^, put me upon it ; for he said he was sure the inhabitants would not have touched us after wo, had made a truce, if we had not done something to provoke them to it. At length, it came out that an old woman, who had come to sell us some milk, had brought it within our poles, and a young woman with her, who also bi'ought some roots or herbs ; and while the old woman (whether she was mother to the young woman or no tliey could not tell) was selling us the milk, one of our men offered some rudeness to the wench that v\'as with her, at which the old woman made a great noise : however, the seaman would not quit his prize, but carried her out of the old woman's sight among the trees, it being almost dark j the old woman went away without her, and, as we may suppose, made an outcry among the people she came from ; who, upon notice, i-aised this great army upon us in three or four hours, and it was great odds but we had all been destroyed. One of our men was killed with a lance thrown at him just at the beginning of the attack, as he sallied out of the tent they had made ; the rest came off free, all but the fellow who was the occasion of all the mischief, who p>aid dear enough for his black mistress, for we could not hear what became of him for a great while. We lay u]>on the shore two days after, though the v/ind presented, and made signals for him, and made our boat sail up shore and down shore several leagues, but in vain ; so we were obliged to give him. over j and if he alone had suffered for it, the loss had been less. 1 could not satisfy myself, however, without venturing on shore once more, to try if I could learn anything of him or them ; it was the third night after the action that I had a great mind to leax-n, if I could by any means, what mischief we had done, and how the game stood on the Indians' side. I was careful to do it in the dark, lest we shotild be attacked again : but I ought, indeed, to have been sure that the men I went with had been under my command, before I engaged in a thing so hazardous and mischievous as I was brought into by it, without design. We took twenty as stout fellows with us as any in the ship, besides the supercargo and myself, and we landed two hours before midnight, at the same place where the Indians stood drawn up on the evening before. I landed here, because my design, as I have said, was chiefly to see if they had quitted the field, and if they had left any marks behind them of the mischief we had done them ; and I thought, if we could surprise one or two of them, perhaps we might get our man again by way of exchange. We landed without any noise, and divided our men into two bodies, whereof the boatswain commanded one, and I the other. We neither saw nor heard anybody stir v.'licn we landed ; and we marched tip, one body at a <" " : " ■ o:^er, to the 3^9 . _ _ .- ^ -^> ROBINSON CRL.SOl.. f place ; but at first could sec nothing, it heing very dark ; till by-and-by our boatswain, who letl the first jiarty, stumbled and fell over a dead body. This nmde them luilt awhile; for knowing by the cireuiustiinces that they were at the i)lace where the Imlians had stood, they waited for my coming up there. We' concluded to halt till the moon began to rise, which we knew would be in le.«.s than an hour, Avhen we could <':isily discern tlic havoc we had made among theni. We told thirty-two bodies upon « the ground, whereof two were not quite dead; some had an arm and .sonie a leg .shot / <.n", and one his head ; those that were wounded, Ave supposed, they liad carried away. It When we had made, as I thought, a full discovery of all Ave coidd come to the jfj knowledge of, I resolved on going on board ; but the boatswain and his party sent me Avord that they Avere resolved to make a visit to the Jndi:\n town, Avhere the.se dog.s, as they called them, dwelt, and asked me to go along Avith them ; and if they could find them, as they still fancied they .should, they did not doubt of getting a good booty ; and it might be they might find Tom Jefi'ry there ; that Avas the man's name Ave IKUI lost. Had they sent to ask my leave to go, 1 knew Avell enough what answer to have given them ; for I should have commanded them insUintly on board, knowing it was not a hazard fit for us to run, Avho had a shi]) and ship-loading in our charge, ami a voyage to make Avhich depended very much upon the lives of the men ; but as they sent mc word they Avere resolved to go, and only asked me and my com])any to go along Avith them, I positively refu.sed it, and rose up, for I Avas sitting on the ground, in order to go to the boat. One or two of the men began to importune mc to go ; and %\ hen I refused, began to grumble, and say they were not under my command, and they would go. " Come, Jack," says one of the men, " Avill you go Avith me? I'll go for one." Jack .said ho Avould,— and then another, — and, in a Avord, they all left mo l)ut one, Avhom I persuaded to stay, and a boy left in the boat. So the s\ipercargo anil I, Avith the third man, Avent back to the boat, Avhere Ave told them avo Avould stay for them, and take care to take in as many of them as should be left ; for I told them it Avas a mad thing they Avere going about, and supposed most of them Avould have the f.ite of Tom JeilVy. Tiiey told nu', like seamen, they would warrant it they would come oil" again, and they Avould take care, itc. ; .so away they Avent. I entreated them to consider the ship and the A'oynge, that their lives Avere not their own, and that they Avere entnisted with the voyage, in .'iome measure ; that if they miscarried, the ship might be lost for Avant of their help, and that they could not ansAver for it to God or man. Biit I might as well have talked to the mainma.st of the ship; they Avere mad upon their journey : only they gave me good Avord.s, and begged I Avould not be angry ; that they did not I .ubt Ijut they Avould be back again in about an hour at farthest ; for the Indian town, ■iiiy said, Avas not above half a mile off, though they foiuul it aboA-e two niiles before 1 y got to it. Well, they all went away, and though the attempt was despemte, and such as none but madmen Avould have gone about, yet, to give them their due, they Avent about it as Avarily as boldly ; they Avere gallantly armed, for they had every man a fusee or musket, a bayonet, and a jiistol ; some of them had broad cutlasses, some of tliem had hangei-s, and the boatswain and two more had poleaxes; besides all which, they had among them thirteen hand grenadocs ; bolder fellows, and better provided, never went about any wicked Avork in the Avorld. When they Avent out, their chief design was plunder, and they Avore in mighty 3:0 hopes of fiudmg qoU tUeio , Imt a ciicnmstance A^lucli u-m > ^^<^^ f tliem were aware of set them on fue with le^e^ge, and made dcMis of ^^^| AVheu they came to the few Indian houses which they thought had been the town, which was not above half a mile off, they were under a great dis- ai.pointment, for there were not above twelve or thirteen houses; and where the to^vn was, or how big, they knew not. They consulted, therefore, what ta do and were some time before they could resolve ; for if they fell upon these, ROBINSON CRUSUi:. '■gc-^^j.^-^ M 1 ^y must cut all their throats ; and it was ten to one but some of thera might escape, Ijting in the night, though the moon was up ; and if one escnjicd, he would i-un and i.iiac all the town, no they should have a whole army upon them : again, on the othep hand, if thoy went away and left those untouched, for the people were all aslce]!, they aid not tell which Avay to look for the town : however, the last was the best advice, ■ they resolved to leave them, and look for the town as well as they couhl. They went oil a little way, and found a cow tied to a tree; tliis, they presently concluded, would be a good guido to tlicm ; foi*, they said, the cow cei-tainly belonged to the town before them, or the town behind them, and if they imtied her, they should sec which way she went : if she went back, they had nothing to say to her ; but if she Avent forward, they would follow her : so they cut the cord, which was made of twisted flags, and the cow went on before them, directly to the town ; which, as they reported, consisted of above two lnmdred houses or huts, and in some of these they found several families living together. Hero they foiind all in silence, as profoundly secure as sleep could make thera : and, fii-st, they called another council, to consider what they had to do; and, in a word, they resolved to divide themselves into three bodies, and so set thi-cc houses on fire in three parts of the town ; and as the men came out, to seize them and bind them (if any resisted, they need not be asked what to do then), and so to search the rest of the houses for plunder. But they resolved to march silently first through the town, and sec v'hat dimensions it was of, and if they might venture upon it or no. They did so, and desperately resolved that they would venture upon them ; but while they were animating one another to the work, three of them, who were a littlo before the rest, called out aloud to them, and told them that they had found Tom JoOVy : thoy all ran up to the jjlace, where they had found the poor fellow hanging up naked by one arm, and his throat cut. There was an Indian house just by the tree, wl^Pfe they found sixteen or seventeen of the principal Indians, who had been concerned in the fray with us before, and two or three of them wounded with our .shot ; ano to no jmrposc ; for most of the houses were low, and thatched with flags and rushes, of which the country is full ; so they ]>rc.sently made some wildfire, as wo cull it, by wetting a littlo powder in the palm of their hands, and in a quarter of an hour they set tho town on firo in four or five places, and particularly that house where tho Indians were not gone to bed. As soon as the firo began to blaze, the poor frightened creatures began to rush out to save their lives, but met with their fiite in the attempt ; and c.«;pecially at tho door, where they drove them br.c'c, tho boatswain himself killing one or two with liis poluaxc. Tho house being large, and many in it, ho did not care to go in, but called for a hand grcnado, and throw it among them, which at fii*st frightened thera, but, when it bur.st, made sucli havoc among them that they cried out in n hideous manner. In .short, most of the Indians who wero in tho open part of the house were killed or hurt with the grcnado, except two or three more who pressed to the door, 3=2 ^/ .::^te ki^ BURNING THE NATIVES' HOUSES. g^ wliicli tlic Ijoatswain aiul two move kept, with their bayonets on the muzzles of their pieces, and dispatched all that came iii their way; but there Avag another apartment iu the lioiise, wliere the jjvince or king, or -whatever he was, and several others, -were ; and these ff^re kept iu till the house, which was by this time all iu a light flame, fell in upon them, and they were smothered together. All this while they fired not a giui, because they would not waken the jjeople faster than they could master them ; but the fire began to waken them fast enough, and our fellows were glad to keep a little together iu bodies ; for the fire grew so raging, all the houses being made of light combustible stuff, that they could hardly bear the street between them ; and their business was to follow the fire, for the surer execution. As fast as the fire either forced the people out of those houses which were burning, or frightened them out of othei's, our people were ready at their doors to knock them on the head, still calling and hallooing one to another to remember Tom Jeffry. While this was doing, I must confess I was very uneasy, and especially when I saw the flames of the town, which, it being night, seemed to be just by me. My nephew, the captain, who was roused by his men, seeing such a fire, was very uneasy, not knowing Avhat the matter was, or what danger I was in, especially hearing the guns too, for by this time they began to use their fire-arms ; a thousand thoughts oppressed his mind conceraiug me and the supercargo, what would become of us } and at last, though he could ill spare any more men, yet not knowing what exigence we might be iu, he takes another boat, and with thirteen men and himself comes ashore to me. He ^^'as surprised to see me and the supercargo in the boat with no more than two men ; and though he was glad that we v/ere well, yet he was i:a the same impatience with us to know what was doing ; for the noise continued, and the flame increased ; in short, it was next to an impossibility for any men in the woi-ld to restrain their curiosity to know what had happened, or their concern for the safety of the men : iu a word, the captain told me he would go and help his men, let v/hat Avould cqihe. I argued wath him, as I did before with the men, the safety of the Jip, the dangier of the voyage, the interest of the owners and merchants, «fec., and told him I and the two men would go, and only see if we could at a distance learn what w^as likely to be the event, and come back and tell him. It was in vain to talk to my nephew, as it was to talk to the rest before ; he would go, he said ; and he only wished he had left but ten men in the ship, for he could not think of having his men lo.st for want of help ; he liad rather lose the ship, the voyage, and his life, and all ; and away he v/ent. I Avas no more able to stay behind now than 1 was to per.suade tliem not to go ; so, iu .short, the captain ordered two men to row back the pinnace, and fetch twelve men more, leaving the long-boat at an anchor j and that, when they came back, six men should keep the two boats, and .six more come after us ; so that he left only sixteen men in the ship ; for the whole ship's company consisted of sixty-five men, whereof two were lost in the late quarrel which brought this mischief on. Being uov/ on the march, you may be sure we felt little of the ground we trod on ; and being guided by the fire, w^e kept no path, but went directly to the place of the flame. If the noise of the guns was surprising to us before, the cries of the poor Jjeople were itow quite of another nature, and filled us with horror. I must confess 1 was never at the .sacking a city, or at the taking a town by storm. 1 had heard of Oliver Cromwell taking Drogheda, in Ireland, and killing man, woman, and child; and I had read of Count Tilly sacking the city of Magdebourg, and l¥ i 47W1 r^c KOBIXSOX CRUSOE. ^l rutting the throats of twenty-two thousand, of all sexes; but I never had an idea of the thing itself before, nor is it possible to describe it, or the horror that wa<5 upon our minds at hearing it. However, we went on, and at length came to the IfAvn, though there was no entering the streets of it for the fire. The fii-st o^ect wo mot with was the ruins of a hut or house, or rather the ashes of it, for the house was ronsimicd ; and just before it, plainly now to be seen by the light of the fire, lay four Turn .ind three women killed, and, as we thought, one or two more lay in the heap among the fire ; in short, there wei-e such instances of rage, altogether barbarous, and of a fury something beyond what was human, that we thought it impossible our men could be guilty of it ; or, if they were the authoi-s of it, we thought they f>\ight to be every one of them jnit to the worst of deaths. But this was not all : we saw the fire increased forward, and the cry went on just as the fire went on ; so that we were in the utmost conAision. We advanced a little way farther, and behold, to our jistonishment, three naked women, and crying in a most dreadful manner, came flyinc; as if they had wings, and after them sixteen or seventeen men, natives, in tlio line terror and consternation, with three of our English butchers in the reai', who, wlien they could not overtake them, fired in among them, and one that was killeil by their .shot fell down in our sight. AVhen the rest saw \is, believing us to be their enemies, and that we would murder them as well as those that pursued them, they set u)) a most dreadfid shriek, especially the women ; and two ot them fell down, as if already dead, with the fright. My veiy ao\d shrunk within me, and my blood ran chill in my veins, when 1 saw ♦ his ; and T believe, had the three English .sailors that pur.sued them come on, I had made our men kill them all ; however, we took .some means to let the poor flying < rcatures know that we would not hurt them ; and immediately they came up to us, and kneeling down, with their hands lifted up, made piteous lamentation to us to save them, which we let them know we would ; whereupon they crc\)t together in a huddK- close behind us, as for protection. I left my nion drawn up together, and, charging them to hurt nobody, but, if possible, to get at some of our people, and see what devil it was j)osses.sed them, and what they intended to do, and to command them off: assnring them that if they stayed till daylight they would have a hundred thousand men about their ears : T s.iy I left them, and went among those flying people, taking only two of (»ur men with me; and there was, indeed, a piteous spectacle among them. Some of them had their feet terribly burned with trampling and running through the lire ; others their hands burned ; one of the women had fallen down in the fire, and wa.s very nuich burned before she could get out again ; and two or three of the men had cuts in their backs and thigh.s, from our men ]>ursuing ; and another was shot through the body, and died while I was there. I would fain have learned what the occasion of all this was; but I could not under- stand one word they .said ; though, by sign.s, I perceived some of them knew not what was the occasion themselves. I was .so terrified in my thoughts at this outi-ageous attempt, that I could not stay there, but went back to n)y own men, atul resolved to go into the middle of the town, through the fire, or whatever might he in the way, and put an end to it, cost what it wo\dd ; accordingly, as I came back to my men, I told them my resolution, and commanded them to follow me, when, at the very moment, came lour of our men, with tlie boatswain at their head, roving over heaps of bodies they li.i»l killed, nil covei-ed with blood and dust, as if they wanted more people to massacre, when our men hallooed to them as loud -is thev coild halloo ; and with much MASSACRE ON THE ISLAND. I ado one of tlicin made them hear, so that they know who wc were, and came nj) to ns. As soon as the boatswain saw ns, he set up a halloo like a shout of triumph, for having, as he thought, more help come ; and, without waiting to liear me, " Captain," says he, "noble captain! I am glad you are come; we have not half done yet. Villanous, hell-hound dogs ! I'll kill as many of them as poor Tom has hairs upon his head : we have sworn to spare none of them ; we'll root out the very nation of them from the earth." And thus he ran on, out of breath, too, with action, and would not give us leave to speak a word. At last, raising my voice, that I might silence him a little, " Barbarous dog ! " said I, "what are you doing 1 I won't have one creature touched more, upon pain of death : I charge you, upon your life, to stop your hands, and stand still here, or you arc a dead man this minute." "Why, sir," says he, "do you know what you do, or what they have done ? If you want a reason for what we have done, come hither." And with that he showed me the poor fellow hanging, with his throat cut. I confess I Avas urged then myself, and at another time would have been forward enough ; but I thought they had carried their rage too far, and remembered Jacob's words to his sons Simeon and Levi : " Cursed be their anger, for it was fierce ; and their wrath, for it was cruel." But I had now a new task upon my hands ; for when the men I carried with me saw the sight, as I had done, I had as m\ich to do to restrain them as I should have liad with the others; nay, my nephew himself fell iu Avith them, and told me, in their hearing, that he was only concerned for fear of the men being overpowered ; and as to the people, he thought not one of them ought to live ; for they had all glutted themselves Avith the murder of the poor man, and that they ought to be used like murderers. Upon these words, aAvay ran eight of my men, with the boatsAvain and his creAV, to complete their bloody Avork ; and I, seeing it quite out of my power to restrain them, came aAA'ay pensive and sad ; for I could not bear the sight, much less the horrible noise and cries of the poor wretches that fell into their hands. I got nobody to come back Avith me but the supercargo and two men, and with these Avalked back to the boat. It Avas a very great piece of folly in me, 1 confess, to Acnture back as it Avere alone ; for as it began now to be almost day, and the alarm had run over the country, there stood about forty men armed Avith lances and boAvs, at the little place Avhere the tAvelve or thirteen houses stood, mentioned before ; but by accident I missed the place, and came directly to the sea-side ; and by the time I got to the sea- side, it Avas broad day : immediately I took the pinnace and Avent on board, and sent her back to assist the men in what might happen. I observed, about the time that I came to the boat-side, that the fire Avas pretty Avell out, and the noise abated ; but in about half an hour after I got on board, I heard a volley of our men's fire-arms, and saw a great smoke : this, as I understood afterAvards, Avas our men falling upon the men Avho, as I said, stood at the fcAV houses on the Avay, of Avhoni they killed sixteen or seventeen, and set all the houses on fire, but did not meddle Avith the Avomen or children. By the time the men got to the shore again Avith the pinnace, our men began to appear; they came dropping in, not in tAvo bodies as they Avent, but straggling here and there in such a manner, that a small force of resolute men might have cut them all oft'. But the di-ead of them was upon the Avhole country ; and the men Avere surprised, and so frightened, that I believe a hundred of them Avould have fled at the sight of but 325 five of our men ; nor in all this teiriblo action was there a man that made any consider- able defence ; they were so surprised between the terror of the fire and tlic sudden attack of our men in the dark, that they knew not wliich way to turn themselves ; for if they l!ed one way, they were met by one party; if back again, by another : so that they were everywhere knocked down ; nor did any of our men receive the least hurt, except one that sprained his foot, and another that had one of his hands burned. I was very angry with my nephew, the captain, and indeed with all the men, in my mind, but with him in particular, as well for his acting so out of his duty as com- mander of the shiji, and having the charge of the voyage upon hiin, as in his prompting, rather than cooling, the rage of his blind men, in so bloody and cruel an cnterpi-ise. My nephew answered me very respectfully, but told mo that when ho saw the body of the poor seaman whom they had murdered in so cruel and barbarous a manner, he was not master of himself, neither could he govern his passion : he owned he should not have done so, .is he was commander of the ship ; but as he was a man, and nature moved him, he could not bear it. As for the rest of the men, they were not subject to me at all, and they knew it well enough ; so they took no notice of my dislike. The next day we set sail, so we never heai'd any more of it. Our men differed in the account of the number they had killed ; but according to the best of their accounts, put all together, they killed or destroyed about one hundred and fifty people — men, women, and children, and left not a house .standing in the town. As for the poor fellow Tom Jeffiy, aa he was quite dead (for his throat was so cut that his head was half oil), it would do him no service to bring him away ; so they only took him down from the tree where he wa.s hanging by one hand. However just our men thought this action, I wan against them in it, and I always after that time told them God woidd blast the voyage ; for I looked upon all the blood they shed that night to be murder in them. For though it is true that they had killed Tom Jeffry, yet JefTry was the aggressor, had broken the truce, and had violated a young woman of theirs, who came down to them innocently, and on the f^iith of the public cajjitulation. Tiio boatswain defended this quarrel when we were afterwards on board. He said it was true that wo .seemed to break the truce, but really had not; and that the war was l"'gun the night before by the natives themselves, who had shot at us and killed one of ■ ur men without any just provocation; .so that as we were in a capacity to fight ^'icm now, wo might also be in a capacity to do ourselves justice ujion them in an ■ Ktrxordinary manner; that though the poor man had taken a little liberty with the •ncli, he ought not to have been murdered, and that in .such a villanous manner; and 'i.it thoy did nothing but what was just, and what the laws of God allowed to be done • nundercrs. Oue would tliink this should have been «'nough to have warned us agains. going on • ore amongst heathens and barbarians ; but it is impossible to make mankind wise lit at th(!ir own expiMiso ; and their experience seems to be always of most use to them lien it is dearest bought. We were now bound to the Gulf of Persia, and from thence to the coast of Coro- mundel, only to touch at Sumt ; but the chief of the supercargo's design lay at the Bay of Bengal ; where, if he missed his busine-^s outward-bound, he was to go uj) to Ciiina, and return to the coast as he cjimo homo. The first disaster that befell us was in the Gulf of Persia, where five of our men, venturing on shore on the Arabian side of the gulf, were surrounded by the Arabians-, 326 ■^^^-^r,.?/^'' r^^r-^^^-jea^S*^^ A THREATENED MUTINY. u and either all killed or carried away into slavery ; the rest of the boat's crew were nr ! ;:blc to rescue them, and had but jnst time to get off their boat. i. I began to upbraid them with the just retribution of Heaven in this case ; but the boatswain very warmly told me, he thought I went forther in roy censures than I could show any warrant for in Sci'ipture ; and referred to Luke xiii. 4, Avhero our Saviour intimates that those men on whom the Tower of Siloam fell were not sinners above all the Galileans : but that which put me to silence in the case was, that not one of these five men who Avere now lost were of those who Avent on shore to the massacre of jSIadagascar — ?o I always called it, though our men could not bear to hear the word massacre with any patience. But my frequent preaching to them on this subject had worse consequences than I expected; and the boatswain, who had been the head of the attempt, came up boldly to me one time, and told me he found that I brought that affair con- tinually upon the stage; that I made unjust reflections upon it, and had used the men very ill on that account, and himself in particular ; that as I was but a passenger, and had no command in the ship, or concern in the voyage, they were not obliged to bear it ; that they did not know but I might have some ill design in my head, and perhaps to call them to an account for it when they came to England; and that, therefore, unless I Avould resolve to have done with it, and also not to concern mvself any farther with him, or any of his affairs, he would leave the ship ; for he did not think it safe to sail with me among them. I heard him patiently enough till he had done, and then told him that I confessed I had all along oi:)230sed the massacre of Madagascar, and that I had, on all occasions, spoken my mind freely about it, though not more upon him than any of the rest ; that as to having no command in the ship, that was true ; nor did I exercise any authority, only took the liberty of speaking my mind in things which publicly concerned us all ; and what concern I had in the voyage was none of his business ; that I was a considerable owner in the ship. In that clairn, I conceived I had a right to speak even farther than I had done, and would not be accountable to him or any one else, and began to be a little warm with him. He made but little reply to me at that time, and I thought the affair had been ovei'. We were at this time in the road at Bengal ; and being willing to see the place, I went on shore with the su})ercargo, in the ship's boat, to divert myself; and towards evening was preparing to go on board, when one of the men came to me, and told me he would not have me trouble myself to come down to the boat, for they had orders not to carry me on board any more. Any one may guess what a surprise I was in at so insolent a message ; and I asked the man, who bade him deliver that lu^ssage to me. He told me the coxswain. I said no more to the fellow, bi;t bade him let them know he had delivered his message, and that I had given him no answer to it. J immediately went and found out the supercargo, and told him the story, adding, ■what I presently foresaw, that there woul4 Ije a mr^tiny in the ship ; and entreated him to go immediately on board the ship in an Indian boat, and acquaint the captain of it. But I might have spared this intelligence, for before I had s^poken to him on shore, the matter was effected op. board. The boatswain, the gunner, the carpenter, and all the inferior officers, as soon as I was gone off in the boat, came up, and desired tp speak with the captain ; and therp the boatswain, making a long hai-angue, and repeating all he had said to me, told the captain jn a few words, that as I was now gone peaceably on shore, they wei'e loth to use any violence with me, which, if I had not & it till he bad spoken to me about show them the uureasonableness aud gone on .shore, they would otherwise have done, to oblige mo to have gone. They therefore thought fit to tell him, that as they shipped themselves to serve in the ship under his command, they wonld perform it well and faithfully ; but if I would not quit the ship, or the captain oblige me to quit it, they would all leave the ship, and sail no farther with him ; and at that Avord all, he turned his face towards the mainmast, Avhich was, it seems, the signal agreed on between them, at which, the seamen, being got together there, cried out, " One and cdl ! one and all ! " IMy nephew, the captain, was a man of spirit and of great presence of mind ; aud though ho Avas surprised, you may be sure, at the thing, yet he told them calmly that he Avould consider of the matter ; but that he could do nothing in it. He u.sed some arguments Avith them, to injustice of the thing ; but it Avas all in A'ain ; they SAvoie, and shook hands round before his face, that they Avould all go on shore, unless he Avould engage to them not to suffer me to come any more on board the ship. This Avas a hard article upon him, Avho kncAV his obligation to me, and did not know hoAv I might take it ; so he began to talk smartly to them ; told them that I Avas a A-ery considerable owner of the ship, and that, in justice, he could not put me out of my own house ; that this Avas next door to serving me as the famous pirate Kidd had done, Avho made a mutiny in the ship, set the captain on shore on an uninhabited island, and ran aAvay Avith the ship ; that let them go into Avdiat ship they Avould, if ever they came to England again, it Avould cost them very dear ; that the •ship was mine, and that he coidd not put me out of it ; and that he Avould rather lose the ship, and the A^oyage too, than disoblige me so much ; so they might do as they pleased. HoAvever, he Avould go on shore and talk Avith me, and invited the boatsAA^ain to go Avith him, and perhaps they might accommodate the matter Avith me. But they all rejected the proposal, and said they Avould have nothing to do Avith me any more ; and if I came on board, they would all go a.shore. " "Well," said the captain, " if you are all of this mind, let me go on shore and talk Avith him." So away he came to me Avith this account, a little after the message had been brouo-ht to me from the coxswain. t I Avas veiy glad to see my nephcAv, I must confess ; for I was not Avithout apprehensions that they Avould confine him by violence, set sail, and run away Avith the .shij) ; and then I had been stripped naked in a remote countxy, havino' nothing to help myself; in short, I had been in a Avorse ca.se than Avhen I Avas alone in the island. But they had not come to that length, it seems, to my satisfaction; aud Avhen my nephcAv told me Avhat they had said to him, aud how they had .SAvorn and shook hands, that they Avould, one and all, leave the ship, if I Avas suffered to come on board, I told him he should not be concerned at it at all, for I Avould stay on shore. I only desired he Avould take care and send me all my necessary things on shore, ami leave me a sufiicient ,si;m of money, and I Avould find my Avay to England as avcH as I could. This Avas a heavy piece of ncAvs to my nephew, but there Avas no Avay to help it but to comply ; so, in short, he went on board the ship again, and satisfied the men that his uncle had yielded to their importunity, and had sent for his goods from on board the ship ; so that the matter AA'as over in a few hours, the men returned to their duty, and I began to consider what course I should steer. I was noAv alone in the most remote part of the Avorld, as I think I may call it, for I Avas near three thousand leagues by sea farther off from England than I avm-, at my ^■^ r.ODIXSON CRUSOE. island; only, it U tnie, I might travel here by land over the Great Mogul's conntiy to V,"^ Surat, niiglit go from thence to Bassora hy sea, np the Gulf of Pci-sia, and take the way if l.y sea again to Italy, nnd 80 overland into France ; and this put together, wight at yiji least be a full diameter of the globe or more. ^J I had another way before me, which was to wait for some English ships, which were Vj comiiK' to Bengal from Achin, on the Iiiland of Sumatra, and get i)a.ssage on board them for Eu'dand. But as I came hither without any concern with the East India Company, so it would be dirticult to go from hence without their licence, unless with grout favour of the captains of the ships, or the company's Aictora ; and to both I was an litter stmnger. Here I had the mortification to see the ship set sail without me ; a treatment I think a man in my circumstances scarcely ever met with, oxcejjt from pirates r\uniiug away with a shij), and setting those that would not agree with their villany on shore. Indeed, this was next door to it both ways; however, my nephew left me two sei*A-ants, or rather, one companion and one servant ; the first was clerk to the pui-ser, whom he engaged to go with me, and the other was his own sen-ant. I took me also a good lodging in the house of an Englishwoman, where .several merchants lodged, .some French, two Italians, or rather Jews, and one Englishman. Here I was handsomely enough entertained ; and that I might not be said to run rashly upon anything, I stayed here above nine months, considering what course to tiike, and how to manage myself. I had .some English goods with me of value, and a considerable sum of money ; my nephew furnishing mo with a thousand pieces-of-eight, and a letter of credit for more, if I had occasion, that I might not be straitened, whatever might happen. I quickly disposed of my goods to advantage ; and, as I originally intended, I bought here some very good diamonds, which, of all other things, were the most proper {. of the worM very remote from our own country ; but it is in a coimtry where, by i; , M'ho understand trade and business, a great deal of jnoney is to bo got. If you will put one thousand pounds to my one thousand i)0und.s, we will hire a .ship here, the fii"st we can get to our minds ; you shall be captain, I'll be merchant, and we'll go a trading voyage to China ; for what should we stand still for ? The whole woild is in motion, rolling round and round; all the creatures of GoJ, heavenly bodies and earthly, are busy and diligent ; why should we be idle ? There are no drones in the world but men : why should we bo of that number ?" I liked this propo.sal ^ery Avell ; and the more so because it seemed to be expressed wilh so much goodwill, and in so friendly a manner. I will not say but that I might, by my loose, unhinged circumstances, bo the fitter to embrace a proposal for tiiido, or indeed, anything else; otherwise, trade was none of my element. However, I might perhaps say with some truth, that if trade was not my clement, rambling was; and no 3>o i A NEW VOYAGE. proposal for seeing any part of the world which I had never seen before could possibly come amiss to mo. It was, however, some time before we could get a ship to our minds, and when we had got a vessel, it was not easy to get English sailors ; that is to say, so many as were necessary to govern the voyage and manage the sailors which Ave should pick up there. After some time we got a mate, a boatswain, and a gunner, English ; a Dutch carpenter, and three foremast men. With these we found we could do well enougli, having Indian seamen, such as they were, to make up. There are so many travellers who have written a history of their voyages and travels this way, that it would be very little diversion to anybody to give a long account of the places we went to, and the people who inhabit there ; these things I leave to others, 'and refer the reader to those journals and travels of Englishmen, of whicli many I find are published, and more promised every day ; it is enough for me to tell you that we made this voyage to Achin, in the island of Sumatra, and from thence to Siam, where we exchanged some of our wares for opium and some arrack ; the first a commodity which bears a great price among the Chinese, and which, at that time, was much wanted there. In a word, we went up to Suskan, made a very great voyage, were eight months out, and returned to Bengal ; and I was very well satisfied with my adventure. I observe that our people in England often admire how officers, whicli the Company send into India, and the merchants which generally stay there, get such very great estates as they do, and sometimes come home worth sixty or seventy thousand pounds at a timej but it is no wonder, or at least we shall see so much farther into it, when wc consider the innumerable ports and places where they have a free commerce, that it will be none ; and much less it will be so when we consider that at those places and ports where the English ships come, there is such great and constant demands for the growth of all other countries, that there is a certain vent for the returns, as well as a market abroad for the goods carried out. In short, we made a very good voyage, and I got so much money by my first adventure, and such an insight into the method of getting more, that had I been twenty years younger, I should have been tempted to have stayed here, and sought no farther for making any fortune ; but what was all this to a man upwards of threescore, that was rich enough, and came abroad more in obedience to a restless desire of seeing the world than a covetous desire of gaining by it? And, indeed, I tliink it is with great justice I now call it restless desire, for it Avas so. When I was at home, I Avas restless to go abroad ; and when I was abroad, I Avas restless to be at home. I say, Avhat Avas this gain to me 1 I Avas rich enough already, nor had I any uneasy desires about getting more money ; and therefore the profit of the voyage to me Avas of no great force for the promj^ting me forAvard. to farther xmdertakings : hence, I thought that by thi^> voyage I had made no progress at all, because I was come back, as I might call it, to the place from Avhence I came, as to a home : whereas, my eye, like that Avhich Solomon si)eaks of, Avas never satisfied with seeing. I Avas come into a part of the Avorld Avhich I Avas never in before, and that part, in particular, Avhich I had heard much of, and wa. resolved to see as much of it as I could : and then I thought I might say I had seen all the Avorld that Avas Avorth seeing. But my felloAV-traA-eller and I had different notions : I do not name this to insist on my OA\ai, for I acknoAvledge his Avere the most just, and the more suited to the end of a merchant's life : Avho, Avhen he is abroad upon adventures, is Avise to stick to that, as the best thing for him, Avhich he is likely to get the most money by. My ncAV friend > /~ H ^"^^ ROBINSON CRUSOi;. I kci)t himself to the nature of the thing, and would have been content to have gone like a carricr'-s horse, always to the same inn, backward and fonvard, provided he could, as he called it, find his account in it. On the other hand, mine was the motion of a mad, i-.irabling boy, that never cares to see a thing twice over. But this was not all : I had a kind of impatience upon me to be nearer home, and yet the most unsettled resolution imaginable which way to go. In the interval of these con.sultations, my friend, who was always ui)on the search for business, proposed another voyage to me among the Spice Islands, and to bring home a loading of cloves from the Manillas, or thei-eabouts ; ]»lacos, indeed, where the Dutch trade, but islands belonging j)artly to the Spaniards ; though we went not so far, but to .some other, where tliey have not the whole power, as they have at Latavia, Ceylon, ossession. When we had done .so, we resolved to engage the men, if we could, to join with those wo had, for tlio ])ui-suing our business ; but, on a sudden, they having received not their wages, but their share of the money, as we afterwards learned, not one of them was to be found ; we inciuired much about them, and at length were told that they were all gone together by laiul to Agra, the great city of (he ISIogul's residence, and from thence to travel to Siirat^ and go by the .sea, to the (Julf of J\'r.«iiii. Nothing had so much troubled me a good while, as that I should miss the oppor- i iiity t>f going with them ; for .such a laml^le T thought, and in such company as would . th have guarded and diverted me, would have suited mightily with my great design ; 1 >oth seen the world, and gone homeward too : but I was much . 333 ./ l I sliould l.av,' b t>- ■•-,.rtn-*^?4P£t?v<*^V . ^J - ^■-^ ,.^±: ^-m-^^r-i '.r-,r4S^mS' 'h\ y-} 'i ^v, V y If ■^^ :tr-^ ^^T-RAIT pF l^etLci sltl-^flL(l I few (1 n s afttr, when I came to know what sort ot fello\\s the} a\cic, foi, lu shoit, theii' history was, that this man they c ilh d captain was the gunnn onh, not the commander; that they had been a ti uUng \0}age, in which they hid been attacked on shore by some of the IMalays, who had killed the captain and thi'ce of his men ; and that, after the captain Avas killed, these men, eleven in number, had resolved to run away with the ship, Avhich they did, and brought her to Bengal, leaving the mate and five men more on shore. Well, let them get the ship how they would, we came honestly by her, as we thought, though we did not, I confess, examine into things so exactly as we ought ;^ for we never inquired anything of the seamen, who would certainly have faltered in their account, contradicted one another, and perhaps contradicted themselves 33j .^' ^^S^S ROBINSON CRUSOE. :. f.omchow or otlicr wc slioiild have hail reason to have suspected them ; but tho n showed us a bill of sale for the ship, to one Emanuel Clostci-shoven, or some such na; for I suppose it ■was all a foi-gery, and called himself by that name, and we could i contradict him ; and withal, having no suspicion of the thing, we went through v. our bargain. ^Vo picked up .some more English .sailors here after this, and some Dutch ; and now i-jsolvcd on a second voyage to the .south-east for cloves, ttc. ; that is to s;iy, among the riiilippine and ^lolucca isles; and, in shoi-t, not to fill uj) this part of my story with trifles, when what is to come is so remaikable, I spent, from first to litst, six yeai-s in t'lis country, trailing from ])ort to port, backward and forward, and with very good succea*, and was now tlio last year with my new partner, going in the ship above nu-u- llonod, on a voyage to China, but designing first to go to Siam, to buy rice. In this voyage, Ijcing by contrary winds obliged to beat up and down a great while in the Straits of Malacca, and among the islands, v>-e were no sooner got clear of those difficult soa-s than we found our ship had .sprung a leak, and we were not able, by all our industry, to find out where it was. This forced us to make some jmrt ; and my jiartncr, who know the counti-y better than I did, directed the capUun to jiut into the liver of (Jambodia ; for I had made the English mate, one ^Fr. Thompson, captain, not being willing to take the charge of the .ship upon myself This river lies on the north ^idc of the great bay or gulf v,-hich goes up to Siam. While we were here, and going often on .shore for refreshment, there comes to me one day an Englishman, and he was, it .seems, a gunner's mate on board an English East India shi]), which i-ode in the .same river, at or near the city of Cambodia. "What brought him liither, we knew not ; but he comeb to me, and speaking English, "Sir," says he, "you are a .sti-anger to me, and I to you ; but I have something to tell you that very nearly concerns you.'' I looked steadfastly at him a good while, and thought at first I had known him ; but I did not. " If it very nearly concerns me," said I, " and not your.self, what moves you to tell it to me ? " "I am moved," says he, " by the imminent danger you are in, and, for aught I see, you have no knowledge of it." "I know no danger I am in," says I, "but that my ship is leaky, and I cannot find it out; but 1 intend to lay her aground to-morrow, to see if I can find it." '• iUit, sir," says lie, " leaky or not leaky, find it or not find it, 30U will bo wiser than to lay your .ship on shoi'o to-morrow, when you liear what I havo to siiy to you. Do you know, sir," said ho, ''the town of Cambodia lies about fiffeen le;igues uj* this river ; and there are two large English ships about five leagues on this side, and three Dutch ? " " Well," said I, " and what is that to me / " " Wliy, sn-, .said he, "is it fur a man tliat is upon such adventures as you are to come into a port, and not examine first what ships there are there, and whether he is able to deal with them ? 1 sui)pose you do not think you are a match for them ?" I wivs amused very much at his di.scourse, but not amazed at it, for I could not conceive what he meant; ant returning to Bengal, lor that wc were on the wrong side of tho Straits of IMalacca, and that if the alarm was given, wo should be sure to bo waylaid on every side, as well by the Dutcli at Batnvia as the English elsewhere : that if wo should bo taken as it were running nwav, wo should even condemn ourselves, and there would want no more c-vidcnce to 338 _,. ti>; ^te ^^=3' THE BAY OF TONOUIN. destroy ti.s. I also asked tlic English sailor's opinion, who said lie was of my mind, and that we should certainly be taken. This danger a little startled my partner, and all the ship's company, and wc immediately resolved to go aWay to the coast of Tonquin, and so on to the coast of China ; and, pursuing the first design as to trade, find some way or other to dispose of the ship, and come back in some of the vessels of the country, such as we could get. This was approved of as the best method for our security ; and accordingly we steered away N.N.E., keeping above fifty leagues oflp from the usual course to the eastward. This, however, put us to some inconvenience ; for, first, the winds, when we came that distance from the shore, seemed to be more steadily against us, blowing almost trade, as we call it, from the E. and E.N.E., so that we were a long while npon our voyage, and we were but ill provided with victuals for so long a run ; and, what was still worse, there was some danger that those English and Dutch ships, whose boats pursued us, whereof some were bound that way, might have got in before us, and if not, some other ship bound to China might have information of us from them, and pursue us with the same vigour. I must confess I was now very uneasy, and thought myself, including the late escape from the long-boats, to have been in the most dangerous condition that ever I was in through all my past life ; for whatever ill circumstances I had been in, I was never pursued for a thief before ; nor had I ever done anything that merited the name of dishonest or fraudulent, much less thievish ; I had chiefly been my own enemy, or, as I may rightly say, I had been nobody's enemy but my own ; but now I was embarrassed lu the worst condition imaginable ; for though I was perfectly innocent, I was in no condition to make that innocence appear; and if I had been taken, it had been under a supposed guilt of the worst kind — at least, a crime esteemed so among the people I had to do with. This made me very anxious to make an escape, though which way to do it I knew not, or what port or place we should go to. My partner seeing me thus dejected, though he was the most concerned at first, began to encourage me, and describing to me the several ports of that coast, told me he would put in on the coast of Cochin China, or the Bay of Tonquin, intending after- wards to go to Macao, a town once in possession of the Portuguese, and where still a great many European families resided, and particularly the missionary priests usually went thither in order to their going forward to China. Hither, then, we resolved to go; and accordingly, though after a tedious and irregular course, and very much straitened for provisions, we came within sight oi the coast xevy early in the morning ; and upon reflection on the past circumstances vre were in, and the danger if we had not escaped, we resolved to put into a small river, which, however, had depth enough of water for us, and to see if we could, either over- land or by the ship's pinnace, come to know what ships were in any port thereabouts. This happy step was, indeed, our deliverance ; for though we did not immediately see any European ships in the Bay of Tonquin, yet the next morning there came into the bay two Dutch ships ; and a third, without any colour spread out, but which we believed to be a Dutchman, passed by at about two leagues' distance, steering for the coa-st of China, and in the afternoon went by two English ships steering the same course ; and thus we thought we saw ourselves beset with en emies both one way and the other. Tlie \Aaco wc were in was wild and barbarous — the people thieves, even by occupation or profession ; and though, it is true, we had not muich to seek of them, and, except getting a few provisions, cared not how little we had to do with them, yet ifc wa with much difliculty that we kept ourselves from being insulted 1)} , -^ -^ 3.39 ■ral ways. ^T^-m We -were in a small river of this country, within a few leagues of its utmost limits iK.rthwnnl ; and by our boat wo coasted north-east, to the point of land which opens the great Bay of Tonquin ; and it was in this beating up along the shore that we .liscovcrod we were surroundcil with enemies. The jieople we were among were the i.u.st barbarous of all the inhabitants of the coast, having no correspondence with any •her nation, and dealing only in fish and oil, and such gross commodities ; and it may o particularly seen that they are the most barbarous of any of the inhabitants. Among other customs, they have this one— that if any vessel has the misfortune to be ship- wrecked upon their coast, they presently make the men all prisoners or slaves; and it was not I'.ng before wo found a piece of their kindness this way, on the occasion following. 1 have observed above, that our .ship spnmg a leak at se.a, and that we could not find it out; and it happened that, as I have .said, it was stop]ied unexpectedly, in the happy minute of our being to be seized by the Dutch and English ships near the Bay of .Siam ; yet, as we did not find the ship so perfectly tight and sound as we desired, we ^ resolved while wo were at this place to lay her on .shore, and take out what heavy things wc had on board, and clean her bottom, if possible, to find out where the leaks were. Accordingly, liaving lightened the ship, and brought all our guns and other movables to one side, we tried to bring her down, that we might come at her bottom ; but, on second thoughts, we did not care to lay her on dry ground, neither could wc find out a proper place for it. The inhabitants, who had never been acquainted with such a sight, came wondering down the shore to look at us; and seeing the .ship lie down on one side in such a niaiin< r, and heeling in towards the shore, and not seeing our men, who were at work on hor bottom with stages, and with their boats on the off-side, they presently concluded that the .ship was cast away, and lay fast on the ground. On this supposition, they all came about us ui two or three hours' time, with ten or twelve large boats, having some of them eight, .some ten men in a boat, intending, no doubt, to have come on board and plundcrivl the ship, and if they foutul us there, to have cairied \13 away for slaves to their king, or whatever they call him, for we knew nothing of their govcmoi'. "When they came up to the ship, and began to row ro\uid her, they discovered us all hard at work on the outside of the ship's bottom and .side, washing, and graving, and stopping, as every seafaring man knows how. They stood for a while g:xzing at us, and we, who were a little .suiin-iscd, could not imagine what their design was ; but being willing to bo sure, we took this opportunity to get some of us into the .ship, and others to hand down arms and ammunition to those that were at work, to defend themselves with, if there should bo occasion ; and it wius no more than need — for in less than a quarter of an hour's consultation, they agreed, it seems, that the shij) was really a wreck, and that we were all at work endeavouring to save her, or to save our lives by the help of our boats ; and when we handed our arms into the boat, they concluded, l»y that motion, that we were endeavouring to .save some of our goods: upon thi.**, they took it for granted we all belonged to them, and awuy they came directly upon our mtMi, as if it had been in a line of battle. Our men, seeing so many of them, began to be frightened, for we lay but in an ill l)03ture to fight, and cried out to us to know what they should do. 1 immediately called to the men that worked upon the stages, to .slip them down, and get up the side into the ship, and bade those in the boat to row round and como on boiu-d ; ami the few who were on board worked with all the strength and hands we had to bring the .ship to rights ; but, however, neither the men upon the stages nor those in the boats couhl do as l\ -■-■•■ L ^ were ordered before the Cochin Chinese were upon them ; and two ot their m: died h. his tads ; .nd, in the .neantime, a Dutchman who stood -xt took «l h musket, and with the butt-end of it so laid about him, that he knocked down Eve tlX who attempted to entev the boat. But this was doing httle — ;— 341 1 Pi -^^ ROBINSOX CRUSOE. rliicli clcscrvccl oitr laughter, gave oui" raon a conipli. the following accident, rictory.^ Our carpenter being prepared to grave the outside of the ship, as well as to pay tl Beams where he had caulked her to stop the leaks, had got two kettles just let dov. : into the boat, one filled with boiling })itch, and the other with resin, tallow, and oil, a- such stuff as the shipwrights use for that work; and the man that attended ti carpenter had a great iron ladle in his hand, with which he supplied the men that wci at work with the hot stuff. Two of the enemy's men entered the boat just where thU fellow stood, being in the fore-sheets; he immediately .saluted them with a ladle-full of the stuff, boiling hot, which so burned and scalded them, being half-naked, that thoy roared out like bulls, and, enraged with the fire, leaped both into the sea. Tlie carpenter .saw it, and cried out, "Well done, V^ack ! give them some more of it : " and stepping forward himself, takes one of the mops, and dipping it in the pitch-pot, he and his man threw it among them so i)lcntifu]ly that, in .short, of all the men in the throe boats, there was not one that escaped being scalded and burned with it, in a most fiightful, pitiful manner, and made .such a howling and ciying that I never heard a worse noise : for it is worth observing that, though pain nntur.ally makes all people cry out, yet eveiy nation has a particular way of exclamation, and make a noise as different one from another as their speech. I cannot give the noise these creatures made a better name than howling, nor a name more proper to the tone of it ; for I never heard .anything more like the noise of tlic wolves which, ag 1 have said, I heard howl in the forest on the frontiers of Langitedoc. I was never better i)leased with a victory in my life; not only as it was a perfect surprise to me, and that our danger was itriiriinent before, but .a.s we got this victory without any bloodshed, except of that man the fellow killed with his naked hands, and which I was very much concerned at ; for I was f=nck of killing such poor .savage wretches, even thougli it was in ray own defence, knowing they came on ei'rands wliicli tliey thought just, and knew no better ; and that though it may be a just thing, because nece.ss.ary (for there is no nccess.ary wickedness in nature), yet I thought it was ft sad life, when we must bo always obliged to be killing our fellow-creatures to preserve onr- .selves ; .and, indeed, I tliink so still ; and I would even now'suffer a great deal, rather than I would take away the life even of the worst person injuring me ; and I believe nil considering people, wJio know the value of life, would bo of my opinion, if they entered seriously into the consideration of it. But to return to my story : — All the while this was doing, my partner and I, who managed the rest of the men on board, had with groat ilexterity brought the ship almost to rights, and having got the guns into their jjlacos again, the gunner called to me ip bid our boat get out of the way, for he would let fly among them. I called back again to him, and bid him not ofler to fire, for the carpenter would da the work without him; but bid him heat another pitch-kettle, which our cook, who was on bo!\rd, took care of. Tito enemy was .so tei-rified with what they had met with in their first attack, tha they would not come on again ; and some of them who were firthest off, .seeing the .shi .swim, as it were, upright, began, as wo suppose, to see their mistake, and gave over I': cntorpri.se, finding it was not a.s they expected. Thus we got clear of this merry fight : ami having got .some rice, and .some roots and bread, with about yixteen hogs, on boavl. two days before, we resolved to stay here no longer, but go forward, whatever came < it ; f(ir we made no doubt but wo .shoidd be .surrounded tho next day with rogu. enough, iicrhaps more than our pitch-kcttlc would dispose of for us. Wc tlioivfoi,' • 343 AN OLD PORTUGUESE PILOT. :ill our things on bq^r^l the same eveuiug, and the next morning were ready to sail : in Ihc meantime, lying at anchor at some distance from the shore, we were not so much concerned, boiug now in a fighting posture, as well as in a sailing iDosture, if any enemy had presented. The next day, having finished our work within board, and finding our ship was perfectly healed of all her leaks, we set sail. Wo would have gone into the Bay of Tonqiiin, for we wanted to inform ourselves of what was to be known concerning' the Dutch ships that had been there ; but we durst not stand in there, because we had seen several shi])s go in, as we supposed, but a little before; so wo kept on N.E., towards the island of Formosa, as much afraid of being seen by a Dutch or Eno^Ii.'sh merchant ship, as a Dutch or English merchant ship in the Mediterranean is of an Algerine man-of-war. Y/hen we were thus got to sea, we kept on N.E,, as if we would go to the Manillas or the Philippine Islands ; and this we did that we might not fall into the way of any of the European ships ; and then we steered north, till we came to the latitude of 22 degrees 20 minutes, by which means we made the island of Formosa directly, v/here we came to an anchor, in order to get water and fresh provisions, which the people there, who are very courteous and civil in their manners, supplied us with v/illingly, and dealt ve^y fairly and punctually with us in all their agreements and bargains ; v,'hich is what Ave did not find among other people, and may be mving to the remains of Christianity which was once planted here by a Dutch missionary of Protestants, and is a testimony of what I have often pbserved, viz., that the Christian religion always civilises the people and reforms their manners, where it is received, whether it works saving eSects upon them or no. From thence we sailed still north, keeping the coast of China at an equal dis- tance, till we knew we were beyond all the ports of China where our Eui'opean ships usually come j being resolved, if possible, not to fall into any of their hands, especially in this country ; where, as our circumstances were, we could not fail of being entirely ruined. Being now couie to the latitude of 30 degrees, we resolved to put into the first trading po).'t we should come at ; and standing in for the shore, a boat came off two leagues to lis with an old Portuguese pilot on board, who, knowing \is to be a European ship, came to offer his service, which, indeed, we were glad of, and took him on board j upon which, v/ithout asking us whither we would go, he dismissed tlie boat he came in, and sent it back. I thought it was now so much in our choice to make the old man carry us whither vre v/ould, that I began to talk to him about carrying us to the Gulf of Nanquin, which is the most northern part of the coast of Gfcina, The old man said he knew the Gulf of Nanquin very well ; but smiling, asked us what we would do there. I told him we Avould sell our cai'go and piu-chase China wares, calicoes, raw silks, tea, wrought silks, itc. j and so would return by the same course we came. He told us our best port vv^ould have been to put in at IMacao, where we could not have failed of a market for our opium to our satisfaction, and might for our money have purchased all sorts of China goods as cheap as we could at ISTanquin. Not beii^g able to put the old man out of his talk, of which he was very opinionated or conceited, I told him we were gentlemen as well as merchants, and that we had a mind to go and see the great city of Pekin, and the famous court of the monarch of China. " Why, then," says the old man, " you should go to Ningpo, where, by the river which runs into the sea there, you may go up within fi.ve leagi-r'-' r,f ■'i '- eanal. "^^^ This canal is a navigable stream, which goes through the heart of that vast empire of China, crosses all the rivers, passes some considerable hills by the help of sluices and gates, and goes up to the city of Pekin, being in length near two hundred and seventy leagues.'' "Well," said I, "Seignior Portuguese, but that is not our business now; the groat (|uestion is, if you can carry us up to the city of Nanquin, from whence we can travel to Pekin afterwards 1" He said he could do so very well, and tluit there was a great ])utch ship gone up that way just before. This gave me a litth; shock, for a Dutch ship was now our terror, and we had much rather have met the devil, at least if he had not come in too frightful a figure ; and we depended upon it that a Dutch ship would 1)0 our destruction, for we were in no condition to fight them ; all the ships they trade with into those })arts being of great burden, and of much greater force than we were. The old man found me a little confused, and under some C(jncern when he named a Dutch ship, and said to me, "Sir, you need be imder no apprehensions of the Dutch ; J sui)pose they are not now at war with your nation 1 " " No," said I, " that's true ; but I know not what liberties men may take when they are out of the reach of the laws of their own country." " Why," says he, " you are no pirates ; what need you fear 1 They will not meddle with peaceable merchants, sure." If I had any blood in my body that did not fly up into my face at that word, it was hindered by some stop in the vessels appointed by natux'e to circulate it, for it put me into the greatest disorder and confusion imaginable ; nor was it possible for me to conceal it so, but the old man easily perceived it. » " Sir," says he, " I find you are in some disorder in your thoughts at my talk ; pray be pleased to go which way you think fit, and depend u])on it, I'll do you all the service 1 can." "Why," seignior," said I, "it is true I am a litle unsettled in my resolution, at this time, whither to go in particular ; and I am something more so for what jou said about pirates. I hope there are no pirates in these seas. We are but in an ill condition to meet with them, for you see we have but a small force, and are but xevy ifll^\ weakly manned." " Oh, sir," says he, "don't be concerned ; I do not know that there have been any pirates in these seas these fifteen years, except one, which was seen, as I hear, in the Bay of Siam, about a month since ; but you may be assured she is gone to the southward ; nor was she a ship of any great force, or fit for the work. She was not built for a privateer, but was run away with by a reprobate crew that was on board, after the captain and some of his men had been murdered by the Malayans, at or near the island of Sumatra." " What ! " said I, seeming to know nothing of the matter, " did they murder the captain ? " " No," said he, " I don't understand they murdered him ; but, as they afterwards ran away with the ship, it is generally believed that they betrayed him into the hands of the Malayans, who ditl murder him, and perhaps they i)rocured them to do it." " Why, then," said I, " they deserve death as much as if they had done it themselves." "Nay," says the old man, "they do deserve it ; and they will certainly have it, if they light upon any English or Dutcli ship; for they have all agreed together, that if they meet that rogue, they'll give him no quarter." " But," said I to him, "you say the pirate is gone out of these seas; how can they meet with him, then 1 " "Why, that's true," says he, "they do say so ; but he was, as I tell you, in the Bay of Siam, in the river Cambodia, and was discovered there by some Dutchmen who belonged to the ship, and who were left on shore when they i-an away with her ; and '] jjll some English and Dutch traders being in the river, they were within a little of taking 7/ liim ; nay," said he, " if the foremost boats had been well .seconded by the rest, they had -^^1 certainly tiken him ; but he, finding only two boats within reach of him, tacked about, ROBINSON CRUSOE. and firtd at those Ufo, nncl disabled them before the othci-s came up, and then standing oil to sen, the others vcro not able to follow, and so he got away ; but they have all fo exact a' description of the ship, that they will be sure to know her ; and wherever they find her, they liave vowed to give no quarter cither to the cai)tain or seamen, but to hang them' all up at the yard-arm." " What ! " said I, " will they execute them, right or wrong ? hang them fii-st, and judge them afterwards 1 " " Oh, sir," says the old pilot, " there is no need to make a formal business of it with such rogues as those ; let them tic them back to back, and set them a diving— 'tis no more than they riglitly deserve." I knew I hatl my old man fast on board, and that he could do no harm, so that I turned short upon him. '-"SVcU, now, seignior," said I, "this is the very reason why I would have you cany us up to Nanquin, and not put back to Macao, or to any other l^art of the country where the English or Dutch ships come ; for be it known to you, seignior, those captains of the English and Dutch ships are a parcel of rash, proud, in-solent fellows, that n either know what belongs to justice, nor how to behave them- selves as the laws of God and nature direct ; but being proud of their oflBces, and not \UKlerstanding their power, they would act the murderers to punish robbere; would take upon them to insult men falsely accused, and determine them guilty without due inquiry ; and perhaps I may live to bring some of them to account for it, when they may be taught how justice is to be executed, and that no man ought to be treated as a criminal till some evidence may bo had of the crime, and that he is the man." With this I told bin* that this v,-as the very ship they attacked, and gave him a full account of the skirmish we had with their boats, and how foolishly and cowardly they bchavetl. I told him all the story of our buying the ship, and how the Dutchmen served us.' ' I told him the nasons I had to believe the story of killing the master by the ]Malayans was true as also tho running away with tlic sliip ; but it Avas all a fiction of their own to suggest that tho men had turned pirates, and they ought to ha\-e been sure it was so before they ventured to attack us by surprise, and oblige us to resist them; adding that they would have the blood of those men whom wc killed there in just defence to answer for. Tho old man was amazed at this relation, and told us we were very much in the ri'dit to go away to the north ; and that, if he might advise us, it should be to sell the ship in China, which we might veiy well do, and buy or build another in the country. " And," said he, " though you will not get so good a ship, yet you may get one able enough to cany you and all your goods back again to Bengal, or anywhere else." I told him I would take his advice when I came to any port where I could find a ship for my turn, or get any customer to buy this^ lie replied I should meet with customci-s enough for the ship at Nanquin, and that a Chinese junk would sen'C me very well to go back again ; and that ho would procure me people both to buy one and sell the other. "Well, but, seignior," .said I, ."as you say they know tho ship so well, I may, perhaps, if I follow your measures, be instrumental to bring some honest, innocent nun into a terrible broil, and pcihaps to be murdered in cold blood ; for wherever they iiud the ship they will prove tho guilt upon tho men, by proving this was the shij) ; and o iinioccnt men may probably bo overpowered and murdered." "Why," says the old niiui, " I'll find out a way to prevent that also ; for as I know all those commandei-s >nu speak of very well, and shall see them all as they pass by, I will bo sure to set I horn to rights in tho thing, and let them know that they had been so much in the wrong ; that though the people who were on board at first might run away with the hip, yet it was not true that they had turned pirates; and that, in i«irticidar, these v6 4 'III: were not tUc men that first went off with the ship, but innocently bought her for their trade ; and I am persuaded tlie.y will so fiir believe me as at least to act more cautiously for the time to come." While these things were passing between us, by way of discourse, we went forward directly for Nanquin, and in about thirteen days' sail came to an anchor at the south- west point of the great Gulf of ISTanqTiin ; where, by the Avay, I came by accident to understand that two Dutch ships were gone the length before me, and that I should certainly fall into their hands. I consulted my partner again in this exigency, and he was as much at a loss as I was, and would very gladly have been safe on shore almost anywhere; however, I was not in such perplexity neither, but I asked tlie old pilot if there was no creek or harbour which I might put into and pursue my business with the Chinese privately, and be in no danger of the enemy. He told me if I would sail to the southward about forty-two leagues, there was a little port called Quincliang, where the Cithers of the mission usually landed from Macao, on their progress to teach the Chiistian religion to the Chinese, and where no European ships ever put in ; and if I thouglit to put in there, I might consider what farther course to take when I was on shore. He confessed, he said, it was not a place for merchants, except that at some certain times they had a kind of a fair there, when the merchants from Japan came over thither to buy Chinese merchandises. We all agreed to go back to this place ; the name of the port, as he called it, I may perhaps spell -sn'ong, for I do not particularly remember it, having lost this, together with the names of many other places set down in a little pocket-book, which was spoiled by the water by an accident, which I shall relate in its order ; but this I remember, that the Chinese or Japanese merchants we corresponded with called it by a different name from that which our Portuguese pilot gave it, and pronounced it as above, Quinchang. As we were unanimous in our resolution to go to this place, we weighed the next day, having only gone twice on shore whei'e we were, to get fresh water ; on both vv'hieh occasions the people of the country were very civil to us, and brought abundance of things to sell to us ; I mea-n of provisions, plants, roots, tea, rice, and some fowls ; but nothing without money. We did not come to the other port (the wind being contrary) for five days ; but it v,-as very much to our satisfaction ; and I was joyful, and I may say thankful, when set my foot on shore, resolving, and my partner too, that if it was possible to dispose ourselves and effects any other way, though not every way to our satisfaction, we wouh never set one foot on board that unhappy vessel inore ; and indeed, I must acknowledge that of all the circumstances of life that ever I had any experience of, nothing make mankind so completely miserable as that of being in constant fear. Well does th Scripture say, " The fear of man briugeth a snare : " it is a life of death, and the miu is so entii-ely oppressed by it, that it is capable of no relief, and all the vigour of Natur wluch usually supports men under other afflictions, and is present with them in th greatest exigencies, fails them here. Nor did it Ml of its usual operations upon the fancy, by Iieightening every danger representing the English and Dutch captains to be men incapable of hearing reason, c of distinguisliing between honest men and rogues ; or between a story calculated for on own turn, made out of nothing, on purpose to deceive, and a true genuine account ( our whole voyage, progress, and design ; for we might many ways have convinced j-eaeonable creature that we were not pirates ; the goods we had on board, the cour we steered, our frankly showing ourselves, and entering into such and such ports ; ai of iny IF-AKFUL APPREHENSIONS dm even our very manner, tlio force we liad, the number of men, the few arms, the littUj ammunition, short provisions ; all these would have served to convince any men that we were no pirates. The opium and other goods we had on board would make it api)ear the ship had been at Bengal. The Dutchmen, who, it was said, had the names of all the men that were in the ship, might easily see that we were a mixture of English, Portuguese, and Indians, and but two Dutchmen on board. These, and many other jiiirticular circumstances, might have made it evident to the understanding of any cximmander, whose hands we might fall into, that we were no pirates. But fear, that blind, useless jjassion, worked another way, and threw us into the vapours ; it b(-- wildered our understandings, and set the imagination at work to form a tlimisiii'l terrible things that perhaps might never hai)pen. We first supposed, as indeed e\ i^i y- body had related to us, that the seamen on board the English and Dutch ships, but especially the Dutch, were so enraged at the name of a pirate, and especially at o-.ir beating off their boats and escaping, that they would not give themselves leave t.) inquire whether we were pirates or no, but would execute us off hand, without givin;.;- us any room for a defence. We reflected that there really was so much apparent evidence before them, that they would scarce inquire after any moi-e ; as, first, that the ship was certainly the same, and that some of the seamen among them knew her, and had been on board her ; and, secondly, that when we had intelligence at the river of Cambodia that they werc coming down to examine us, we fought their boats and fled ; so that we made no doubt but they were as fully satisfied of our being pirates as wc were satisfied of the conti-ary ; and, as I often said, I know not but I should have been apt to have taken those circumstances for evidence, if the tables were turned, and my case was theirs ; and have made no scruple of cutting all the crew to pieces, without believing, or perhaps considering, what they might have to offer in their defence. But let that be how it will, these were our apprehensions ; and both my partner and I scarce slept a night without dreaming of halters and yard-arms, that is to say, gibbets ; of fighting, and being taken ; of killing, and being killed ; and one night I was in such a fury in my dream, fiuicying the Dutchmen had boarded us, and I was knocking one of their seamen down, that I struck my double fist against the side of the cabin I lay in with such a force as wounded my hand grievously, broke my knuckles, and cut and bruised the flesh, so that it awaked me out of my sleep. Another apprehension I had was, the cruel usage we might meet with from them if we fell into their hands ; then the story of Amboyna came into my head, and how the Dutch might perhaps torture us, as they did our countrymen there, and make some of our men, by extremity of torture, confess those crimes they never were guilty of, or own themselves and all of us to be pirates, and so they would put us to death with a formal appearance of justice; and that they might be tempted to do this for the gain of. our ship and cargo, which was worth four or five thousand pounds altogether. These things tormented me, and my partner too, jiight and day ; nor did we consider that the captains of ships had no authority to act thus ; and if we had surrendered l)risoners to them, they could not answer the destroying us, or tortimng us, but would be accountable for it when they came to their country ; this, I say, gave me no satis- faction ; for if they were to act thus with lis, what advantage would it be to us that they .should be called to an account for it ? or if we were first to be murdered, what satis- faction would it be to us to have them punished when they came home ? I cannot refrain taking notice here what reflections I now had upon the vast variety of my particular circumstances ; how hard I thought it Avas that I, who had spent forty .\^ 349 ^^l U IJIXSON CRUSOE. ^ years in a life of continual cliQiciiltics, and was at last come, as it were, to the port oi- h;ivcn -Nvliich all men drive at, viz., to have rest and plenty, should be a volunteer in new KOiTows by my own unhappy choice ; and that I, who had escaped so many dangers in my youth, shouhl now come to be hanged in my old age, and in so remote a place, for a crime which I was not in the least inclined to, much less guilty of After these thoughts, something of religion would come in ; and I v/ould be con- sidering that this seemed to mc to be a disposition of immediate Pi*o\'idencc, and I ought to look iipon it and submit to it as such ; that although I was innocent as to men, I was far from being innocent as to my Maker ; and I ought to look in and examine what other crimes in my life were most obvious to mc, and for which Pro- vidence might justly inflict this punishment as a I'ctribntion ; and that I ought to submit to this just as I would to a shipwreck, if it had pleased God to have brought such a disaster Ui)on mc. In its turn, natural courage would sometimes take its place, and then I would bo talking myself up to vigorous resolutions; that I would not be taken to be barbarously iiscd by a jiarcel of merciless wretches in cold blood ; that it wci'e much better to have fallen into the hands of the savages, though I was sure they would feast upon me when thoy had taken me, than those who would perhaps glut their rage upon mc by inhuman tortures and barbarities ; that in the case of the savages, I always resolved to die fighting to the last gasp, and why should I not do so now, seeing it was much more dreadful, to me at least, to think of falling into these men's hands, than ever it was to think of being eaten by men ? for the savages, give them their due, would not eat a man till he was killed and dead, but these men had many arts beyond the cruelty of death. Whenever these thoughts jjrevailed, I was sure to put myself into a kind of fever with the agitation of a supposed fight ; my blood woiUd boil, and my eyes sparkli^, as if I was engaged, and I always resolved to take no rpiarter at their hands ; but even, nt last, if I could resist no longer, I would blow up the ship and all that was in her, and leave them but little booty to boast of. The greater weight the anxieties and poridcxitics of these things %vcre to our thoughts while we were at sea, the greater was our satisfaction when we saw ourselves on shore ; and my partner told me he dreamed that he had a very heavy load upon his back, which he was to carry up a hill, and found that he was not able to stand longer under it ; but that the Portuguese pilot can\c and took it off his back, and the hill dis^ippearcd, the ground before him appearing all smooth and plain : and truly it was so ; they were all like men who had a load taken off their backs. For my part, I had a weight taken off my heart that it was not able any longer to bear ; and as I said above, we resolved to go no more to sea in that ship. Wlien wc came on shore, the old pilot, who was now otir friend, got us a lodging and a warehouse for our goods, which, by the way, wj\3 much the .same j it was a littlo house, or hut, with a larger house ailjoining to it, all built with canes, and palisadocd round witli large canes, to keep out pilfering thieves, of which, it seems, there were not a few in that country : however, the magistrates allowed us a littlo guard, and we had a soldier with a Icind of halberd, or half-piko, who stood sentinel at our door ; to whom wc allowed a pint of rice, and a little jiieco of money, about the ^•alue of threei)cnce, jjcr day, so that our goods were kept very safe. The fair, or mart, \jsually kept at this place, had been over some time : however, wo found that there were three or four junks in the river, and two Japanners, I mean ships from Japan, with goods which they had bought in China, and were not gone away, having some Japanese merchants on .shore. T p J- t (')' r,^ 1.1 The iu-sfc tiling our old Portuguese pilot did for u.j wa':!, to get u-, acquainted v/ith tliree missionary Ptomisli priests who were in the town, and who had been there some time converting the people to Christianity ; but we thought they made but poor work of it, and made them but sorry Christians Avhen they had done : however, that was r.one of our business. One of these Avas a Frenchman, whom they called Father Simon ; another was a Portuguese ; and the third a Grenoose ; but Father Simon was courteous easy in his manner, and very agreeable company ; the other two were more reserved, seemed rigid and austere, and applied seriously to the work they came about, viz., to talk with and insinuate themselves among the inhabitants, wherever they liad oj)portunity. We often ate and drank with those men ; and though, I must confess, the conversion, as they call it, of the Chinese to Christianity is so far from the true conversion required to bring heathen people to the ftiith of Christ, that it seems to Amount to little more than letting them know the name of Christ, and say some prayers to the Virgin Mary and her Son, in a tongue which they understand not, and to cross themselves and the like ; yet it must be confessed that the religionists, whom we call missionaries, have a firm belief that these people will be saved, and that they are the instruments of it; and on this account, they undergo not only the fatigue of the voyage, and the hazards of living in such places, but oftentimes death itself, and the most violent tortures, for the sake of this work. But to return to my story : — This French priest. Father Simon, was appointed, it seems, by order of the chief of the mission, to go up to Pekin, the royal seat of tho Chinese emperor, and waited only for another priest, who was ordered to come to him from Macao, to go along with him ; and we scarce ever met together but he was inviting- me to go that journey ; telling me how he would show me all the glorious things of that mighty em^pire, and, among the rest, the greatest city in the world ; " a city," said he, '■that your London and our Paris put together cannot be equal to." This was the city of Pekin, which, I confess, is very great, and infinitely full of people ; but, as I looked on those things v/ith different eyes from those of other men, so I shall give my opinion of them in a few v/ords, when I come in tho course of my travels to speak more par- ticularly of them. But first, I come to my friar or missionary. Dining with him one day, and being xevy merry together, I showed some little inclination to go with him ; and he pressed me and my partner very hard, and v/ith a great many persuasions, to consent. " Whv, Father Simon," says my partner, " should you desire our company so much ? you know v.^o are heretics, and you do not love us, nor cannot keep us company with any pleasure." *• Oh," says he, "you may perhaps be good Catholics in time ; my business here is to convert heathens, and who knows but I may convert you too 1 " " Very well, Father," said I, "so you will preach to us all the way?" "I Avill not be troublesome to you," says he ; " our religion does not divest us of good manners ; besides, we are here like countrymen ; and so we are, compared to the place we ai'e in ; and if you are Huguenots, and I a datholic, we may all be Christians at last ; at least we are all gentlemen, and v/c may converse so, without being uneasy to one another." I liked this part of his discourse very v/ell, and it began to put me in mind of my priest that I had left in the Brazils ; but this Father Simon did not come up to his character by a great deal ; for though Father Simon had no appearance of a criminal levity in him, yet he had not that fund of Christian zeal, strict piety, and sincere affection to religion, that my other good ecclesiastic had. But to leave him a little, although he never left us, nor soliciting us to go with 351 i f :i^^5M?i^^^^.li;^-^ ^-^^^^^^^^^ir him ; we had boiuething eLe before us at first, for we had ail this while our bhip and our merchandise to dispose of, and we began to be very doubtful what we should do, for we were now in a place of very little business ; and once I was about to venture to sail for the river of Kilam, and the city of Nanquin ; but ProA'idence seemed now more visibly, as I thought, than ever, to concern itself in our affairs ; and I was encouraged, from this very time, to think I should, one way or other, get out of this entangled circumstance, and be brought home to my o\\ti country again, though I had not the least view ot the manner. • Providence, I say, began here to* clear up our way a little ; and the first thing that oflTei-ed was, that our old Portuguese pilot brought a Japan merchant to us, who inquired what goods we had ; and, in the first place, he bought all our opium, and gave us a very good price for it, paying us in gold by weight, some small pieces of their own coin, x.^^^feL-g'?^ ^^^ some in small wedges, of about ten or twelve ounces r^i ■A\\\\\ RODIXSON CRUSOE. w- \^\ f •ach. While wo wcro dealing with him for our ojiium, it came into my head tha- i:o might perhaps deal for the ship, too, and I ordered the interpreter to propose it to him; ho shrunk up his shoulders at it, when it was first proposed to him ; 'ut in a few days after ho came to me, with oao of the missionary priests for his :itcri)retcr, and told me ho had a proposal to make to me, which was this : ho had bought a great quantity of goods of us, when he had no thoughts of proposals made to him of buying the ship ; and that, therefore, he had not money to pay for the ship ; ; at if I would let the same men who were in the ship navigate her, he would hire the ■lip to go to Japan ; and woitld send them from thence to the rhilipi)inc Islands with another loading, which he would pay the freight of before they went from Japan ; and that at their retui-n ho woidd buy the ship. I began to listen to his proposal, and so (•.i"cr did my head still run upon rambling, that I could not but begin to entertain a notion of going myself with him, and .so to .set sail from the Philippine Islands away to the South Seas ; accordingly, I asked the Japanese merchant if ho would not hire us to the Philippine Islands and discharge us there. He said no, he could not do that, for then ho could not have the return of his cargo ; but he would discharge us in Japan, at the ship's return. "Well, still I was for taking him at that proposal, and going myself; but my partner, wiser than myself, persuaded mo from it, representing the dangers as well of the seas as of the Japanese, who arc a false, cruel, and treacherous people ; likewise those of the Spaniards at the Philippines, more fiilse, cruel, and treacherous than they. But to bring this long turn of our affairs to a conclusion ; the first thing we had to do was, to consult with the captain of the shi]>, and with his men, and know if they were willing to go to Japan ; and while I was doing this, the young man whom my nephew had left with me as my companion for my travels came to me, and told me that ho thought that voyage promised very fair, and that there -was a great prospect of advantage, and he would bo very glad if I undertook it ; but that if I would not, and would give him leave, ho would go as a merchant, or as I pleased to order him; that if ever he came to England, and I was there and alive, he would render mo a faithful account of his success, which should bo as much mine as I pleased. I was really loth to part with him ; but considering the prospect of advantage, which really was consider- able, and that ho was a young fellow as likely to do well in it as any I knew, I inclined to let him go; but I told him I would consult my pai-tner, and give him an answer the next day. My partner and I discoursed about it, and my partner made a most generous offer: "You know it has been an unlucky ship," .said he, "and wo both resolve not to go to sea in it again ; if your steward (so he called my man) will venture the voyage, I will leave my share of the vessel to him, and let him make the best of it ; and if wo live to meet in England, and he meets with success abroad, ho shall account for one half of the profits of the ship's freight to us ; the other shall be his own." If my partner, who was no way concerned with my young man, made him such an offer, I could do no less than offer him the same ; and all the ship's company being willing to go with him, wo made over half the ship to him in property, and took a writing fron\ him, obliging him to account for tho other, and away ho went to Jaimn. Tlio Japan merchant proved a very punctual, honest man to him ; protected liim at Japan, and got him a license to como on shore, which the Europeans in general luivc not lately obtained ; paid liim liis freight very punctually ; sent him to the Philippines, loaded with Japan and China wares, and a supercargo of their own, who, ti-aflicking with the Spaniards, brought back European goods again, and a great quantity of cloves 35+ E B and other spices; and there he was not only paid his freight very well, and at a very good price, but not being willing to sell the ship then, the merchant furnished him goods on his own account ; and with some money, and some spices of his own which ho brought with him, he went back to the Manillas to the Spaniards, where he sold his cargo very well. Here, having got a good acquaintance at ]\Ianilla, he got his ship made a free ship, and the governor of Manilla hired him to go to Acapulco, in America, on the coast of Mexico, and gave him a licence to land here, and to travel to Mexico, and to pass in any Spanish ship to Europe with all his men. He made the voyage to Acapulco very happily, and there he sold his ship ; and having there also obtained allowance to travel by land to Porto Bello, he found means, somehow or other, to get to Jamaica with all his treasure ; and about eight yeai-s after came to England, exceeding rich ; of which I shall take notice in its place ; in the meantime I return to our par- ticular affairs. Being now to part with the ship and ship's compaiiy, it came before us, of course, to consider what recompense we should give to tlie two men that gave us such timely notice of the design against us in the river Cambodia. The truth was, they had done us a very considerable service, and deserved vrell at our hands ; though, by the way, they were a couple of rogues too ; for, as they believed the story of our being pirates, and that we had really run away with the ship, they came down to us, not only to betray the design that was formed against us, but to go to sea with us as pirates ; and one of them confessed afterwards that nothing else but the hopes of going a-roguing brought him to do it ; however, the service they did us was not the less, and therefore, as I had promised to be grateful to them, I first ordered the money to be paid them which they said was due to them on board their respective ships j over and above that, I gave each of them a small sum of money in gold, which contented them very well j then I made the Englishman gunner in the ship, the gunner being now made second mate and purser; the Dutchman I made boatswain; so they were both very w^ pleased, and proved very serviceable, being both able seamen, and very stout fellows. "We were now on shore in China : if I thought myself banished, and remote from my own country at Bengal, where I had many waj's to get home for my money, what could I think of myself now, when I was got about a thousand leagues farther off from home, and perfectly destitute of all manner of prospect of return 1 All we had for it was this, that in about four months' time there was to be another fair at the place v/here we were, and then we might be able to purchase all sorts of the manufactures of the country, and Avithal might possibly find some Chinese junks or vessels from Tonquin that would be to be sold, and would carry us and our goods whither wo pleased. This I liked very well, and resolved to wait ; besides, as our particular persons were not obnoxious, so if any English or Dutch ships came thither, perhaps we might have an opportunity to load our goods, and get passage to some other place in India nearer home. Upon these hopes, Ave resolved to continue here ; but, to divert oui'selves, Ave took two or thi-ee journeys into the country. First, Ave Avent ten days' journey to the city of Nauquin, a city Avell Avortli seeing, indeed ; they say it has a million of people in it ; it is regularly built, the streets all exactly straight, and cross one another in direct line::;, Avhich gives the figure of it great advantage. But Avhen I come to compare the miser- able people of these countries Avith ours, their fabrics, their manner of liA'ing, their government, their religion, their wealth, and their glory, as some call it, I must confess that I scai-cely think it AA'orth my while to mention them here. It is very observable that Ave Avonder at the grandeur, the riches, the pomp, the ceremoii; " ■ .ernment „.. _^ 355 ■^^>«=^- n I%)^l^%^*^ the manufactures, the commerce, and conduct of these people; not that it is to bi wondered at, or, in Ved, in tlic least to be regarded, but because, having a true notion ot the barbarity of those countries, the rudeness and the ignorance that prevail there, we do not expect to find any such thing so far off. Otherwise, what are their buildings to the palaces and royal buildings of Europe ? What their ti-ade to the universal commerce of England, Hollaml, France, and Spain ? "NVIiat are their cities to ours for wealth, strength, gaiety of apparel, rich furniture, and infinite variety ? What are their ports, supplied with a few junks and barks, to our navigation, our merchant fleets, our large anr to light a disciplined army; one good line of German cuirassiers, or of French • avalry, might withstand all the horso of China ; a million of their foot would not stand before one embattled body of our infantry, posted so as not to be surrounded, though they were not to bo one to twenty in number ; nay, I do not boast if 1 .•■ay that thirty thousand German or English foot, and ton thousand horse, well managed, could defeat all the forces of China. And so of our fortified towns, and of the art of our engineers in assaulting and defending towns; there is not a fortified town in China could hold out one month against the batteries and attacks of an European army ; and, at the same time, all the armies of China could never take sufh a town as Dunkirk, provided it was not starved ; no, not in a ten years' t'iege. They had fire-arms, it is true, but they are awkward and uncertain in their going ofi'; and their powder luus but little strength. Their armies are badly disciplined, and want skill to attack, or temper to retreat; and therefore, I must confess, it seemed i^trange to me, when I came home, and heard our people say such fine things of the power, glory, magnificence, and trade of the Chinese; because, as far as I sj\w, they a]ipeared to be a contemptible herd or crowd of ignorant, sordid .slaves, sub- jected to a government (jualilicd only to rule such a people ; and were not its distance inconceivably great from INIuscovy, and the Muscovite empire in a manner as rud>, impotent, and ill governed as they, the Czar of ^Muscovy might with ease drive them all out of their country, and conquer them in one campaign ; and had the CViir (who is now a growing prince) fa'leu this way, instead of attacking the warlike Swedes, and equally improved him.scU" in the art of war, as they sjty he has don<^, ami if none of the powers of Europe had envied or interrupted him, he might by this time have been Emperor of Cliina, instead of being beaten by the King of Sweden at Narva, when the latter wa.s not one to six in nuuil»er. As their strength and their gnwideur, so their navigation, commerce, and husbandry, are very imperfect, )iupared to the same things in Europe; also, in their knowledge, their leariung, and in ir skill in the .science-^, they are either very awkward or defective, though they have globes or .spheres, and a smattering of the mathematics, and think they know more ihei TRAVELLING IN CHINA Ihfiu all the world besides ; but they know little of the motions of the heavenly bodies ; and so grossly and absurdly ignorant are their common people, that when the sun is eclipsed, they think a great dragon has assaulted it, and is going to run away with it ; and they fall a clattering with all the drums and kettles in the country, to fright the monster away, just as we do to hive a swarm of bees. As this is the only excursion of the kind which I have made in all tlie accounts T have given of my travels, so I shall make no more such ; it is none of my business, nor any part of my design ; but to give an account of my own adventures through a life ^f inimitable Avanderings, and a long variety of changes, which, perhaps, few that come after me will have heard the like of; I shall therefore say very little of all the mighty places, desert countries, and numerous people, I have yet to pass through, more than relates to my own story, and which my concern among them make necessary. I was now, as near as I can compute, in the heart of China, about thirty degrees north of the line, for we Avere returned from Nanquin. I had, indeed, a mind to see the city of Pekin, which I had heard so much of, and Father Simon importuned me daily to do it. At length his time of going away being set, and the other missionary who was to go with him being arrived from Macao, it was necessary that we should resolve either to go, or not ; so I refen-ed it wholly to my partner, and left it wholly t(i his choice, who at length resolved it in the affirmative, and we pve})ared for our i .^>L_ II KOBIXSON CRUSOE. It U\ ' k i^ andVery convenient for travellers; but nothing was more awku'ard to^me than to see such a haughty, imperious, insolent people, in the midst of the grossest simplicity and ignorance ; and my friend Father Simon and I used to be very merry upon these occasions, to see the beggarly pride of these people. For example, coming by the house of a country gentleman, as Father Simon called him, about ten le;xgucs olF the city of Nanquin, wc had first of all the honour to ride with the master of the house about two miles ; the state ho rode in was a perfect Don Quixotism, being a mixture of pomp and poverty. His habit was very proper for a scaramouch, or merry-andrew, being a dirty calico, with hanging .sleeves, ta.s.sel3, and cuts and slashes almost on eveiy side : it covered a taffety vest, as greasy as a butcher .s, and which testified that his honour must be a most exquisite sloven. His horse was but a poor, stan'cd, hobbling creature, and ho ]>ad two .slaves followed him on foot to drive the ])Oor creature along ; he had a whip iu hi.s liand, and he belaboured the beast as fast about the liead as his slaves did about the tail ; and thus lie rode by lis, with about ten or twelve servants, going from the city to his country seat about half a league before us. We travelled on gently, but this figure of a gentleman rode away before us; and as we stopped at a village about an hour to refresh us, when we came by the country seat of this gi'eat man, we saw him i:i a little place before his door, eating a repast. It was a kind of gai-den, but he was c.isy to be seen ; and we were given to understand that the more we looked at him the better he would be jtleascd. He sat under a tree, something like the palmetto, which efiectually shaded him over the head, and on the south side ; but imder the tree was jilaced a large umbrella, which made that part look well enough. He sat lolling back in a great clljow-chair, being a heavy, corpulent man, and had his meat brought him by two women .slaves. He had two more, one of whom fed the squire with a sjioon, and the other held the dish with one hand, and scraped off what he let fall upon his woi-ship's beard and tafit'ty vest. Thus leaving the poor wretch to please himself with our looking at him, as if wo admired his pomp, though we really pitied and contemned him, we pursued our journey; only Father Simon had the curiosity to .stay to inform himself Avhat dainties the countiy justice had to feed on in all his state, which he had the honour to taste of, and which was, I think, a mess of boiled rice, with a great i)iece of garlic in it, and a little b:ig filled with green popper, and another plant which they ha^•c there, something like our ginger, but smelling like musk, and tasting like mustard ; all this wa.s i)ut together, and a small i)iecc of loan mutton boiled iu it, and this was his worshi[)'s repast. Four or five servants more attended at a distance, who we supposed were to cat of the same after their master. As for our ninndarin with whom wo travelled, ho was respected as a king, sur- rounded always with his gentlemen, and attended in all his appearances with such pomp, that I saw little of him but at a distance, liut this I observed, that there wjis not a horse in his retinue but that our carriers' packhorscs in England .seemed to me to look much better; though it was hard to judge rightly, for they were so covered with Oiulpage, mantlo.H, trappings, JL'c, that we could .scarce see anything but their feet and tliolr heads as thoy went along. I was now light hearted, nn.l all my trouble and perplexity that I have given .on iic-oount of being over, I had no anxious thoughts about mo, which made this journey the pleasantcr to me ; nor had I any ill accident attended mo, only in passing or fording a small river, my hor.so fell, and made mo free of the country, as they call it— that is to Kiy, threw mo in. Tho iilacc was not deep, but it Avcttcd mo all over. I mention it 353 s> I I a because it spoiled my pocket-book, wlierein I had set do^\^l the names of several people and places wliicli I had occasiou to remember, and which not taking due care of, the leaves rotted, and the words were never after to be read, to my great loss, as to the names of some of the places I touched at in this journey. At length we arrived at Pekin. I had nobody with mc but the youth whom my nephew the captain had given me to attend me as a servant, and who proved very trusty and diligent; and my partner had nobody with him but one servant, who was a kins- man. As for the Portuguese pilot, he being desirous to see the court, wo bore his charges for his company, and to use him as an interpreter, for ho understood the language of the country, and spoke good French and a little English ; and indeed this old man was a most useful implement to us everyAvhere ; for°we had not been above a week at Pekin, when he came laughing. " Ah, Seignior Inglese," says he, " I have something to tell will make your heart glad." « My heart glad," slys I ; « what can that be ? I don't know anything in this country can either give me joy'or grief to any great degree." " Yes, yes," says the old man in brokea English, " make you glad, me sorry." "Why, said I, "will ifc make you sorry?" "Because," said he, " you have brought me here twenty-five days' journey, and will leave me to go back alone; and which way shall I get to my port afterwards, without, a ship, without a horse, without pecime ? "—so he 'called money, being his broken Latin, of which he had abundance to make us merry with. In short, he told us there was a great caravan of :\ruscovite and Polish merchants in the city, preparing to set out on their joui-ney by land to Muscovy, within four or five weeks ; and he was sure we would take the opportunity to go with them, and leave him behind to go back alone. I confess I was greatly surprised with this good news, and had scarce power to speak to him for some time ; but at last I turned to him. "How do you know this ? " said I : " are you sure it is true ? " " Yes," says he ; " I met this morning in the street an old acquaintance of mine, an^ Armenian, who is among them. He came last from Astracan, and was designing to go to Tonquin, where I formerly knew him, but has altered his mind, and is now resolved to go with the caravan to Moscow, and so down the river Yv^olga to Astracan." "Well, Seignior," says I, "do not be uneasy about being left to go back alone ; if this be a method for my return to England, it shall be your fault if you go back to Macao at all." We then went to consult together what was to be done ; and I asked my partner what he thought of the pilot's news, and whether it would suit with his affairs ? He told me he would do just as I would • for he had settled all his afiairs so well at Bengal, and left his effects in such good hands, that as we had made a good voyage here, if he could invest it in China silks, wrou^^ht and raw, such as might be worth the carriage, he would be content to go to Enrdand and then make his voyage back to Bengal by the Company's ships. Ha\-ing resolved upon this, we agreed that if our Portuguese pilot would go with us, we would bear his charges to Moscow, or to England, if he pleased ; nor, indeed, were we to be esteemed over-generous in that either, if we had not rewarded him farther, the service he had done us being really worth more than that ; for he had not only been a pilot to us at sea, but he had been like a broker for us on shore ; and his procuring for us the Japan merchant was some hundreds of pounds in our pockets. So v^e consulted together about it, and being willing to gratify him, which was but doing him justice, and very willing also to have him with us besides, for he was a most necessary man on all occasions, we agreed to give him a quantity of coined gold, which, as I compute it, c?.me ^-^ "i<— ■*- A,.r. ]i-.ndred and seventy-five pounds sterling, be Lvrccu v -^ \ii bear all .^^ ^1: [c/ DEPARTURE FROM TEKIX. his charges, both for liimself and lior.se, except only a horse to cany his goods. Havinj settled this between ourselves, ^ve called him to let him know what we had resolved. I told him he had complained of our being willing to let him go back alone, and I was now about to tell him we were I'esolved he should not go back at all ; that as wo had resolved to go to Europe with the caravan, we resolved also he should go with us ; and that we called him to know his mind. He shook his head and said it was a long journey, and that he had no pecune to carry him tliither, or to subsist himself when he came there. We told him we believed it was so, and therefore we had resolved to do something for him that should let him see how sensible we were of the service he had done us, and also how agreeable he was to us j and then I told him what we had resolved to give him here, which he might lay out as we would do our own ; and that as for his charges, if he would go Avitli us we would set him safe on shore (life and casualties excepted) either in Muscovy or England, which he would, at our own charge, except only the carriage of his goods. He received the proposal like a man transported, and told us he would go with us over the whole world ; and so we all prepared for our journey. However, as it was with us so it was with the other merchants ; they had many things to do, and instead of being ready in five weeks, it was four months and some days before all things were got together. It was the beginning of February, our style, when we set out from Pekin. My partner and the old pilot had gone express back to the port where we had first put in, to dispose of some goods which we had left there ; and I, with a Chinese mercliant Avhom I had some knowledge of at ISTanquin, and who came to Pekin on his own affairs, went to ISTanquin, where I bought ninety pieces of fine damasks, with about two hundred pieces of other very fine silks of several sorts^ some mixed with gold, and had all these brought to Pekin against my partner's return ; besides this, we bought a very large quantity of raw silk, and some other goods, our cargo amounting, in these goods only, to about three thousand five hundred pounds sterling ; which, together with tea and some fine calicoes, and three camels' loads of nutmegs and cloves, loaded in all eighteen camels for our share, besides those we rode upon ; v/hich, with two or three spare horses, and two horses loaded with provisions, made us, in short, twenty-six camels and horses in our retinue. The company was very great, and, as far as I can remember, made between three and four hundred horse, and upwards of one hundred and twenty men, very well armed, and provided for all events ; for as the Eastern caravans are subject to be attacked by the Arabs, so are these by the Tartars ; but they are uot altogether so dangerous as the Arabs, nor so barbai'ous when they prevail. The company consisted of people of several nations ; but there were about sixty of tliem merchants or inhabitants of 3Ioscow, though of them some were Livonians ; and to our particular satisfaction, five of them were Scots, who appeared also to be men of great experience in business, and of very good substance. When we had travelled one day's journey, the guides, who were five in number, called all the gentlemen and merchants — tliat is to say, all the passengers except the servants — to a great council, as they called it. At this council, every one deposited a^ certain quantity of money to a common stock, for the necessary expense of buying forage on the way, where it was not otherwise to he had, and for satisfying the guides, getting Jiorses, and the like ; and here they constitiited the journey, as they call it, viz., they named captains and officers to draw lis all up, and give the word of command, in case of an attack, and give every one their turn of command ; nor was this forming us into order any more than what we found needful on the way, as shall be observed. 361 -ji ¥ IK ROBINSON CRUSOK. The road all on this side of the countiy is very populous, and is full of potters and caj-tli- makers— that is to Fay, i)eoi)lo that temi>cr the earth for the China ware ; and as I was coming along, our Poi-tugal j.ilot, who had always something or other to say to make us merry, came sneering to me, and told me he would show me the greatest rarity ill all the country, and that I should have this to say of China, after all the ill-humoured thiiv's that I had said of it, that I had seen one thing which was not to be seen in all tlie world beside. I was very importunate to know what it was; at last ho told mc it Nvas a gentleman's house built with China ware, " Well," says I, " are not the materials v( their buildings the product of their own country ? and so it is all China ware, is it not 1 " " No, no," says he, " I mean it is a house all made of China ware, such as you call it in England, or as it is called in our country, porcelain." " Well," says I, " such a thin^' may be. How big is it ? Can we carry it in a box upon a camel ? If wo cai , wc will buy it." "Upon a camel!" says the old pilot, holding up both his hands ; " why, there is a famiJy of thirty people lives in it." I was then ctirious, indeed, to see it; but when I came to it, it was nothing but this : it was a timber house, or a house built, as we call it in England, with lath and i.lastcr ; but all this plastering was really China ware — that is to say, it was plastered with the earth that makes China ware. The outside, which the sun shone hot upon, was glazed, and looked very well, perfectly white, and painted with blue figures, as the large China ware in England is painted, and hard as if it had been burned. As to the inside all the walls, instead of wainscot, were lined with hardened and painted tiles, like the little square tiles we call galley-tiles in England, all made of the finest China, and the fif^ires exceedingly fine indeed, with extraordinary variety of coloui-s, mixed with gold, many tiles making but one figure, but joined so artificially, the mortar being made of the same earth, that it was very hard to see where the tiles met. The floors of the rooms were of the .same composition, and as hard as the earthen flooi-s wo have in use in several parts of England ; as hard as stone, and smooth, but not burned and i)ainted, except some smaller rooms, like closets, which were all, as it were, paved with the same tile ; the ceiling and all the plastering work in the whole house were of the same earth ; and, after all, the roof w;\s covered with tiles of the same, but of a deep shinin" black. This was a China warehouse indeed, truly and literally to be called so, and hud I not been upon the journey, I could have stayed some days to see and examine the particulars of it. They told n\e there were fountains and fish-ponds in the garden, all paved on the bottom and sides with the same ; and fine statues setup in rows on the walks, entirely formed of the porcelain earth, and burned whole. As this is one of the singularities of China, .so they may bo allowed to excel in it ; but I am very sure they excel in their accounts of it ; for they told me such incredible things of their performance in crockery-ware, for such it is, that I care not to relate, as knowin" it coidd not be tnie. They told me, in particular, of one workman that made a ship, with all its tackle, and masts, and .sails in earthenware, big enough to carry fifty men. If they had told me ho launched it, and made a voyage to Japan in it, I might have said somcthinf^ to it ind^^rd ; but as it was, I knew the whole of the story, which was, in short, asking pardon for the word, that tln" fellow lied ; so I smiled, and slid nothing to it. I This odd sight kept me two horns behind the caravan, for which the leader of it for I the day fined me about the value of three shilling-s, and told me if it had been tlnvo days' journey without the wall, tw it was three days within, he mu.st have fined me four I tii'.K's ns nui'.o THE GREAT WALL OF CHINA. f P '' orderly ; and, indeed, I found iiftcrwards the orders made for keeping all together wi ; absolutely necessary for our common safety. In two days more we passed the great China wall, made for a fortification against the Tartars ; and a very great work it is, going over hills and mountains in a needless track, where the rocks are impassable, and the precipices such as no enemy could possibly enter, or indeed climb up, or where, if they did, no wall could hinder them. They tell us its length is near a thousand English miles, but that the country is five hundred in a straight measured line, which the wall bounds, without measuring the windings and turnings it takes ; it is about four fathoms high, and as many thick in some places. I stood still an hour or thereabouts without trespassing our orders (for so long the caravan was in passing the gate), to look at it on every side, near and far off, I mean what was within my view ; and the guide of our caravan, who had been extolling it for the wonder of the world, was mighty eager to hear my opinion of it. I told lum it was a most excellent thing to keep out the Tartars ; which he happened not to understand as I meant it, and so took it for a compliment ; but the old pilot laughed, " Oh, Seignior Inglese," says he, "you speak in colours." " In colours !" said I ; "what do you mean by that ? " " Why, you .speak what looks white this w-ay, and black that Avay— gay one way, and dull -another. You tell him it is a good wall to keep out Tartars ; you tell mc by that it is good for nothing but to keep out Tartars. I understand you, Seignior Inglese, I uuflerstand you ; but Seignior Chinese understood you his own way." "AVell," says I, "seignior, do you think it would stand out an army of our country people, with a good train of artillery ? or our engineers, with two companies of miners 1 Would not they batter it down in ten days, that an army might enter in battalia ? or bbw it up in the air, foundation and all, that there .should be no sign of it left 1 '' '•' Aj^, ay," says he, " I know that." The Chinese wanted mightily to know what I said, and I gave him leave to tell him a few days after, for we were then almost out of their country, and he was to leave us a little time after this ; but when he knew what I fcaid, he was dumb all the rest of the way, and we heard no more of his fine story of the Chinese power and greatness while he stayed. After Ave passed this mighty nothing, called a wall, something like the Picts' Avail, so famous in Northumberland, built by the Eomans, we began to find the country thinly inliabited, and the people rather confined to live in fortified towns or cities, as being subject to the inroads and depredations of the Tartars, Avho rob in great armies, and therefore are not to l)e resisted by the naked inhabitants of an open country. And here I began to find the necessity of keeping together in a caravan as Ave travelled, for a\ c saAV seA^eral troops of Tartars roving about ; but Avhen I came to see them distnictly, I Avondered more that the Chinese Empire could be conquered by sucli contemptible fellows ; for they are a mere horde of Avild felloAvs, keeping no order, and understanding no discipline or manner of fight. Their horses arc poor lean creatures, taught nothing, and fit for nothing ; and this Ave found the first day Ave saAV them, Avhicli Avas after Ave entered the Avilder part of the country. Our leader for the day gave leave for about sixteen of us to go a-hunting as they call it ; and whr t Avas this but hunting of sheep ! HoAA-ever, it may be called hunting, too, for the creatures are the Avildest and swiftest ot foot that ever I saw of their kind ; only they will not rixu a great Avay, and you are sure of sport when you begin the chase, for they appear generally thirty or forty in a flock, and, like true sheep, always keep together AA'hen they fly. In pursuit of this odd sort of game, it Avas our hap to meet Avith about forty Tartars 363 m. ^^'a'S^^^ r^-'^' m- /^,:»>^i79 «>? ©a wl.Jthcr they were hunting mutton, as ^vo were, or whether ,7 lluT h-koa for another kind of prey, we know not ; but as soon a« they Iw ^.sfone of them blew a kind of horn very loud, but with a barbarous sound that I ha.l never heard before, and, by the way, never caro to hear aga.n A^ e all supposed this wa-s to eall their friends about them, and so it wa.s ; foi less than ten minutes, a troop of forty or fifty more appeared, at about a nuk aistanco ; but our work was over first, as it happened. , i , ,,.,n is ()„o of the Scots merehants of Moscow happened to be amongst us, and as so.-n as ho hoard the hon, he told us that we had nothing to do but to charge them umnc- dialc.lv, without loss of time ; and drawing us up in a line, he asked ,f wc were resol . AVo told hin^ wc were rca.ly to follow him ; so he rode directly towards them. 364 J i i P ^ stood gazing at ii« like a mere crowd, drawn up in no order, nor showing the face of any order at all ; but as soon as tliey saw ns advance, they let fly tlieir arrows, which, how- ever, missed ns, very liappily : it seems they mistook not their aim, but their distance ; f -r their aiTows all fell a little short of us, but with so true an aim, that had we been about twenty yards nearer, wc must Iiave had several men wounded, if not killed. Immediately wc halted, and though it was at a great distance, wo fired, and sent tliem leaden bullets for wooden arrows, following our shot full-gallop, to fall in among them sword in liand — for so our bold Scot that led us directed. He was, indeed, but a merchant, but ho behaved with such vigour and bravery on this occasion, and yet with such co(d courage too, that I never saw any man in action fitter fur command. As soon as wc came up to them, wo fired our pistols in their faces, and then drew ; but they fled ill the greatest confusion imaginable. The only stand any of them made was on our riglit, where three of them stood, and, by signs, called the I'est to come back to them, having a kind of .scimitar in their hand.s, and their bows hanging to their backs. Our brave commander, without asking anybody to follow him, gallops up close to them, and with his ftisec knocks one of them off" his horse, killed the second vrith. his pistol, and the third ran away ; and thus ended our fight ; but wc had this misfortune attending it, that all our mutton we had in chase got away. We had not a man killed or liurt ; but as for the Tartars, there were about five of them killed ; how many were wounded wc Icnew not ; b\it this we knew, that the other party were so frightened with the noise of iiMv guns, that they made oil', and never made any attempt upon us. Wc were all this whilo in the Chinese dominions, and therefore the Tartai-s were not so l)old as uftenvards ; but in about five days wo entered a vast, great, wild desert^ which held us three days and nights' march ; and wo were obliged to carry our water Mith us, in great leathciii bottles, and to encamp all night, just as I have heard they do in the desert of Arabia. I asked our guides whose dominion this was in, and they told me this was a kind of border, that might be called no man's laud, being a part of Or eat Karakathy, or Grand Tartary ; that, however, it was all reckoned as belonging to China, but that there was no care taken licrc to preserve it from the inroads of thieves, and therefore it was reckoned the woi-st desert in the whole march, though we were to go over some much larger. In jiassing this wilderness, which was at'first very frightful to me, we saw, two or three times, little parties of the Tartai-s, but they seemed to bo upon their own affair.s and to have no design upon us ; and so, like the man who met the devil, if they had nothing to say to us, wc had nothing to say to them : we let them go. Once, however, a i»arty of tliem came so near as to stand and gaze at us : whether it was to consider if they shtudd attack us or not, wc know not ; but when we had passed at some distance l>y them, wc made a rear-guard of forty men, and .stood ready f >r them, letting the c.iravan pass half a mile or thenabouts befoi'o us ; but after a while they marched ofl'; only we found they .saluted us with five arrows at their parting, which •wounded a hor.se .-^o that it di.sabled him, and wo loft him the next day, poor ci'entuiv, in gi-eat need of a good farrier : they might shoot more aiTows, which might fall short of its ; but we saw no more arrows or Tartai-s that time. We tnivellcd near a month after this, the ways not being so good as at firat, thoxigh till in tho dominions of tho Emperor of Chiiui, but lay for tho most part in the villages, .M)aio of which were fortified, becau.se of the incursions of the Tartars. When we were come to one of thcso towns (it was about two days and a halfs jouniey before we came t> the city of Xuuiu), 1 wanted to buy a camel, of which there arc i>lenty to be sold all ^ ATTACKED BY TARTARS. llic Nviij upon that road, and liorses also, .sucli as tliey are, because, so many cara\'auH coming that way, they are often wanted. The person that I spoke to to get mc a caraol would liave gone and fetched one for me, but I, like a fool, must be officious, and go myself along with him; the place was about two miles out of the village, where, it seems, they kept the camels and horses feeding, under a guard. I walked it on foot, with my old pilot and a Chinese, being very desirous of a little variety. When we came to the i)lace, it was a low marshy ground, walled round witli a stone wall, piled \ip diy, without mortar or earth among it, like a park, with a little guard of Chinese soldiers at the door. Having bought a camel, and agreed for the price, I came away, and the Chinese man that went with me led the camel, when on a sudden came up five Tartars on horseback. Two of them seized the fellow and took the camel from him, while the other three stepped up to me and my old pilot, seeing us, as it Avero, unarmed, for I had no weapon about me but my sword, which could but ill defend mo against three horsemen. The first that came up stopped short upon my drawing my sword, for they are arrarit cowards ; but a second, coming upon my left, gave me a blow on the head, which I never felt till afterwards, and wondered, when I came to myself, v/hat was the matter, and where I was, for he laid me flat on the ground ; but my never-failing old pilot, the Portuguese (so Providence, imlooked for, directs deliverances from dangers which to us are unforeseen), had a pistol in his pocket, which I knev/ nothing of, nor the Tartars either ; if they had, I suppose they would not have attacked us ; but cowards are always boldest when there is no danger. The old man seeing me down, with a bold heart stepped tip to the fellow that had struck me, and laying hold of his arm Avith one hand, and pulling him down by main force a little towards him, with the other shot him in the head, and laid him dead upon the spot. He then immediately stepped up to him who had stopped us, as I said, and before he could come forward again, made a blow at him with a scimitar, which he always wore, but missing the man, struck bis horse in the side of his head, cut one of the eai's off by the root, and a great slice down by the side of his face. The poor beast, enraged with the wound, Avas no more to be governed by his rider, though the fellow sat well enough too, but away he flew, and carried him quite out of the pilot's reach ; and at some distance, rising upon his hind legs, threw down the Tartar, and fell upon him. In this interval, the poor Chinese came in Avho had lost the camel, but he had no weapon ; however, seeing the Tartar down, and his horse fallen npon him, away he runs to him, and seizing upon an ugly ill-favoured weapon he had by his side, some- thing like a poleaxe, but not a poleaxe neither, lie wrenched it from him, and made shift to knock his Tartarian brains out with it. But my old man had the third Tartar to deal with still ; and seeing he did not fly, as he expected, nor come on to fight him, as he apprehended, but stood stock .still, the old man stood still too, and fell to work v/ith his tackle to charge his pistol again ; but, as soon as the Tai'tar saw the pistol, away he scoured, and left my pilot, my champion I called him afterwaitls, a complete A'ictor}-. By this time I Avas a little recoA'ered ; for I thought, Avhen I first began to Avake, that I had been in a sweet sleep ; but, as I said above, I wondei'ed where I Avas, Iioaa^ T came ujwn the ground, and Avhat was the matter ; but a feAv moments after, as sense I'eturned, I felt pain, though I did not know Avhere ; so I clapped my hand to my head, and took it away bloody ; then I felt my head ache ; and then in a moment memory returned, and everything was present to me again. I jumped upon my feet instantly, and got hold of niA'- sword, but no enemies Avere in vioAV ; I found n T.irhir Ivino- d" ;.l. 3C-7 '^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. /. ;L jinrl his liurse standing very quietly by him ; and, looking farther, I saw my champion and deliverer, who had been to see what the Chinese had done, coming back with his lianger in his liand. The old man, seeing me on my feet, came running tauy ; but without this, they will every man turn his back." Immediately, I rode up to oar leader, and told him, who was exactly of our mind ; and accoi-dingly fifty of us marched to the right wing, and fifty to the left, and the rest made a lino of rescue ; and so we marched, leaving the last two hundred men to make a body by themselves, and to guard the camels ; only that, if need were, they should send a hundred men to assist the Jast fifty. In a word, the Tartars came on, and an innumerable company they wore ; how many wo could not tell, but ten thousand, wo thought, was the least; a party of them came on fii-st, and viewed our posture, traversing the ground in the front of our iiiio' and, as we found them within gunshot, our leader ordered tho two wings to advance swiftly, and give them a salvo on each Aving with their .shot, Avhicli was done j and they went oft', I suppo.se back, to give an account of tho reception they wore like to meet with ; and, indeed, that salute cloyed their stomachs, for they immediately halted, stood awhile to consider it, and wheeling off to the left, they gave over their (Icsi'^n, and said no more to lis for that time ; which was very agi-eeablo to our cir- cumstances, which were but very iiidificrent for a battle with such a number. * Two days after, wo camo to tho city of Naun, or Naum : we tlianked the governor for his care of us, and collected to tho value of a hundred crowns, or thereabouts, which wo gave to the soldiers sent to guard us ; and here wc rested one day. This is a garrison indeed, and there were nine hundred soldiers kept here ; but tho reason of it was, that formerly the Mu.scovite frontiers lay nearer to them than they now do, tho Mu.scovitcs having abandoned that part of tho country, which lies from this city west for about two hundred miles, as desolate and unfit for use ; and more especially bciiif' so voiy remote, and so difficult to scud troops thither for its defence ; for wo \\ero yet above two thousand miles from Muscovy, properly so called. After thi.s, we passed several great rivers, and two dreadful deserts; ono of which wo were sixteen days passing over, and which, as I said, was to bo called no man's land ; and, on tho 1 3th of April, we camo to tho frontiers of tho ]\Iuscovite domi- niona. I think tho first town or fortres-s, whichever it may be called, that belonged to the Cz;ir of I^Iuscovy, was called Arguna, being on tho west side of tho river Arguua. I could not but discover an infinite satisfaction that I was so soon an-ived in, as r called it, a Christian countiy, or, at least, in a country governed by Christians ; for though tho jMuscovitcs do, in my opinion, but just deserve tho name of Christians, yet such they i>retend to be, and are very devout in their way. It would certainly occur to any man who travels the world as I have done, and who had any power of reflection, what a blessing it is to b(> brought into tho world where tho namo of Cod and a Iledoemer is known, adored, and worshipped ; and not where tho people, given up by Heaven to .strong delusions, worship the devil, and pro.strato them.-^elvcs to stocks and stones ; worship monsters, cli'ments, horrid-.shaped animals, and statues or images of monsters. Not a town or city wc jia.ssed through but had their pagodas, tlii'ir idols, and their temples, and ignorant people worshipping even tho works of their own hands. Now wo camo where, at least, a face of tho Christian worship appeared ; when> (lio knee was bowed to Jesus; and whether ignorantly or not, yet the Chri.sti;iii -570 * I n if ^3» .XE!, ^.*i- sSite- r=^M^ 'W :^ religion was owned, and the name of the true God was called upon and adored ; and it made my sovd rejoice to see it. I saluted the brave Scots merchant I mentioned above with my first acknowledgment of this ; and taking him by the hand, I said to him, " Blessed be God, we are once again among Christians." He smiled and answered, '•' Do not rejoice too soon, countryman ; these Muscovites are but an odd sort of Christians ; and but for the name of it, you may see very little of the substance for some months farther of our journey." "Well," says I, "but still it is better than paganism and Avor.^iipping of devils." " Why, I will tell you," says he, " except the Eussi^i soldiers in the garrison, and a few of the inhabitants of the cities upon the road, all the rest of this country, for above a thousand miles farther, is inhabited by the worst and most ignorant of pagans." And so, indeed, we found it. We were now launched into the greatest piece of solid earth, if I understand anything of the surface of the globe, that is to be found in any part of the world ; we had, at least, twelve thousand miles to the sea, eastward j two thousand to the bottom of the Baltic Sea, westward ; and above three thousand, if we left that sea, and Avent on west, to the British and French channels : we had full five thousand miles to the Indian or Persian Sea, south ; and about eight hundred to the Frozen Sea, north. May, if some people may be believed, there might be no sea north-east till we came round the Pole, and consequently into the north-west, and so had a conti- nent of land into America, the Lord knows where ; though I could give some reasons why I believe that to be a mistake. As we entered into the Muscovite dominions a good while before we came to any considerable towns, we had nothing to observe there but this : first, that all the rivers run to the east ; as I understood by the charts, which some in our caravan had with them, it was plain all those rivers ran into the great river Yamour, or Gamour ; which river, by the natural course of it, must run into the East Sea, or Chinese Ocean. The story they tell us, that the mouth of this river is choked up with bulrushes of a mon- strous growth— viz., three feet about, and twenty or thirty feet high— I must be allowed to say, I believe nothing of it j but, as its navigation is of no use, because there is no trade that way, the Tartars, to whom it alone belongs, dealing in nothing but cattle, so nobody that ever I heard of has been curious enough either to go down to the mouth of it in boats, or come up from the mouth of it in ships, as fiir as I can find ; but this is certain, that this river running east, in the latitude of about oO degrees, carries a vast concourseofriversalong withit, and finds an ocean to empty itself in that latitude ; so we are sure of sea there. Some leagues to the north of this river, there are several considerable rivers, whose streams run as due north as the Yamour runs east, and these are all found to jom their waters with the great river Tartarus, named so from the northernmost nations of the Mogid Tartars; who, as the Chinese say, were the first Tartars in the world ; and who, as our geographers allege, are the Gog and Magog mentioned in sacred history. These rivers running all northward, as well as all the other rivers! am yet to .speak of, make it evident that the Northern Ocean bounds the lands also on that .side ; so that it does not seem rational in the least to think that the land can extend itself to join with America on that side, or that there is not a communication between the Northern and Eastern Ocean ; but of this I shall say no more ; it was my observation at that time, and therefore I take notice of it in this place. We nov/ advanced from the river Arguna by easy and moderate journeys, and were very visH-ly obliged to the care the Czar of Muscovy has taken to 1. ''''■ and towns >7I '^'^ ROBINSON CRUSOE i-::i^ .1 built in as many places as it is possible to place them, where liis soldiers keej) garrisrn fiomcthing like the stationary soldiers placed by the Romans in the remotest countries of their empire ; some of which I had I'cad of were placed in Britain, for the security of commerce, and for the lodging of travellers ; and thus it was here ; for wherever we r.iinf^ though at tlicse towns and sUttions the garrisons and governors were Russians and jtrofcssed Christians, yet the inhabitants were mere pagans ; sacrificing to idols, and wor.shijjping the sun, moon, and stars, or all the host of heaven ; and not only so, ut were, of all the heathens and pagans that ever I met with, the most barbarous, • xcept only that they did not cat men's flesh, as our savages of America did. Some instances of this we m.'t with in the country b.'twean Arguna, where we enter I lie Muscovite dominions, and a city of Tartars and Russians together, called Nortzi- oii.sky, in which is a continued desert or forest, which cost us twenty days to travel nvcr. In a village near the last of these places, I had the curiosity to go and see thfir way of living, which is most brutish and insufferable. They had, I supjiose, a i,'ro;it .'sacrifice that day ; for there stood out, upon an old stump of a tree, an idol made , and I saw it before my eyes, and there was no room to wonder at it, or think it impossible; all my admiration turned to rage, and T rode u]) to the image or monster — call it what yon will — and with my sword made a stroke at the bonnet that was on its head, and cut it iu two; and one of our men that -was with me took hold of the sheep-skin that covered it, and pulled at it, when, behold, a most hideous outcry and howling ran through the villugt^, and two or three hundred people came about my ears, so that I Avas glad to scour for it, for we saw some had some bows and arrows ; but I resolved from that moment to visit them again. Our caravan rested three nights at the town, Avhich was about four miles off, in order to provide some horses Avhich they "wanted, several of the hoi'scs having been lamed and jaded with the badness of the Avay aiiorvant, and to i)ut ifc in execution that night about midnight, with all the secrocy imaginable. However, upon second thoughts, we were willing to delay it till the next night, because the caravan being to set forwai-d in the morning, we supposed the governor could nut pretend to give them any satisfaction upon xis when we were out of his power. Tiio Scots merchant, as steady in his resolution for the enterprise as bold in executing, brought mc a Tartar' .s robe or gown of sheep-skins, and a bonnet, with a bow and airows, and had provided the same for himself and his countrymen, that the peoplo, if llii'v saw us, .shoidd not determine who wo were. All the first night we spent in mixing up .some combustible matter, with aqua vit«», gunpowder, and such other materials as we could get ; and having a good quantity of t ir in a little po(., about an hour after night we set out upon our expedition. Wo came to tho place about eleven o'clock at night, and f.)und that the people had not the least jeal.usy of danger attending their idol. Tiie night was cloudy ; yet the moon gave us Wisht enough to see that the idol stood just in the same posture and place that it did befori'. Tho jjcoplo seemed to bo all at their rest ; only tliat in the great Init or tent, as wo called it, where we .saw tho three priests, whom we mistook for butchei-s, we saw a light, and going up close to the door, we heard people talking as if tliere were fivo or six of them ; wo concluded, therefore, that if we .set wildfire to the idol, these men would conic out immediately, and rini up to tho jilacc to rescue it from the dcstructini- ir..:: oi- n 378 We took fc^V ,>^:^e.-- PURSUED BY THE TARTARS. care also to make our front as strong ass vie could, by placing our packs, with our camels and horses, all in a line, on the inside of the river, and felling some trees in our rear. J n this posture we encamped for the night ; but the enemy Avas upon us before a\-.' had finished. They did not come on us like thieves, as wc expected, but sent three messengers to us, to demand the men to be delivered to them that had abused their priests, and buraed their god Cham Chi-Thaungu with fire, that they might burn them with fire ; and upon this, they said,' they would go away, and do us no further harm ; otherwise they would destroy us all. Our men looked very bluuk at this message, and |M1a began to stare at one another to see who looked with the most guilt in their faces ; but m m i^obody was the word — nobody did it. The leader of the caravan sent word he was well assured that it was not done by any of our camp ; that we were peaceful merchant!^-, travelling on our business ; that we had done no harm to them or to any one else ; and that, therefore, they must look farther for their enemies who had injured them, for wo were not the people ; so he desired them not to disturb us, for if they did we should defend ourselves. They were far from being satisfied with this for an answer ; and a great crowd of them came running doAvn in the morning, Ijy break of day, to our camp ; but seeing us in such an unaccountable situation, they durst come no farther than the brook in our front, where they stood, and showed us such a number that indeed terrified us very much ; for those that spoke least of them spoke of ten thousand. Here they stood and looked at us awhile, and then setting up a great howl, they let fly a crowd of arrows among us ; but we were well enough fortified for that, for we sheltered under our Ijag- gage, and I do not remember that one of us was hurt. Some time after this we saw them move a little to our right, and expected them on the rear : when a cunning fellow, a Cossack of Jarawena, in the pay of the Muscovite.^, calling to the leader of the caravan, said to him, " I'll go send all these people away to Sibeilka." This was a city four or five days' journey at least to the right, and rather behind us. So he takes his bow and arrows, and getting on horseback, he rides away from our rear directly, as it were back to Nertzinskay ; after this he takes a great circuit about, and comes directly on the army of the Tartars, as if he had been sent express to tell them a long story that the people who had burned the Cham Chi- Thaungu were gone to Sibeilka, with a caravan of miscreants, as he called them — that is- to say,. Christians : and' that they had resolved to burn the god Schal-Isar, belonging to the Tongueses. As this fellow was himself a mere Tartar, and perfectly spoke their language, he counterfeited so well that they all believed him, and away they drove in a most violent hurry to Sibeilka, which, it seems, was five days' journey to the north ; and in less than three hours they were entirely out of our sight, and we never heard any more of them, nor whether they went to Sibeilka' or no. So we passed away safely on to Jarawena, where there was a garrison of jMuscovites, and there we rested five days ; the caravan being: exceedingly fatigued with tiie last day's hard march, and with want of rest in the night. From this city we had a frightful desert, wliich held us twenty-three days' march "We furnished ourselves with some tents here, for the better accommodating ourselves in the night ; and the leader of the caravan procured sixteen carnages or wagons of the country, for carrying our water or provisions ; and these carriages were our defence eveiy night round our little camp : so that had the Tartars appeared, unless they ha-t been veiy numerous indeed, they would not have been able to hurt us. 379 W W ■^ ^- THE TON(;ui:si-: nation. We may well be supposed to have wanted rest again after this long journey ; for in this desert we neither saw house nor tree, and scarce a bush ; though we saw abundance of the sable hunters, who are all Tartars of the Mogul Tartary, of Avhich this country is a part ; and they frequently attack small caravans, but we saw no numbers of them together. After Ave had passed this desert, we came into a country pretty well inhabited ; that is to say, we found towns and castles, settled by the Czar of Muscovy, with garrisons of stationary soldiers, to protect the caravans and defend the country against the Tartars? Avlio would otherwise make it very dangerous travelling ; and his czarish majesty has given such strict orders for the well guarding the caravans and merchants, that, if there are any Tartars heard of in the country, detachments of the garrison are always sent to see the travellers safe from station to station. And thus the governor of Adinskoy, whom I had an opportunity to make a visit to by means of the Scots merchant, Avho Avas acquainted Avith him, offered us a guard of fifty men, if we thought there Avas any danger, to the next station. I thought, long before this, that as Ave carne nearer to Europe Ave should find the country better inhabited, and the people more civilised ; but I found myself mistaken in both ; for we had yet the nation of the Tongiieses to pass through, Avhere we saAV the same tokens of paganism and barbarity as before ; only, as they Avere conquered by the ^luscoAdtes, they Avere not so dangerous ; but for mdeness of manners and idolatry, no people in the Avorld ever went beyond them ; they are clothed all in skins of beasts, and their houses are built of the same ; you knoAV not a man from a Avoman, neither by the ruggedness of their countenances nor their clothes ; and in the Avinter, Avhen the ground is covered Avith suoaa-, they Ua-c underground in vaults, Avhich have cavities going from one to another. If the Tartars had their Cham Chi-Thaungu for a whole village or country, these had idols in eA^ery hut and cA'ery cave : besides, they Avorship the stars, the sun, the Avatcr, the snow^ and, in a Avord, everything they do not rtnderstand, and they nnderstand but very little ; so that every element, e\'ery nncommon thing, sets them sacrificing. I met Avith nothing peculiar myself in all this country, which I reckon Avas, from the desert I spoke of last, at least four hundred miles, half of it being another desert, Avhich took us up tAvelve days' severe traA^elling, Avithout house or tree ; and Ave Avere obliged again to carry our own provisions, as Avell Avater as bread. After Ave Avere out of this desert, and had travelled two days, Ave came to Janezay, a Muscovite 'city, or station, on the great river Janezay, AA'hich, they told us there, parted Europe from Asia. Here I obserA-ed ignorance and paganism still prevailed, except in the Muscovite garrisons. All the country betAveen the riA^er Oby and the river Janezay is as entu-ely pagan, and the people as barbarous, as the remotest of the Tartars ; nay, as any nation, for aught I know, in Asia or America. I also found, Avhich I obserA-ed to the Muscovite governors Avhom I had an opportunity to converse with, that the poor pagans are not much Aviser, or nearer Christianity, for being under the Muscovite gOA^ernment, Avhich they acknoAvledged Avas true enough ; but that, as they said, Avas none of their business ; that if the Czar expected to convert his Siberian, Tonguese, or Tartar subjects, it should be done by sending clergymen among them, not soldiers ; and they added, with more sincerity than I expected, that they found it Avas not so much the concern of their monarch to make the people Chri.stians as it AA'as to make them subjects. From this river to the great river Oby, Ave crossed a Avild, uncultivated country, i ^ ROBINSON CRUSOl :€W^ barren of people aad goocl management ; otherwise it is in itself a mast pleasant, fi-uitful, rMid agreeable eountiy. Wliat inhabitants we found in it ai-e all pagiins, except such as are sent among them from Russia ; for this i.s the country — I mean on Ijotli sides the river Oby — whither the Muscovite criminals that arc not put to death are banished, and from whence it is next to impossible they should ever get away. I have nothing material to say of my jiarticular affaii-s till I came to Tobolsk i, the capital city of Siberia, where I continued some time on the follo\ving account We had now been almost seven months on our journey, and winter began to c.ii.ie on apace; whereupon my pai'tner aud I called a council about our particular avail's, in which we found it proper, as we were bo\ind for England, and not for Moscow, to consider how to dispose of ourselves. They told us of sledges and reindeer to cany us over the snow in tiie winter time; and, indeed, they have such things tliat it would be incredible to relate the particulars of, by which means the livisaians travel more in winter than they can in summer, as in these sledges they are able to run night and day ; the snow, being frozen, is one universal covering to Nature, by which the hills, vales, rivers, and lakes are all smooth and hard as a stone, and they run upon the surface, without any I'^gard to what is imderneatli. But 1 had no occasion to urge a winter journey of this kind : I was bound to England, not to Moscow, and my route lay two ways : either I must go on as the caravan went, till I came to Jaroslaw, aud then go off west for Narva, and the Gulf of Finland, and so on to Dantzic, where I might possibly sell my China cargo to good advantage ; or I must leave the caravan at a little town on the Dwina, from whence T had but six days by water to Archangel, and from thence might be sure of sliil)ping cither to England, Holland, or Hamburgh. Now, to go any of these journeys in the winter would have been preposterous; for as to Dantzic, the Baltic would have been frozen up, and I could not get pa.s8age ; and to go by land in those countries wjis far less safe than among the Mogid Tartars ; likewise, to go to Ai'changel in October, all the ships woulf|^ gone from thence, and even the merchants who dwell there in .summer retire soutli to Moscow in the winter, when the ships are gone ; so that I could have nothing but extremity of eold to encounter, with a scarcity of jirovisions, and must lie in an enipty town all tlie winter ; so that, upon the whole, I thought it much my better Avay to lot the camvan go, and make provision to >\'inter where I was, at Tobolsk!, in Siberia, in the latitude of about sixty degrees, where I was sure of three things i to wear out a cold winter with — viz., plenty of provisions, such as the country ! afforded, a wann hou.se, with fuel enough, and excellent company. I wjis now in quite a different climate from my beloved island, where I never felt cold, except when I had my ague ; on the contraiy, I had much to do to bear any clothe;; on my back, and never made any lire but without dooi-s, which wa-s neccsaaiy for dressing my food, itc. Now I had three good vests, with large robes or gownis o\er them, to hang down to the foet^ and button close to the wrists ; and all those lined with furs, to make them sufficiently warm. As to a warm house, I must confess I greatly disliked our way in England of making lires in every room in the house in open chimney.s, which, when the fh-o \v;is out, always kept the air in the room cold as the climate ; but taking an A il'irtment in a good hou.so in the town, I ordereil a chimney to be built like a J lunmce, in the centre of six seveml rooms, like a stove ; the funnel to carry tho ' sni.ik.) went up one way, lh.» door to come at the fire went in another, and all Hi' v' -. >^' -• • i ,"pwf I J>>^' WINTER IX TOBOLSK! M rooms were kept eqxxally warm, but no fire seeii,. just as they heat the bagnios in England. By this means we had always the same' climate in all the rooms, and an equal heat was preserved ; and how cold soever it was without, it was always warm witliin ; and yet we saw no fii-e nor were ever inconmioded with smoke. The most wonderful thing of all Avas, that it should be possible to meet with good company here, in a country so barbarous as that of the most northerly parts of Europe, near the Frozen Ocean, within but a very few degrees of Nova Zembla. But this being the country where the s*^ate criminals of Muscovy, as I observed before, are all banished, this city was full of noblemen, gentlemen, soldiers, and courtiers of Muscovy. Here was the famous Prince Galitzin, the old General Kobostiski, and several other pei-sons of note, and some ladies. By means of my Scots merchant, Avhom, nevertheless, I parted with here, I made an acquaintance with several of these gentlemen ; and from these, in the long winter nights in which I stayed here, I received several very agreeable visits. It was talking one night with Prince , one of the banished ministers of state belonging to the Czar of Muscovy, that the discourse of my particular case Ijegau. He had been telling me abundance of fijie things of the greatness, the magnificence, the dominions, and the absolute power of the Emperor of the Russians : I interrupted him, and told him I was a greater and more powerful prince than ever the Czar of Muscovy was, though my dominions were not so large, or my people so many. The Russian grancjee looked a little surprised, and, fixing his eyes steadily upon me, began to wonder v/hat I meant. I told him his wonder would cease v^-hon I Lad explained myself First, I told him I had absolute disposal of the lives and fortunes of all my subjects ; that notwithstanding my absolute power, I Lad not one person disaffected to my government, or to my person, in all my doPAinions. He shook his head at that, and said, there, indeed, I outdid the Czar of Muscovy. I told him that all the lands in my kingdom were my own, and all rny subjects Avere not only my tenants, but tenants at will; that they would all fight for me to the last drop ; and that never tyrant, for such I acknowled-^ed myself to be, was ever so universally beloved, and yet so hori'ibly feared, by Lis subjects. After amusing liini with these riddles in government for a while, I opened the case, and told him the story at large of my living in the island ; and how I managed both myself and the people that were under me, just as I have since minuted it down. They were exceedingly taken with the story, and especially the prince, who told me, Avith a sigh, that the true greatness of life Avas to be masters of ourselves; that he Avould not have exchanged such a state of life as mine to be Czar of MuscoAry ; and that he found more felicity in the retirement he seemed to be banished to there than ever he found in the highest authority he enjoyed in the com't of his master the Czar ; that the height of human wisdom was to bring our tempers down to our cii'cumstances, and to make a calm Avithin, imder the Aveight of the gi-eatest storms Avithout. When he came fii'st hither, he said he used to tear the hair from his head, and the clothes from his back, as others had done before him ; but a little time and considei-ation had made him look into himself, as Avell as round him, to things Avithout : that he found the mind of man, if it Avas but once brought to reflect ujion the state of vmivei'sal life, and how little thi< world was concerned in its true felicity, Avas perfectly capable of making a felicii for itself, fully satisfAang to itself, and suitable to its own ^>"-^ '■'>■'• "'^'^ desir^ ROBINSON CRUSOE with l)ut very little assistance from the world. The fiir to Lreathe in, food to sustain life, clothes for warmth, and liberty for exercise, in order to health, comi)leted, in his oi)iuion, all that the world could do for lis ; and though the greatness, the authority, the riches:, and the pleasures which some enjoyed in the world, had much in them that was agreeable to us, yet all those things chiefly gratified the coarsest of our ufTections, such as our ambition, our particular pride, avarice, vanity, and sensuality; all which, being the mere product of the woi-st part of man, were iu themselves crimes, and had in them the seeds of all mannei* of crimes ; but neither were related to, nor concerned with, any of those virtues that constituted us wise men, nur of those graces that distinguished us as Christians : that being now dej)rived of all the fancied felicity which be enjoyed in the full exercise of all those vice?;, ho said he wiu; at leisure to look upon the dai-lc side of them, where ho found all manner of deformity ; and was now convinced that virtue only makes a man truly wise, nch, and great, and preserves him in the way to a superior happiness in a future state ; and in this, he said, they Avcre more happy in their banishment than all their enemies Averc, who had the full posse^ainn of all the wealth and power they had left behind them. "Nor, sir," says he, "do I brin" my mind to this politically, from the neceasity of my circumstances, which some call miserable; but, if I know arything of myself, I would not now go back, though the Czar my master should call me, and reinstate me in all my former grandeur ; I say, I would no more go back to it than 1 believe my soul, when it shall be delivered from this ])rison of the body, and has had a taste of the glorious state bevond life, would come Iwck to the gaol of flesh and blood it is now enclosed ill, and leave heaven, to d^al in the dirt and crime of human aflairs." He spoke this with so much warmth in his temper, so much eai'nostuess and mo:io:i (if his spirits, that it was evident it was the true sen.se of his soul ; there was no room to doubt his sincerity. I told him I once thought myself a kind of monarch iu my old station, of which I had given him an account ; but that I thought he was not only a monarch, but a great conqueror ; for ho that had got a victory over his own exorbitant di3siros, and the absolute dominion over himself, ho whoso rca.son entirely governs hii will, is certainly greater than he that conquers a city. " Dut, my lord," s.\id I, '-^jhall 1 take tho liberty to ask you a question?" "With all my heart," says ho. "If the d')orof your liberty was opened," said I, "would you not take hold ofit^ to deliver your- s-'lf from this exile 1 " " Hold," said ho ; " your question is subtle, and requires some ^;|*^iou3, just distinctions to give it a sincere answer; and I will give it you from tho bottom of my heart. Nothing that I knoAV of in the world would move me to deliver myself from this state of banishment, excejit those two: fir.st, tho cnjovKient of my nlations ; and, secondly, a little warmer climate ; but I protest to you, that to go back to the pomp of the court, tho glory, tho power, tho hurry of a minister of state ; the wealth, tho gaiety, ami tho jdeasures of a courtier ; if my master should send mo word this moment that ho restores mo to all ho banished me from, I pi-otest, if I know myself at all, T would not leave this wilderne.s-s, theso deserts, and these frozen lakes, fur tho pidaca at Moscow." " But, my lord," said I, " perhaps you not only are banished from tho pleasures of the court, and from tho power, authority, and wealth you enjoy«*d !• •fore, but you may bo absent, too, from some of tiio conveniences of life : your estate, j) I'.ians, confiscated, and your eflects plundered ; and the supplies left you hero may not be suitable to the ordinary demands of life." " Ay," .'lays he, "that is as you siip- [lOHo me to bo a lord, or a prince, &c. ; so, indeed, I am ; but you are now to consider 384 m '0 f ROlilNSON CRUSOE. jno only as a man, a human creature, not at all distinguished from another; and so I can suffer no want, unlcp-s I should bo visited with sickness and distempers. However, to put the question out of di:^pntc, you sec our way of life : we are, in this place, five persons of rank ; wo live perfectly retired, as suited to a .state of banlsliment ; we have flomethin" rescued from the shipwreck of our fortunes, which keeps us from the mere necessity of hunting f^r our food ; but the poor soldiers, who are here without that help, live iu as much i)lenty as we, who go in the woods and catch .sables and foxes ; the Lvbourof a month will maintain them a year ; and as the way of living is not expensive, so it Is not hard to get sufficient for ourselves. So that objection is out of doors." I have not room to give a full account of the most agreeable conversation I had AviLh this truly great man ; in all which lie showed that Ids mind was so in->pired with a superior knowledge of tiling.^, so supported by religion, as well as by a vast share of v.i^dom, that his contempt of the world was really as much as he had expressed, and that he was always the same to the last, as will appear iu the story I am going to toll. I had been here eight months, and a dark, dreadful winter I thought it ; the cold BO intense that I could not so much as look abroad without being wrapped ia furs, and a mask of fur beforo my fiicc, or rather a hood, with only a hole for breath, and two for sight : the little daylight v.-o had wa.s, as we reckoned, for three mouths not above five hours a day, and six at most ; only that the snow lying on the ground con- tinually, and the weather being clear, it was never quite dark. Our horses were kept, or rather starved, under gi-ouud ; and as for our servants, whom we hired here to look after ourselves and horses, we had, every now and then, their fingers and toes to thaw and take care of, lest they .should mortify, and fall off. It is true, within doors we were wann, the hou.scs ocing close, the walls thick, the lights small, and the glass all double. Our food was chiefly the flesh of deer, dried and cured in the season ; bread good enough, but baked as biscuits ; dried fish of several sorts, and some flesh of mutton and of buffaloes, which is pretty good meat. All the stores of provisions for the winter are laid up in the summer, and well cured : our drink was water, mixed with aqua-vitre instead of brandy j and for a treat, mead instead of wine, which, however, they ha^-e very good. The hunters, who venture abroad all weather-s, frequently brought us in fine venison, and sometimes bear's flesh, but we did not much care for the last: "NVc had a good stock of te;i, with which wo treated our friends, and we lived very cheerfully and Avell, all things considered. It was now ilarch, the days grown considerably longei", and the weather at least tolerable ; so the other travellers began to prepare .sledges to carry them over the snow, and to get things ready to be going ; but my measures beiug fixed, as I have '.said, for Archangel, and not for Muscovy or the Baltic, I made no luotlou ; knowing very well that the ships from the south do not set out for that part of the world till Slay or Juno ; and that if I was there by the beginning of August, it would be as soon as any ships would bo ready to go away ; and therefore I made no haste to be gone, as others did : in a word, I .saw a groat many people, nay, all the travellers, go away before we. It seems every year they go froni thence to Sluscovy for ti-ade, to cany furs, and buy necessaries, which they bring back with thorn to furnish their shops : also others M'cnt on the same enand to Archangel ; but then they all being to come back again above eight hundred miles, wont out beforo me. In the month of Mixy I began to make all ready to pack up ; and, as I was doing this, it occurred to nic that, seeing all these pcoiilo were banished by the Czar of JIus- 1 i MTi THE RUSSIAN EXILE. W: covy to Siberia, and yet, when tlicy came tliero, were left at liberty to go whither they would, why they did not then go away to any part of the world, wherever they thought fit : and I began to examine what should hinder them from making such an attempt. But my wonder was over when I entered upon that subject with the person I have mentioned, v/ho answered me thus: " Consider, first, sir," said he, "the place where we are ; and, secondly, the condition we are in ; especially the generality of the people who are banished hither. We are surrounded with stronger things than bars or bolts ; on the north side, an unnavigable ocean, where ship never sailed, and boat never swam ; every other way we have above a thousand miles to pass through tlie Czar's own dominions, and by ways utterly impassable, except by the roads made by the Govern- ment, and through the tovrns garrisoned by his troops ; so that we could neither pass undiscovered by the road, nor subsist any other way ; so that it is in vain to attempt it." I was silenced, indeed, at once, and found that they were in a prison every jot ns secure as if they had been locked up in the castle at Moscow : hovfever, it came into my thoughts that I might certainly be made an instrument to procure the escape of this excellent person ; and that, whatever hazard I ran, I would certainly try if I could carry him off. Upon this, I took an occasion, one evening, to tell him my thoughts. I represented to him that it was very easy for me to carry him away, there being no guard over him in the country ; and as I was not going to Moscow, but to Archangel, and that I Avent in the retinue of a caravan, by which I was not obliged to lie in the stationary towns in the desert, but could encamp every night v/here I would, we might easily pass uninterrupted to Archaugel, where I Avould immediately secure him on board an English ship, and carry him safe along with me ; and as to his subsistence and other particulars, it should be liiy care till he could better supply himself. He heard me very attentively, and Iboked earnestly on me all the while I spoke : nay, I could see in his very face that what I said put his spirits into an exceeding ferment ; his colour frequently changed, his eyes looked red, and his heart fluttered, till it might be even perceived in his coiantenance ; nor could he immediately ansv,^er me when I had done, and, as it were, hesitated what he would say to it : but, after he had paused a little, he embraced me, and said, " How unhappy are we, unguarded creatures as we are, that even our greatest acts of friendship are made snares unto us, and we are made tempters of one another ! My dear friend," said he, " your offer is so sincere, has such kindness in it, is so disinterested in itself, and is so calculated for my advantage, that I musthaveverylittleknowledgeof the world if I did not both wonder at it, and acknowledge the obligation I have upon me to you for it. But did you believe I was sincere in what I have often said to yoii of my contempt of the world 1 Did you believe I spoke my very soul to you, and that I had really obtained that degree of felicity here that had placed me above all that the world could give me ? Did you believe I was sincei'e when I told you I would not go back, if I was recalled even to be all that I once was in the court, witli the favour of the Czar my master ? Did you believe me, my friend, to be an honest man 1 or did you believe me to be a boasting hypocrite?" Here he stopped, as if he would hear what I would say ; but, indeed, I soon after perceived that he stopped because his spirits were in motion, his great heart was full of struggles, aud he could not go on, I was, I confess, astonished at the thing as well as at the man, and I used some argu- ments with him to urge him to set himself free ; that he ought to look upon this as a door opened by Heaven for his deliverance, and a summons by Providence, who has the care and disposition of all events, to do himself good, and to render himself useful in the world. 387 Ho ]i;iil liy this time recovered Iiiinsclf. " llow do you know, sir," suys lie, warmly, '' l)ut that, instead of a summons from Heaven, it nuiy be a feint of arctlier instrument; representing in alluring coloui-s to nic the show of felicity as a deliver- ance, which may in itself be my snare, and tend directly to my ruin ? Here, I am free from the temptation of returning to my former misci-able greatness ; there, 1 am not sure but that all the seed;^ of pride, ambition, avarice, and luxury, which J know remain in nature, may revive, and take root, and, in a word, again overwhelm iiif ; and then the happy prisoner, whom you sec now master of his soul's liberty, .-hall be the miHcrablc slave of his own senses, in the full enjoyment of all pci-sonal lil)erty. Dear sir, let me remain in this blessed confinement., banished from the (limes of life, nither than purchase a show of freedom at the exjiense of the liberty of my reason, and at the future happiness which I now have in my view, but shall then, fear, cpuckly lose sight of; for I am but flesh ; a man, a mere man; hav( passions and aflections as likely to possess and overthrow me as any man. ^\V , Oh, bo not my friend and tempter both together ! " THE RUSSIAN'S REQUEST If I was surprised before, I was quite dumb now, and stood silent, looking at him^ and, indeed, admiring what I saw. The struggle in his soul was so great that, though the weather was extremely cold, it put him into a most violent sweat, and I found he wanted to give vent to his mind ; so I said a word or two, that I would leave him to consider of it, and wait on him again, and then I withdrew to my own apart- ment. About two hours after, I heard somebody at or near the door of my room, and I was going to open the door, but he had opened it, and come in. " My dear friend," says he, " you had almost overset me, but I am recovered. Do not take it ill that I do not close with your offer. I assure you it is not for want of sense of the kindness of it in you ; and I came to make the most sincei-e acknowledgment of it to you ; but I hope I have got the victory over myself." "My lord," said I, "I hope you are fully satisfied that you do not resist the call of Heaven." "Sir," said he, "if it had been from Heaven, the same power would have influenced me to have accepted it ; but I hope, and am fully satisfied, that it is from Heaven that I decline it, and I have infinite satisfaction in the parting, that you shall leave me an honest man still, though not a free man." I had nothing to do but to acquiesce, and make professions to him of my having no end in it but a sincere desire to serve him. He embraced me very passionately, and assured me he was sensible of that, and should always acknowledge it ; and with that he oflered me a very fine present of sables, — too much, indeed, for me to accept from a man in his circumstances, and I Avould have avoided them, but he would not be refused. The next moiming I sent my servant tt> his lordship with a small present of tea, and two pieces of China damask, and fonr little wedges of Japan gold, which did not all weigh above six ounces or thereabouts, but were far short of the value of his sables, which, when I came to England, I found worth near two hundred pounds. He accepted the tea, and one i^iece of the damask, and one of the pieces of gold, which had a fine stamp upon it, of the Japan coinage, which I found he took for the rarity of it, bub would not take any more : and he sent word by my sei^vant that he desired to speak with me. When I came to him, he told me I knew what had passed between us, and hoped I would not move him any more in that affair ; but that, since I made such a generous olicr to him, he asked me if I had kindness enough to offer the same to another person that he would name to me, in whom he had a great share of concern. I told him that I could not say I inclined to do so much for any but himself, for whom I had a particular value, and should have been glad to have been the instrument of his deliverance ; how- ever, if he would please to name the person to me, I would give him my answer. Ho told me it was his only son ; who, though I had not seen him, yet was in the same condi- tion with himself, and above two hundred miles from him, on the other side of the Oby ; but that, if I consented, he would send for him. I made no hesitation, but told him I would do it. I made some ceremony in letting him understand that it was wholly on his account ; and that, seeing I could not prevail on him, I would show my respect to him by my concern for his son ; but these things are too tedious to repeat here. He sent the next day for his son ; and in about twenty days liC came back with the messenger, bringing six or seven horses, loaded with very rich fius, Avhich, in the whole, amounted to a very great value. His servants brought the horses into the town, but left the young lord at a distance till night, when he came 3S9 ^. ROBINSON CRUSOE. ; incognito into our apartment, and his father presented him to mc ; and, in short, we ! concerted the manner of our travelling, and everything proper for the journey. I had lx)ught a consideraV)lc quantity of sables, black fox skins, line ermines, and such other furs as arc very rich in that city, in exchange for some of the goods J liad 1 brought from China ; in particular, for the clovea and nutmeg.'?, of which I sold the greatest part here, and the rc:st aftcr^vards at Archangel, for a much better price than I could have got at Loudon ; and my partnei", who was sensible of the profit, and whose business, more particularly than mine, was merchandise, was mightily pleased with our stay, on account of the traffic we made here. It was the beginning of June when I left this remote place ; a city, I believe, little heard of in the world ; and, indeed, it is so far out of the road of commerce, that I know not how it should be much talked of. Wo were now reduced to a very small caravan, having only thirty-two horses and camels in all, and all of them passed for mine, though my new guest was proprietor of eleven of them ; it was most nafrui'al, also, that I should take more servants with me than I had before ; and the young lord passed for my steward ; what great man I passed for myself, I know not, neither did it concern mo to inquire, "\Vo had here the worst and the largest desert to pass over that we met with in our whole journey ; I call it the worst becaiisc the way was very deep in some j)lacea, and very uneven in others ; the best we had to say for it was, that we thought we had no troops of Tartars or robbers to fear, and that they never came on this side the river Oby, or at least veiy seldom ; but we found it otherwise. My young lord had a faithful Siberian servant, who was perfectly acquainted with the country, and led us by private roads, so that we avoided coming into the princip;\l towns and cities upon the great road, such as Turaen, Soloy Kamskoi, and several others ; because the Muscovite garrisons which are kept there are very curious and ."-trict in their observation upon travellers, and searching lest any of the banished persons of note should make their escape that way into ;Musco\y ; but, by this means, as wo were kept out of the cities, so our whole journey Avas a desert, and we were obliged to encamp and lie in our tents, when we might have had very good accomniodation in the cities on the way ; this the young lord was so sensible of that he would not allow us to lie abroad when we came to several cities on the way, but lay abroad himself, with his servant, in the woods, and met lis always at the ai)pointed places. Wo had just entered Europe, having passed the river Kama, which in these parts is the boundary between Europe iind Asia, and the first city on the European side was called Soloy Kamskoi, which is as much as to say, the great city on the river Kama ; inuX here wo thought to see some evident alteration in the people ; but wo were mis- taken ; for as wo had a vast desert to pass, which is near seven hundred miles long in some places, l)ut not above two hundred miles over where we passed it, so till we came i)ast that horrible place, wo found very little difTerencc between that country and the ^logul Tarlary ; tlio people are mostly pagans, and little better than the savages of America ; their hoiuscs and towns full of idols, and their way of living wholly barbarous, except in t!io cities, and the villages near them, where they are Christians, as they call them- selves, of the Greek Church, but have their religion mingled with so many relics of Buperstition that it is scai'cc to be known in some places from mere sorcery and witch- craft. In passing this forest, I thought, indeed, wc must (after all our dangers were, to our imngmation, escaped) liavo been plundorod and robbed, and perhaps murdered, by a troop of thieves ; of what countty they wore, I am yet at a loss to know ; but they , ROBBERS IN THE WOOD. m were all on horseback, cai-riecl bows and arrows, and were at first; about forty-five in number; tlicy came so near to us as to be within two musket-shots, and, asking no questions, surrounded us with their horses, and looked very cai'nestly upon us twice ; at length, they placed themselves just in our Avay ; upon which we drew np in a little line, before our camels, being not above sixteen men in all ; and, being drawn up thus, wo halted, and sent out the Siberian servant, who attended his lord, to see who they were ; his master was the more willing to let him go because ho was not a little apprehensive tliat thoy were a Siberian troop sent out after him. The man came up nearer them with a flag of truce, and called to them ; but though he spoke several of their languages, or dialects of languages rather, he could not understand a word they said ; however, after some signs to him not to come near them at his peril, the fellow came back no wiser than he went ; only that by their dress, he said, he believed them to be some Tartars of Kalmuck, or of the Circassian hordes, and that there must be more of them \Tpon the great desert, though he never heard that any of them Avere seen so far north befure. About an hour after, they again made a motion to attack us, and rode round our little wood to see where they might binaak in ; but finding iis ahvays ready to face them, tliey Avcnt off again ; and v/e 'resolved not to stir for that night. This was small comfort to us ; however, we had no remedy ; there was, on ou.r left hand, at about a quarter of a mile distance, a little grove, and very near the road j I immediately resolved v*^e should advance to those trees, and fortify ourselves as Vv'cll as wc could there ; for, first, I considered that the trees would in a great measure cover us from their arrovfs ; and, in the next place, they could not come to charge ns in a body ; it was, indeed, my old Portuguese pilot who proposed it, and who had this excellency attending him, that he was always readiest and most apt to direct and encourage us in cases of the most danger. We advanced immediately, with what speed we could, and gained that little wood ; the Tartars, or thieves, for we knew not what to call them, keeping their stand, and not attempting to hinder ns. When we came thither, we found, to our great satisfaction, that it was a swampy piece of ground, and on the one side a very great spring of water, which, running out in a little brook, was a little farther joined by another of the like size ; and was, in short, the source of a considerable river, called afterwards the Wirtska ; the trees which grew about this sj)ring were not above two hundred, but very large, and stood pi-etty thick, so that as soon as we got in, Avo saw ourselves perfectly safe from the enemy unless they attacked us on foot. While we stayed here Avaitiug the motion of the enemy some hours, v/ithout perceiving that they made any movement, our Portuguese, with some help, cut several arms of trees half off, and laid them hanging across from one tree to another, and in a manner fenced us in. About two hours before night, they came down directly upon us ; and though we had not perceived it, we found they had been joined by some more, so tliat they were near fourscore horse ; whereof, however, we fancied some were Avomen. They came on till they were Avithin lialf-shot of our little Avood, Avhen Ave fired one musket Avithout ball, and called to them in the Russian tongue, to knoAV Avhat they Avanted, and bade them keep off; but they came on Avith a double fury up to the Avood side, not imagining AA-e A\'ere so barricaded that they coitUI not easily break in. Our old pilot AA'as our captain, as Avell as our engineer, and desired us not to fire upon them till they came Avithin pistol-shot, that Ave might be sui-e to kill, and that Avhen aa'c did fire Ave shoidd be sure to take good aim ; Ave bade him give the Avord of command, Avhich he delayed so long, that they Avere some of them within tAVO pikes' 1; n i ;: T ; , Avlien avc 391 1 'I .i '■}■ N." ROBINSON CRUSOE. Lil I f let fly. "We aimed .so tnie that we killed foui-teen of them, and wounded sevei-al others, \l as also several of thcii* hoi-ses ; for wc had all of us loaded our pieces AWth two or three bullets at least. They were terribly surprised with our fire, and retreated immediately about one indred rods from us ; in which time we loaded our pieces again, and seeing them keej) iiat distance, wo sallied out, and caught four or five of their horses, whose riders we ipposcd were killed; and coming up to the dead, we judged they were Tartai-s, but laiew not how they came to make an excursion .such an unusual length. We .slept little, you may be sure, but spent the most part of -the night in sti-engtheiiing our situation, and barricading the entrances into the wood, and keeping a strict watch. Wo waited fur daylight, and when it came, it gave us a very unwelcome discovery indeed ; for the enemy, who we tliought were discouraged with the reception they met with, were now greatly incrca-scd, and had set up eleven or twelve huts or tents, as if they were resolved to besiege us j and this little camp they had pitched upon the open plain, about three-quarters of a mile from us. "\Vc were indeed surprised at this discovery ; and now, I confess, I gave myself over for lost, and all that I had ; the loss <.f my cflects did not lie so near me, though very considerable, as the thoughts of fixUing into the hands of such barbarians, at the latter end of my journey, after so many diffi- culties and hazards as I had gone through, and even in sight of our port, where we expected .safety and deliverance. As to my partner, he was raging, and declared that to lose his goods would be his ruin, and that he would rather die than be starved, and he was for fighting to the last drop. The young lord, a gallant youth, Avas for fighting to the last also ; and my old pilot w.is of opinion that we were able to resist them all in the situation we were then in ; and thus wo s])ent the day in debates of what we should do : but towards evening we found that the number of our enemies still increased, and wc did not know but by the morning they might still be a greater number ; so I began to inquire of those peoiilo we had brought from Tobolski, if there were no private ways by which we might avoid tliom in the night, and perhaps retreat to some town, or get help to guard us over the ol3ki. We were obliged to stay at this place six weeks for the arrival of the ships, and must have tarried longer had not an Hamburgher come in above a month sooner tlian any of the English ships ; when, after some consideration that the city of Hambuigli might happen to be as good a market for our goods as London, we all took freight with him ; and, having put our goods on board, it was most natural for mo to put my steward on board to take care of them ; by which means my young lord had a sufficient opportunity to conceal himself, never coming on shore again :ill the time we stayed there ; and this ho did that he might not be .seen in ^he city, where some of the Moscow mci'chants would certainly have seen and discovei'cd him. We then sot sail from Ai-changel the 20th of August, the same year; and, after no fxtraordinary bad voyage, arrived safe in the Elbe the 18th of September. Here my partner and I found a very good sale for our good.s, as well those of China as the sables, Jcc, of Siberia ; and, dividing the produce, my share amounted to £3,47.3 17s. Oil, including about six hundred i->ound.s' woi'th of diamonds, which \ piirchascd at Bengal. Here the young lord took his loavo of us, and went up the Elbe, in order to go to the court of Vienna, whore ho resolved to seek protection, and could correspond with ihoso of his father's friends who wore left alive. lie did not part without testinioniea (.f gratitude for the service I had done him, and for my kindno-^s to the i)riuco, his fothcr. To conclude : having stayed near four months in Hamburgh, I came from thcucQ by land to the ILigue, wkere I embarked, in the packet, and arrived in London the 10th of Januaiy, 1705, having been absent from England ten years and nine months. Anil here I resolved to prepare for a longer journey than all these, having lived a Ufe of infinite variety seventy-two yeai-s, and learned sulliciontly to know tli.' v:ilii.> of retirement, and the blessing of ending our days in peace. TlIK KND. J 394 H DAY nsF RETURN CIRCULATION DEPARTMENT TO— ^ 202 Mam Library LOAN PERIOD 1 HOME USE 2 3 4 5 5 ALL BOOKS MAY BE RECALLED AFTER 7 DAYS Renewals and Recharges may be made 4 days prior to the due date. Books may be Renewed by catling 642-3405. DUE AS STAMPED BELOW 1 1 1 ^uro. O/SC. '*^^ 4 1986 UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA, BERKELEY FORM NO. DD6, BERKELEY CA 94720 GENERAL LIBRARY U.C. BERKELEY BDD0flb77bD